// ppgen source -src.txt
// 20070102000629bolles
// KD Weeks, Donald Cummings, Bryan Ness and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
// first edit:
.dt The Rogerenes, by John R. Bolles and Anna B. Williams
.de a:link { text-decoration: none; }
.de div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;border:1px solid silver; margin:1em 5% 0 5%; text-align: justify;}
.de .blackletter { font-family: "Old English Text MT", Gothic, serif;}
.de .epubonly {visibility: hidden; display: none; }
.de @media handheld { .epubonly { visibility: visible; display: inline; } }
.de .htmlonly {visibility: visible; display: inline;}
.de @media handheld { .htmlonly { visibility: hidden; display: none; } }
.dm super $1
.if t
^{$1}
.if-
.if h
$1
.if-
.dm-
.dm singlelinesig $1 $2
.if h
.dv class='column-container'
.dv class='sigleft'
$1
.dv-
.dv class='sigright'
$2
.dv-
.dv-
.if-
.if t
$1\ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ $2
.if-
.dm-
.dm doublelinesig $1 $2 $3
.if h
.dv class='column-container'
.dv class='sigleft'
$1
.dv-
.dv class='sigright'
$2
$3
.dv-
.dv-
.if-
.if t
.ll 68
.nf r
$1 \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ $2
\ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ \ $3
.nf-
.if-
.dm-
.de .column-container { border: 1px solid green; margin: auto; clear: both; width: 100%}
.de .left { display: inline-block; text-align: left; vertical-align: bottom; width:49%; }
.de .right { display: inline-block; text-align: right; vertical-align: top; width:49%; }
.de .sigleft { border: 1px solid black; display: inline-block; text-align: left; vertical-align: bottom; width:59%; }
.de .sigright { border: 1px solid red; margin: 0; display: inline-block; text-align: right; vertical-align: bottom; width:39%; }
.de .col50 { width:49%; }
.de ins.correction { text-decoration:none; border-bottom: thin dotted gray; }
.de .quote { font-size: 95%; margin-top: 1.0em; margin-bottom: 1.0em; }
.de .linegroup .group { margin: 0em auto; }
.sr t |\[oe\]|œ|
.sr h |text-align: left; text-indent: -1em;|text-align: justify; text-indent: -1em;|
.sr h |||
.sr h |||
.sr t ||=|
.sr t ||=|
// create errata table page references
.dm cref $1
.if t
$1
.if-
.if h
#$1:corr$1#
.if-
.dm-
// create markup
.dm corr_noid $1 $2
.if h
$2
.if-
.dm-
.dm corr $1 $2 $3
.if t
$3
.if-
.if h
$3$3
.if-
.dm-
.dm start_summary
.fs 90%
.in 4
.ti -4
.dm-
.dm end_summary
.fs 100%
.in
.dm-
//Begin quote
.dm start_quote
.if t
.in 2
.if-
.if h
.dv class='quote'
.if-
.dm-
//End Quote
.dm end_quote
.if h
.dv-
.if-
.if t
.in
.if-
.dm-
// Begin Poetry
.dm start_poem
.sp 1
.fs 95%
.nf b
.dm-
// End Poetry
.dm end_poem
.nf-
.fs 100%
.sp 1
.dm-
.pb
.pi
.dv class='tnotes'
.ce
Transcriber’s Note:
.if t
This version of the text cannot represent certain typographical
effects. Italics are delimited with the ‘_’ character as _italic_.
Superscripted characters are preceded by ‘^’.
.if-
.if t
With the exception of single footnote (A) appearing in the Index,
each note has been moved to follow the paragraphs in which they
are referenced.
.if-
.if h
With the exception of single footnote (A) appearing in the Index,
all notes have been collected at the end of the text, and are
linked for ease of reference.
.if-
Footnotes have been renumbered sequentially across the text for
uniqueness. Three footnotes (now numbered 71, 114, and A) are
referenced twice in the text.
Minor errors, attributable to the printer, have been corrected. Please
see the transcriber’s #note:endnote# at the end of this text
for details regarding the handling of any textual issues encountered
during its preparation.
.if h
.dv class='htmlonly'
Any corrections are indicated using an
highlight. Placing the cursor over the correction will produce the
original text in a small popup.
.il fn=cover.jpg w=60%
.dv-
.dv class='epubonly'
Any corrections are indicated as hyperlinks, which will navigate the
reader to the corresponding entry in the corrections table in the
note at the end of the text.
.dv-
.if-
.if h
The cover image has been modified to include information from
the title page, and is placed in the public domain.
.if-
.dv-
.bn 001.png
.pb
.h1
THE | ROGERENES
.in 5
.ll 66
SOME HITHERTO UNPUBLISHED
ANNALS BELONGING TO THE COLONIAL
HISTORY OF CONNECTICUT
.ll
.in
.hr 20%
.nf c
PART I.
A VINDICATION, by John R. Bolles
PART II.
HISTORY OF THE ROGERENES
BY
Anna B. Williams
APPENDIX OF ROGERENE WRITINGS
.nf-
.hr 20%
.nf c
Printed for the Subscribers
Stanhope Press
F. H. GILSON COMPANY
BOSTON U.S.A.
.nf-
.bn 002.png
.nf c
COPYRIGHT, 1904, By ANNA B. WILLIAMS
SPRINGFIELD, MASS.
.nf-
.hr 20%
.nf c
ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
Published July, 1904
.nf-
.bn 003.png
.pn 3
.sp 4
.h2
CONTENTS.
.hr 20%
.ta h:60 r:10
PART I.
A VINDICATION.
CHAPTER I.
Errors of historians regarding the Rogerenes. James Rogers and his\
family. Rogerenes first people in Connecticut to denounce taxation\
without representation. Fines of the Rogerenes. Their interruption\
of meetings not without reasonable cause. John Roger’s contribution\
of a wig to the New London ministry and his apology for the same.\
Progressive character of the Rogerene movement. Heroism of the Rogerenes\
under fines. Suit of Governor Saltonstall against John Rogers.\
Its illegal character. Rev. Mr. McEwen’s attacks on the Rogerenes.\
Sufferings of the Rogerenes. Quotations from John Rogers and John\
Bolles regarding persecutions. Scourging of Rogerenes, 1725, for travelling\
to one of their own meetings on Sunday | #19-36:ch_1_1#
CHAPTER II.
Rev. Mr. Saltonstall. His charge of blasphemy against John Rogers.\
Statements of John Rogers, 2d, regarding this charge and the punishments\
inflicted upon John Rogers on account of it. John Rogers fined\
regularly once a month without regard to his innocence or guilt. His\
nearly four year’s imprisonment at Hartford immediately followed by Mr.\
Saltonstall’s suit for defamation, by which a subservient jury awarded Mr.\
Saltonstall the enormous sum of £600 for damages. No admission of fault\
from the ecclesiastical side. The case for the Rogerenes. John Roger’s\
own account of his imprisonment upon charge of “blasphemy.” Mr.\
McEwen avers that the Rogerenes persecuted the Congregationalists and\
makes no mention of the persecutions of the Rogerenes at the hands of\
the Congregationalists, which called forth the efforts in their own defense.\
Appropriate lines from Mother Goose. Mr. Byles apparently as much displeased\
with the Congregationalists as with the Rogerenes | #37-50:ch_1_2#
CHAPTER III.
Truth and falsehood. Toleration not the word. The most calumniated\
person in the world. “Blessed are ye when men shall persecute and revile\
you.” John Rogers and his followers would seem entitled to this\
blessing. Inexcusable misstatements made by Mr. McEwen. Cause of\
the divorce of John Rogers and Elizabeth Griswold as stated by their son,\
.bn 004.png
.pn +1
John Rogers, 2d. A shining exception to the erroneous statements of historians\
in general, on this subject, shown in a quotation from Saulisbury\
Family Histories. Singularly absurd statement by Rev. Mr. Saltonstall\
quoted by Mr. McEwen. Similar statement by Peter Pratt. Reply of\
John Rogers, 2d, to the same, giving some account of his father’s sufferings\
on account of his religion. Quotations from Trumbull indicating some of\
the fines imposed upon the Rogerenes on account of their religious persuasion.\
Mr. Saltonstall “a great man” according to Bible text as well as by\
statements of historians | #51-60:ch_1_3#
CHAPTER IV.
Quotation from Peter Pratt’s calumnious work and quotations from Reply\
of John Rogers, 2d, to same, giving account of the forced separation of\
John Rogers from his first wife, his marriage to Mary Ransford and his\
forced separation from her. Verses by Peter Pratt. Verses by John\
Rogers, 2d, in reply to the same. Tribute of Peter Pratt to the character\
of his half brother, John Rogers, 2d. Tribute to same by Miss Caulkins | #61-72:ch_1_4#
CHAPTER V.
“Nine and twenty knives.” Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall, author of a plot for\
the purpose of incarcerating John Rogers for life. John Roger’s account\
of this plot and the barbarous punishments inflicted upon him in consequence.\
The purpose to send him to Hartford prison as a lunatic. His\
escape to Long Island. Copy of “Hue and Cry” sent after him. Crime\
of charging sane persons with insanity for malign purpose | #73-80:ch_1_5#
CHAPTER VI.
Strictures on a Discourse delivered by Rev. Thomas P. Field of “The First\
Church of Christ” of New London, 1870. Quotations from the work\
of John Bolles, entitled “True Liberty of Conscience is in Bondage\
to no Flesh.” Account of John Bolles by his biographer. The unceasing\
efforts of the Rogerenes, from first to last, in the cause of religious\
liberty must, of necessity, have aided that cause in Connecticut. Deacon\
John Bolles, of Hartford, grandson of John Bolles and brother of Rev.\
David Bolles. Tribute to Deacon John Bolles by Dr. Turnbull, in 1856.\
Judge David Bolles, son of Rev. David Bolles and author of “The Baptist\
Petition.” The Bolleses Bonapartes in the contest for religious liberty.\
Frederick D. Bolles, first editor of the Hartford Times, established in 1817.\
The subject of religious freedom its main topic. Quotations concerning\
this paper, its editor Frederick D. Bolles, and the associate editor, John\
M. Niles | #81-97:ch_1_6#
CHAPTER VII.
Further comments on the Half-Century Sermon of Rev. Mr. McEwen. Posterity\
of the Rogerenes. Mention of prominent citizens of New London\
of Rogerene descent. Lawyers, ministers, and physicians of this descent.\
.bn 005.png
.pn +1
Non-employment of physicians by the Rogerenes. Anecdote concerning\
Joshua Bolles of Bolles Hill. Mention of professors, wealthy\
merchants, brokers, artists, editors, authors, and teachers of Rogerene\
descent. Tribute to the memory of the author’s sister, Delight Rogers\
Bolles. The “First Church of Christ” removed to a new location called\
at the time “Bolles Hill.” The Petrified Fern.—An obituary notice of\
John Rogers Bolles, author of “A Vindication of the Rogerenes” | #98-120:ch_1_7#
.ta-
.hr 20%
.ta h:60 r:10
PART II.
THE GREAT LEADERSHIP.
1637-1721.
CHAPTER I. (1637-1675.)
James Rogers the Connecticut planter. Soldier in the Pequot war, from\
Saybrook. At Stratford, at Milford, at New London. Is the principal\
business man of New London. His children; their marriages. Conversion\
of his son John and connection with Seventh-Day Baptist Church of\
Newport. Consternation and opposition of Matthew Griswold and family.\
Wife of John Rogers persuaded by her relatives to return to Blackhall.\
John and his brothers are baptized by immersion and join the Newport\
church. John Rogers founds a church in New London, under that at\
Newport. Griswold Petition for divorce. Arrest of John Rogers on accusation\
by the Griswolds. His examination and acquittal at Hartford | #121-137:ch_2_1#
CHAPTER II. (1675-1683.)
James Rogers and his wife and daughter are baptized by immersion and\
become members of the church of which John Rogers is pastor. General\
Court grants the petition for divorce. Authorities deal with the Rogerses\
for non-attendance upon the services of the Congregational Church and for\
“servile labor” on the first day of the week. John Rogers baptizes his\
brother’s wife by immersion, in the Cove near the Main Street. He is imprisoned\
for the same. The Rogerene church shows independence of that\
at Newport. Severe persecution of the Rogerenes. Their first countermove.\
James Rogers and his sons and daughter are imprisoned | #138-155:ch_2_2#
CHAPTER III. (1684-1691.)
John Rogers, Jr., continued in custody of the Griswolds, on account of the\
“hettridoxy” of his father. Rogerenes fined and imprisoned for “servile\
labor” on the first day of the week. To be punished “at discretion\
of the judges.” Second Rogerene countermove. Rogerenes imprisoned\
and whipped. John Rogers and James, Jr., fined for baptizing by immersion.\
Rogerenes “declined to Quakerism.” Return of the daughter of\
.bn 006.png
.pn +1
John Rogers to her father. Death of James Rogers, Sr. His will. Error\
of Miss Caulkins regarding “contention” among the children. Widow\
executes deed of trust. Marriage of daughter of John Rogers at her\
father’s house; John Rogers, Jr., a wedding guest. Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall\
succeeds Rev. Simon Bradstreet. Samuel Rogers. Religious status\
of Rogers family in 1690. John Rogers sends a wig to the Congregational\
contribution for Mr. Saltonstall. His apology for the same | #156-169:ch_2_3#
CHAPTER IV. (1691-1694.)
Impaired condition of the widow of James Rogers, and difficulties arising\
from this cause. John Rogers imprisoned for entertaining Quakers at his\
house. John Rogers continues to secure converts from the Congregational\
Church and to attract the attention of certain prominent citizens. The\
sole case of disagreement on the part of any child of James Rogers regarding\
division of the estate; Joseph finds that boundaries, drawn by the men\
appointed by the court to make division of the estate, give a house and\
lands which have been considered his own to his brother Jonathan. Plot\
of Gurdon Saltonstall to secure John Rogers in prison at a distance from\
New London. Unexpected countermove by John Rogers. His sister\
Bathsheba in the stocks. His imprisonment in New London jail. He\
hangs a Proclamation out at his prison window. Sent to Hartford jail,\
pending trial for “blasphemy” | #170-182:ch_2_4#
CHAPTER V. (1694-1698.)
John Rogers tried at Hartford on charge of blasphemy. Placed on the gallows\
with a rope about his neck. Returned to Hartford prison for refusal\
to give bonds for “good behavior.” Burning of the New London\
meeting-house; attempt to secure conviction of Bathsheba Smith and\
John Rogers, Jr., for complicity in same. John Rogers, Jr., and William\
Wright charged with assisting a prisoner to escape from Hartford\
prison. William Wright imprisoned at Hartford. Merciless and mysterious\
scourging of John Rogers in Hartford prison. Remonstrance of\
dissenters at New London. Death of Joseph Rogers. John Rogers, Jr.,\
complained of before the General Court, for publishing and circulating\
“a book counted heretical” “up and down the colony.” John Rogers\
released from Hartford prison after an imprisonment of nearly four\
years. He protests against an unjust decision of the Superior Court,\
in regard to William Wright, and is fined for Contempt. Death of\
Jonathan Rogers. Rev. Gordon Saltonstall recovers £600 from John\
Rogers on a trivial pretext. Death of widow of James Rogers | #183-194:ch_2_5#
CHAPTER VI. (1698-1705.)
John Rogers returns to his Mamacock farm. Life at Mamacock. Mary\
Ransford. Her attachment to John Rogers and willingness to become his\
wife in a manner differing from that of his first marriage, which marriage\
.bn 007.png
.pn +1
he considers never to have been rightfully annulled. Opposition of his son\
to the match. The marriage is consummated. John Rogers, Jr., marries\
and brings his bride to Mamacock. Displeasure of Mary. Disagreement\
between her stepson and herself. Mary fined for the birth of her\
first child. Her husband appeals and the fine is remitted. John Rogers,\
Jr., and his stepmother before the court. Affidavit of John Rogers, equally\
condemning and excusing either party. Attempt of John Rogers to shield\
his second child from brand of illegitimacy. His wife’s lack of courage\
to second his endeavors. Her imprisonment and escape to Block Island.\
Romantic scene between John Rogers and his first wife. Visit of John\
Rogers to Samuel Bownas, while the latter is imprisoned on Long Island.\
John Rogers gives up the Seventh Day Sabbath, being convinced, by\
study of the New Testament, that the Jewish Sabbath was done away\
with by the new dispensation | #195-211:ch_2_6#
CHAPTER VII. (1707-1711.)
John Bolles leaves the Congregational Church to join the Rogerenes. His\
courageous stand. Mr. Saltonstall elected governor. Peter Pratt a\
Rogerene. Dilemma of John Rogers as executor. Captain James and\
son James to the rescue. Joan Jackson. Her husband and John Rogers\
accused of stealing her from Samuel Beebe at Plumb Island. Trial and\
unjust verdict, by which a freed slave is given over with her children to\
perpetual servitude. John Rogers condemns this court sentence and is\
imprisoned for refusing to give bonds for “good behavior” until his appearance\
for trial before the Superior Court. His Petition ignored.\
Heavily fined by Governor Saltonstall as judge of the Superior Court, and\
again imprisoned for refusing to give bonds for good behavior. Seizure of\
land of John, Jr., for a fine of his father | #212-226:ch_2_7#
CHAPTER VIII. (1711-1714.)
Authorities pretend to fear that John Rogers may escape from New London\
prison. He is placed in irons. Conveyed to the solitary and unfinished\
“inner prison.” At death’s door. Rescued by the midnight outcry\
of his son. Death of his sister Bathsheba. His release. Settlement of\
remainder of the James Rogers estate. Effort to illegally arrest and imprison\
John Rogers for “attempt to baptize” a person, which purpose failing,\
Governor Saltonstall issues a warrant for his arrest on charge of insanity.\
Imprisoned on this charge and window of prison darkened by a\
plank. Protest in behalf of John Rogers by an English lieutenant. Mob\
in favor of prisoner tear the plank from the prison window. Evening examination\
of John Rogers by Governor Saltonstall in regard to his mental\
condition. Plot to secure dark and solitary imprisonment of John Rogers\
in Hartford jail. John Rogers informed of the plot. Escapes by night to\
Long Island. “Hue and Cry” sent after him. John Rogers, Jr., fined for\
his outcry in the night. John Rogers is favored by the governor of New\
.bn 008.png
.pn +1
York. Returns to New London and attempts to secure trial of the judges\
who conducted the unfair trial by which Joan Jackson was consigned to\
slavery. Is non-suited by influential enemies. Death of Samuel Rogers.\
Death of Captain James Rogers. Marriage of John Rogers to Sarah Cole | #227-241:ch_2_8#
CHAPTER IX. (1716-1720.)
Rogerenes aroused by attempts at more strict enforcement of the ecclesiastical\
laws. A countermove. Specious public promise of Governor Saltonstall.\
Arrest of Sarah, wife of John Bolles, for “breach of sabbath.”\
She rebukes the judge for his unjust verdict. Her long imprisonment.\
Court scene relating to the imprisonment of Sarah Bolles. John Rogers\
declares the indictment in this trial to be a false charge and has the sympathy\
of the jury. Sarah Bolles loses her child in prison and lies at the\
point of death. She is rescued from the prison, by a party of friends and\
sympathizers, and carried home on a bed. Countermove by John Waterhouse.\
His trial and imprisonment. Disappearance of the doors of New\
London prison. John Waterhouse under suspicion. Parentage and character\
of John Waterhouse. John Bolles examined on charge of complicity\
in the carrying off of the doors | #242-254:ch_2_9#
CHAPTER X. (1721.)
John Waterhouse arrested and imprisoned for baptizing Joseph Bolles.\
Countermove by John Bolles and wife. Seizure of Rogerene property for\
rebuilding Congregational meeting-house. Rogerenes hold noon meeting\
in Congregational church. Governor Saltonstall absent. Noon meeting\
repeated. Governor Saltonstall present. Rogerenes attacked by a church\
party mob. Leaders imprisoned. John Bolles maltreated. John Waterhouse\
whipped for baptizing Joseph Bolles. Smallpox epidemic in Boston.\
John Rogers goes to Boston to aid the sufferers, having, ever since\
his conversion, made a practice of visiting the sick, and especially those\
afflicted with this malady. His return home. He is prostrated with the\
disease. Action of Governor and Council at New Haven. Mamacock\
quarantined. Death of John Rogers. Fidelity of his followers. Succeeding\
leadership of the Rogerene Society | #255-267:ch_2_10#
CHAPTER XI. (1721-1757.)
Years of Truce.
Death of Mr. Saltonstall. The half-way covenant under his ministry. Rogerenes\
scourged, in 1725, by Norwich authorities, for travelling on Sunday.\
John Bolle’s “Application to the General Court,” 1728. Governor\
Saltonstall’s pew stove down, 1734. Rogerene baptisms. Groton Rogerenes\
migrate to New Jersey. They found Waretown. Ephrata Pilgrims\
visit the Rogerenes at New London, 1744. Tightening of ecclesiastical\
reins. Slight countermove, 1735. Conciliatory character of Mr.\
.bn 009.png
.pn +1
Adams. Location of Rogerenes. Their general character. Their intermarriages\
with other denominations. General toleration towards the\
Rogerenes in this period. Death of John Rogers, 2d. Rogerene burying\
ground. Sons of John Rogers, 2d. Sons of John Bolles. Death of Mr.\
Adams, 1753. John Bolle’s message to the General Court at Boston,\
1754. A Rogerene warning, 1754. Congregational Church await a new\
minister | #268-283:ch_2_11#
CHAPTER XII. (1764-1766.)
The Grand Countermove.
Mather Byles installed in Congregational Church, 1757. His character.\
His “sweetest enjoyment.” His efforts to reclaim the Rogerenes by sermons\
on the sanctity of the Sabbath and the sin of desecrating that “holy\
day.” Rogerene leadership at this date. “Discourse” published by Mr.\
Byles, 1759, entitled “The Christian Sabbath.” Reply to same by Joseph\
Bolles. Virulent measures against the Rogerenes revived by the church\
party, under the influence of Mr. Byles. Death of Ebenezer Bolles, 1762.\
His character. Faith in Divine healing. Preparations for a great countermove.\
Rogerene procession from Quaker Hill and entrance into Congregational\
meeting-house, June, 1764, with “gospel testimony.” Dire\
punishment by lynch law. Continuance of “testimony,” and continuance\
of brutal punishments. Imprisonment of Rogerenes. New tactics\
by the Rogerenes. Mr. Byles is driven nearly frantic. Victory for the\
Rogerenes is near at hand. Mr. Byles will not venture out to church. He\
soon deserts New London and the Congregational ministry. Quiet restored.\
Death of John Bolles, January 7, 1767 | #284-297:ch_2_12#
CHAPTER XIII.
Quakertown.
Rogerenes in the new century (1800). Home of John Waterhouse. Quakertown\
in that locality. Early Rogerenes of Groton. John Culver.\
Samuel Whipple. His iron works. Marriages with New London Rogerenes.\
Liberal characteristics of New London Rogerenes. Exclusiveness\
of the Quakertown community. John Waterhouse living in 1773.\
His son Timothy succeeds him in leadership. Timothy’s experience in\
the great countermove, as described by himself. Zacharia Watrous. The\
Battle Axe. Petition of Alexander Rogers regarding the military tax, 1810.\
Elder Timothy Watrous, Jr., succeeded by his youngest brother, Zephania.\
Quakertown meeting-house built. Elder Zephania Watrous. Quakertown\
Rogerenes as abolitionists. William Bolles of New London. His\
paper, The Ultimatum. His encouragement and entertainment of speakers\
in The Abolition cause. The temperance cause in Quakertown.\
Division in Quakertown regarding freedom of speech. Principles advocated\
in Quakertown. Quakertown people and their neighbors. Anecdote\
of divine healing in Quakertown. Intermarriages. Quakertown industries.\
.bn 010.png
.pn +1
Quakertown inventors. Quakertown authors. Peace Meetings\
inaugurated. Zerah C. Whipple. Peace Meetings of present day.\
Brief summary of Rogerene doctrines and customs | #298-320:ch_2_13#
CHAPTER XIV.
Dragon’s Teeth.
Peter Pratt. His scandalous book. The evident falsehoods in that work.\
Proof of other intentionally incorrect statements in the same. Later historians,\
including Miss Caulkins, misled by these statements. Errors regarding\
the Rogerenes in Backu’s “History of the Baptists.” Unreliable\
traditions in Barber’s “Historical Collections of New Jersey.” Errors by\
Mr. Field in his Bi-Centennial Discourse. Errors by Mr. Blake in his\
“History of the First Church of Christ in New London.” Marriages of\
New London Rogerenes same as those of persons of other sects. Marriages\
of Groton Rogerenes by a Quaker ceremony, solemnized in Rogerene\
public meeting, after due publication of marriage intentions. These\
marriages legal. View of marriage among the Rogerenes; a sacred\
agreement not to be annulled save for the one cause stated in the New\
Testament. Errors by author of the Bolles Genealogy. Seven different\
versions of the current anecdote regarding lack of marriage ceremony by\
the Rogerenes. Serious dragon’s tooth inadvertantly manufactured by\
Dr. Blake | #321-341:ch_2_14#
.ta-
.ta h:60 r:10
#APPENDIX.:app#
Extracts from “Epistles” by John Rogers, Sr. | #345#
Extracts from “Two Ministrations” by John Rogers, Sr. | #349#
Extracts from “Concerning the Sabbath” by John Rogers, Sr. | #352#
“Heretics” by John Rogers, Sr. | #361#
Extracts from “Conversations with John Rogers” by Samuel Bownas | #362#
Extracts from “Reply to J. Backus” by John Rogers, 2d | #363#
Extracts from “Answer to Cotton Mather” by John Rogers, 2d | #365#
Extracts from “Reply to Peter Pratt” by John Rogers, 2d | #368#
Extracts from “Answer to Mr. Byles” by John and Joseph Bolles | #369#
Extracts from “Looking Glass for Presbyterians of New London” by\
John Rogers, 3d | #373#
Extracts from “Debate between Mr. Byles and Congregational Church,”\
published by the Church | #381#
Extracts from “The Battle Axe” by Timothy Watrous, Sr., and\
Timothy, Jr. | #383#
Petition by Alexander Rogers (John, 2d) | #386#
Titles of Books by Rogerene Authors | #388#
.ta-
Note.—The only change from the original Rogerene writings in this Appendix
or in the body of this work has been in omitting the old style capital letters at beginning
of substantives.
.bn 011.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h2
INTRODUCTION.
.sp 2
While spending the summer at New London, in 1894, we were
requested to aid Mr. John R. Bolles, in the capacity of reader and
amanuensis, he being compelled, by reason of impaired sight, to
depend upon such assistance. The work upon which he was engaged
was a vindication of the Rogerenes. Having, from what we
had read and heard concerning this colonial sect, regarded them as
fanatics whose idiosyncrasies bordered upon lunacy, we could
neither understand Mr. Bolle’s interest in the subject, nor why he
was so willing to call public attention to the fact that certain
Rogerene leaders were among his ancestors. Nevertheless we
could not refuse to render the small service required of us.
The chief sources upon which Mr. Bolles depended for information
were Miss Caulkin’s “History of New London” and a number
of Rogerene works, nearly two hundred years old, dating from
their first publication, which were in possession of family friends.
It was necessary for us to read these works to Mr. Bolles. Much
to our surprise, we found them to be of an exceedingly intelligent,
logical character, far removed from the fantastic and visionary.
Although written during periods of severest persecution, they were
perfectly calm and dispassionate in tone, even in the few pages
where reference was made to Rogerene sufferings “for conscience’s
sake”; these being passed over, for the most part, with the remark
that “it would take a large volume to contain them all.” In these
volumes was almost nothing of Rogerene history; but here stood
out, in bold relief, such features of Rogerene faith and principles
as dearly separated this sect from other people of their day and
were calculated to excite bitter enmity and opposition on the part
of the ruling and popular party. It was now easy to understand
.bn 012.png
.pn +1
why these dissenters were portrayed to their own and succeeding
times as brainless enthusiasts. Those in advance of their age are
as cranks and fanatics in the esteem of their contemporaries, and
rumor is ever busy blackening the character of unpopular people.
The Rogerene leaders appeared, in their writings, as consistent
Christians, contending, by word and example, for the religion set
forth in the New Testament, a religion depending not upon the
observance of forms or of days, but upon love to God and the
neighbor. They maintained that the civil government had no
right to dictate in matters of religion; that the Christian church
had but one lawgiver and judge, the Lord Himself. The divine
commands regarding religion as set forth in the New Testament
they would strictly obey, but they would, “for conscience’s sake,”
obey no command of men in this regard. The purely civil laws
they held themselves bound to observe, according to Christ’s command.
Had Sunday laws been instituted for avowedly sanitary
and moral purposes, and for the convenience and protection of
church-going people, none would have conformed to such laws
more conscientiously than the Rogerenes, such obedience being in
the line of their preaching and practice regarding the civil laws.
But because they were commanded to keep this day “sacred,” as
a religious duty and necessity, and such observance was accounted
a vital part of a religious life, they would not join in what seemed
to them to be more of the nature of heathen idolatry than of the
religion instituted by Jesus Christ.
At a period when extreme regard for the first day “Sabbath”
was one of the most readily accepted signs of a religious life, and
no laws were more rigidly enforced than those which guarded that
“sacred” day from desecration, the Rogerenes conscientiously ignored
its sacredness. At a period when the materia medica was
founded largely upon erroneous ideas and practices, when surgery
was bungling and blundering and he who called a physician was,
frequently, more liable to die of the so-called remedy than of the
disease, the Rogerenes elected to trust their health and their lives
to Nature and to Nature’s God, in the manner prescribed in the
.bn 013.png
.pn +1
New Testament, and they appear to have profited by their choice.[1]
At a period when no men were more in favor of war than those
who preached—in parts—the gospel of Him who bade His followers
to forgive their enemies, to love them and pray for them
and to return good for evil, the Rogerenes stood for uniform peace
and good will on the part of Christians, according to the spirit and
the letter of the Master’s teachings. At a period when the law
called upon all to support a state church, the Rogerenes refused to
pay towards the support of a church of whose teachings they
largely disapproved, or to either give or take anything for a ministry
which Christ established as a free gift from those gifted by
Him. Driven by the intolerance of their times to protect their obnoxious
sect from extinction at the hands of powerful enemies, as
best they could, the Rogerenes employed, at critical periods, a
peaceable yet effective mode of defense, in the line of Gospel testimony,
which enraged their opponents while it kept them fairly at
bay. This was the climax of their offences.
.fm rend=t
.fn 1
Yet they seem to have regarded experience and common-sense remedies as a
part of natural means, since they made use of ordinary home remedies and good
nursing.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Here was enough, and more than enough, to account for the
misrepresentations given of this sect.
The death of Mr. John R. Bolles occurred soon after his attempt
to place the Rogerenes in a more correct light was completed.
The logic employed by this author was of the best, his style was
forcible, his quotations were important; but his lack of new light
upon the subject in the shape of additional facts in Rogerene history
was much to be regretted. It did not seem best that his
work should be published until some attempt had been made to
secure further authentic information. Our leisure time for a number
of succeeding summers was devoted to research in this obscure
direction. Thorough examination was made of the town records
and records of the colonial courts of Connecticut, also of contemporary
writings having any bearing upon the subject. When the
mass of material thus secured was chronologically arranged, it was
.bn 014.png
.pn +1
discovered that portions fragmentary and obscure in themselves
were supplemented by other fragments, and this to such a degree
that even the records of the inimical courts, where evident pains
had been taken to omit particulars liable to tell for the side of the
Rogerenes, aided in disclosing the true facts. As a dissected picture
is made intelligible by the correct arrangement of its parts,
this at first seemingly chaotic collection of fragmentary items, by a
mere arrangement according to dates, resolved itself into a presentation
of the Rogerene leaders as actors in a series of highly romantic
scenes, in which were dearly displayed the true character
and principles of these dissenters and the calumnious nature of the
descriptions which had been given of them. Here were heroes and
situations deserving not only the attention of historians, but that
of poets and artists. Here were facts that outromanced fiction.
Here was something new for lovers of old-time tales and images,
and much bearing upon New England history at large, as well as
remarkable examples of Christian heroism. Here were questions
for the Christian scholar and statesman.
As they came to us out of the old records and writings, we present
the following facts concerning the Rogerenes to readers of this
generation as before a court of appeal. The enemies of this sect
have said their worst of them, largely by aid of false statements.
Now, for the first time, is presented, by many valid evidences, the
case for the Rogerenes.
.tb
Precedence has been given in this volume, to the work of the
senior author. That and the historical portion will be found
largely supplementary, each of the other.
The task which Mr. Bolles had undertaken was chiefly in correction
of certain erroneous statements which had been made in
newspaper articles and printed sermons, issued in his locality, most
of which statements had been derived from ecclesiastical authors,
who had found it expedient to adopt various current representations
and traditions which had appeared on the church side of the
.bn 015.png
.pn +1
controversy rather than to enter upon any research in this matter.
As will be seen, some portion of Mr. Bolle’s vindication had been
published in a local paper. This is comprised in the first chapter.
In compiling the History, careful search was made for every
item of reliable information concerning John Rogers and the Rogerenes,
and every fact that was discovered is set plainly before the
reader, in chronological order.
It would be quite possible for a reader to view the entire material
that has been examined for the production of this History.
The County Court records are at the county clerk’s office in Norwich.
The records of the Superior Court are in the secretary’s office,
in the State House, at Hartford. The records of the General
Court have been published and are to be found in many public
libraries. The Rogerene books still extant are very rare, so much
so that they could only be seen as a whole by going here and there
among the owners. The titles of these works will be found at the
end of the Appendix, together with statement of where single
copies may be found.
Some of the material used for the History is from “Letters of Mr.
Samuel Hubbard.” The portions of these letters quoted in this
work may be seen in Benedict’s “History of the Baptists.” The
“Journal of William Edmundson” and “The Life and Travels of
Samuel Bownas” have furnished some important particulars. These
two works are rare outside of Quaker libraries. Miss Caulkin’s
“History of New London,” from which quotations will be found,
is in many public libraries in New England and elsewhere.
The scandalous work of Peter Pratt, “The Prey Taken from the
Strong,” is in the Prince collection in the Boston Public Library
and in the Massachusetts Historical Society’s Library in Boston.
A copy of “The Reply of John Rogers 2nd” is in the Connecticut
Historical Library at Hartford. The last half of the original manuscript
of the Hempstead Diary is in the Historical Rooms at
New London, while the first half is at the “Old Hempstead House,”
at New London. This Diary has recently been published in book
form by the New London Historical Society.
.bn 016.png
.pn +1
“An Account of the Debate between Rev. Mather Byles and
The Brethren” of the Congregational Church of New London may
be seen in the New London Public Library.
An interesting side-light was furnished by Mr. Julius F. Sachse,
in his work entitled “The Ephrata Cloister,” Vol. II, Chapter IV.
As for spurious accounts of the Rogerenes to be found here and
there, in ecclesiastical and town histories, the falsity of which is
established in the course of this volume, mention of their authorship
will be found in the places of refutation. Other minor references
will be credited as they occur.
.tb
Our thanks are due to the Connecticut state librarian and his
assistants, to clerks in the secretary’s office, and to Mr. Bates of
the Connecticut Historical Library at Hartford, for the polite and
obliging manner in which they placed before us books and manuscripts
having a bearing upon this subject. Like courtesy was
shown us in the county clerk’s office, in Norwich, the town clerk’s
office in New London, and by the secretary of the New London
Historical Society. In the Yale College Library, we were shown
a copy of “An Answer to a Pamphlet,” by John Rogers, 2d, which
is the only copy we have discovered.
By researches in new lines, we have discovered some mistakes
regarding the Rogerenes made by that gifted and honored historian,
Miss Fanny M. Caulkins. Miss Caulkins was the first historian
to attempt careful and intelligent search in this obscure direction.
In her “History of New London” she has given a large
amount of accurate information concerning the Rogerenes, much
of which is quoted with advantage, in Part First, by Mr. Bolles.
It is to be hoped that we, in our turn, may be supplemented by
some historian favored with sources of information unknown to
ourselves, who will shed a still clearer light upon this subject, by
presentation of facts outside of our own field of observation.
.ll 68
.rj
A. B. W.
.ll
.bn 017.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h2
PART I. | A VINDICATION
.nf c
BY
JOHN R. BOLLES.
.nf-
.bn 018.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.ce
THE PATHWAY OF THE YEARS.
.pm start_poem
An onward path we have to tread,
We cannot see the way.
Faith, love and hope their radiance shed,
Here and thus far the years have led;
But of the steps that lie ahead
We know not one to-day.
Then pause, look back and courage take;
How bright the road appears!
Each foot that trod there helped to break
Rough places down, and for our sake
Were lived the lives that shining make
The pathway of the years.
Backward it reaches, firm and sure
The steps that trod the way,
In simple homes, with purpose pure,
Faith to inspire, hope to allure;
Men wrought for ends that still endure
And make us strong to-day.
The days to come are all unread,
Unguessed by hopes or fears;
But press with courage high ahead,
For still there grows beneath our tread,
The highway grand, by pilgrims made,
The pathway of the years.
We come of heroes! Be each soul
Loyal like theirs, and free,
A shrine of honor, a white scroll;
That, as life’s pages fresh unroll,
They who then read, may find the goal
We sought was heavenly.
.pm end_poem
.ll 60
.rj
Mary L. Bolles Branch.
.ll
.bn 019.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.ce
A VINDICATION.
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_1'
CHAPTER I.
.sp 2
.fs 90%
This chapter contains the substance of several letters, originally published
in the New London Day (1860), in reply to an article which had
previously appeared in that paper, misrepresenting the teachings and
conduct of the Rogerenes.
.fs 100%
.sp 4
A communication in the New London Day of December 9, 1886,
speaks of John Rogers and his followers, the Rogerenes, whose
distinctive existence spread over a period of more than a century
in the history of New London. The writer of the article referred
to followed the example of his predecessors who have spoken derisively
of this “sect,” either in not knowing whereof he affirmed
or in purposely misrepresenting these dissenters. We prefer to ascribe
the former, rather than the latter, reason.
Trumbull, in his “History of Connecticut,” charged John Rogers
with crimes from which the grand jury fully exonerated him, as by
its printed records may be seen. These false and scandalous
charges have been reiterated, again and again, and have found a
place in Barber’s “Historical Collections of Connecticut” against
the clearest testimony. His withdrawal from the standing religious
order of the day aroused such hatred that many false accusations
were made against him, which, like dragon’s teeth sown over the
land, have been springing up again and again.
The article which called forth these remarks doubtlessly derived
its errors from those sources. I will point out a few of its inaccuracies.
The author says, “The Rogerenes are a sect founded by John
Rogers in 1720.” John Rogers died in 1721, after a most active
dissemination of his principles for a period of about fifty years,
gathering many adherents during that time.
.bn 020.png
.pn +1
Again, he says, “They entered the churches half naked.” He
must have confounded the Boston Quakers with the Rogerenes, as
nothing of the kind was ever known of the latter. It is true that
Trumbull makes an assertion of this sort; but even Dr. Trumbull
cannot be regarded by close students as an example of accuracy—certainly
not as regards Rogerene history.
The inhabitants of New London plantation were not sinners
above other men. At the time James Rogers, senior, his wife,
sons and daughters were thrust into prison in New London, John
Bunyan was held in jail in England and said he would stay there
till the moss grew over his eyebrows, before he would deny his
convictions or cease to promulgate them. In the light of to-day,
neither of these committed any offense whatever. Hundreds of
the best of men suffered in like manner in England, and for a long
period of time; and some were given over to death. The reverend
father of Archbishop Leighton was, for conscience’s sake, held imprisoned
for more than twelve years, and not released until his
faculties, both of body and mind, were seriously impaired. Rev.
John Cotton, one of Boston’s earliest preachers, came out of prison
to this country. Religious thought was drenched, so to speak,
with false notions, and many, even of those who had escaped from
persecution in the Old World, became persecutors in the New.
Great praise is due to such men as Roger Williams, who fled
from Salem to the wilderness to escape banishment for his principles,
hibernating among Indians “without bed or board,” as he
expressed it, and whose ultimate settlement in Rhode Island made
that State the field of religious liberty. Equal praise is due to
John Rogers and his associates, at a later day, for boldly enunciating
the same principles, and bravely suffering in their defense,
ploughing the rough soil of Connecticut and sowing the good
seed there.
Nor was the treatment of the Rogerenes comparable for cruelty
with that of the Quakers at Boston, a few years prior to the Rogers
movement. We hear nothing of the cutting off of ears, boring the
tongue with a red-hot iron, banishment, selling into slavery or
.bn 021.png
.pn +1
punishment by death, which disgraced the civilization of the Massachusetts
colony and which was Puritanism with a vengeance, almost
leading us to sympathize with their persecutors in England.
New London plantation was disgraced by no such heathenism as
this.
St. Paul boasted that he was a citizen of no mean city. We
shall find that the Rogerenes are of no mean descent, sneered at
and held in derision though they have been, by men of superficial
thought.
James Rogers, senior, a prosperous and esteemed business man
of Milford, Conn., had dealings in New London as early as 1656,
and soon after became a resident. Says Miss Caulkins:—
.pm start_quote
He soon acquired property and influence and was much employed,
both in civil and ecclesiastical affairs. He was six times representative
to the General Court. Mr. Winthrop had encouraged his settlement
in the plantation and had accommodated him with a portion of his own
house lot next the mill, on which Rogers built a dwelling house of
stone. He was a baker on a large scale, often furnishing biscuit for
seamen and for colonial troops, and between 1660 and 1670 had a greater
interest in the trade of the port than any other person in the place.
His landed possessions were very extensive, consisting of several hundred
acres on the Great Neck, the fine tract of land at Mohegan, called
the Pamechaug Farm, several house lots in town and 2,400 acres east of
the river, which he held in partnership with Col. Pyncheon of Springfield.[2]
Perhaps no one of the early settlers of New London numbers at
the present day so great a throng of descendants. His five sons are the
progenitors of as many distinct lines. His daughters were women of
great energy of character. John Rogers, the third son of James, having
.bn 022.png
.pn +1
become conspicuous as the founder of a sect, which though small in
point of number has been of considerable local notoriety, requires a
more extended notice. No man in New London County was at one
time more noted than he; no one suffered so heavily from the arm of
the law, the tongue of rumor and the pens of contemporary writers.
John and James Rogers, Jr., in the course of trade, visited Newport,
R.I., and there first embraced Sabbatarian principles and were baptized
in 1674; Jonathan in 1675; James Rogers, senior, with his wife and
daughter Bathsheba, in 1676, and these were received as members of
the Seventh Day Church at Newport.[3]
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 2
Although New London, at that time, included all that is now known as Groton,
Ledyard, Stonington, Montville, Waterford and East Lyme, we find, by the proportion
which James Rogers paid for the support of the minister, that his property
amounted to about one-tenth of that of the entire plantation. The minister’s
salary was £80 a year. Says Miss Caulkins: “Rate lists for the minister’s tax are
extant for the years 1664, 1666 and 1667. In this list the amount of each man’s
taxable property is given and the rate levied upon it is carried out. The assessment
of James Rogers is nearly double that of any other inhabitant.” His rate
was £7 19s. 10d., nearly three times that of Governor Winthrop, which was £2 14s.
.fn-
.fn 3
The first Baptist church of Newport was formed before May, 1639, by
some excommunicated members of the church at Boston and others. From its
organization, it rejected the supervision of civil magistrates. Dr. John Clarke was
its founder and first pastor. In 1671, several member of Mr. Clarke’s church
organized themselves into the Sabbatarian or Seventh Day Baptist Church of
Newport (then Aquedneck) which James Rogers and his family joined, as above
stated.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
As James Rogers, senior, against whom even the tongue of slander
has been silent, was among the first to feel the ecclesiastical
lash, a few words more concerning him from the pen of Miss
Caulkins are here given:—
.pm start_quote
The elder James Rogers was an upright, circumspect man. His
death occurred in February, 1688. The will is on file in the probate
office in New London in the handwriting of his son John, from the
preamble of which we quote.
“What I have of this world I leave among you, desiring you not to
fall out about it; but let your love one to another appear more than to
the estate I leave with you, which is but of this world; and for your
comfort I signify to you that I have a perfect assurance of an interest
in Jesus Christ and an eternal happy estate in the world to come, and do
know and see that my name is written in the book of life, and therefore
mourn not for me as they that are without hope.”
.pm end_quote
Hollister, in his “History of Connecticut,” speaks of James
Rogers in high terms; although, in an evidently faithful following
.bn 023.png
.pn +1
of historical errors, he gives the common estimate of John Rogers
and his followers. Says Miss Caulkins:—
.pm start_quote
In 1676 the fines and imprisonments of James Rogers and his sons,
for profanation of the Sabbath,[4] commenced. For this and for neglect
of the established worship, they and some of their followers were usually
arraigned at every session of the court, for a long course of years. The
fine was at first five shillings, then ten shillings, then fifteen shillings.
At the June court,1677, the following persons were arraigned and each
fined £5:--James Rogers, senior, for high-handed, presumptuous profanation
of the Sabbath, by attending to his work; Elizabeth Rogers,
his wife, and James and Jonathan, for the same. John Rogers, on examination,
said he had been hard at work making shoes on the first
day of the week, and he would have done the same had the shop stood
under the window of Mr. Wetherell’s house; yea, under the window of
the meeting house. Bathsheba Smith, for fixing a scandalous paper on
the meeting house. Mary, wife of James Rogers, junior, for absence
from public worship.
Again, in September, 1677, the court ordered that John Rogers
should be called to account once a month and fined £5 each time;
others of the family were amerced to the same amount, for blasphemy
against the Sabbath, calling it an idol, and for stigmatizing the reverend
ministers as hirelings. After this, sitting in the stocks and whipping
were added.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 4
It will be understood that while “profaning” the first day Sabbath, they were
strictly keeping the scriptural seventh day Sabbath.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
This correspondent says, “The Rogerenes despised the authority
of law.” But only that which infringed upon their natural
rights and honest convictions of duty. To all other laws they
were obedient. Says Miss Caulkins:—
.pm start_quote
John Rogers maintained obedience to the civil government, except in
matters of conscience and religion. A town or county rate the Rogerenes
always considered themselves bound to pay; but the minister’s
rate they abhorred, denouncing as unscriptural all interference of the
civil power in the worship of God.
.pm end_quote
.bn 024.png
.pn +1
The Rogerenes were the first in this State to denounce the doctrine
of taxation without representation, the injustice of which is
now universally acknowledged. All their offences may be traced
to a determination to withstand and oppose ecclesiastical tyranny.
Pioneers in every great enterprise are sufferers, and pioneers in
thought are no exception to this rule. Other men have labored,
and we have entered into their labors. That principle for which
these heroes and heroines so valiantly and faithfully contended, in
the grim face of suffering and hate, the total divorcement of Church
and State, is now established. Has it not become the boast and
glory of the nation, the torch of liberty held aloft in the face of the
world? And does it not show the march of civilization that the
right of all to equal religious freedom, then so obnoxious, is now
fully confessed and sweet to the ear as chime of silver bells?
The venerable James Rogers, senior, with his wife, three sons
and two daughters, were, as we have seen, arraigned and fined £5
each at one session of the court, within two years from the time of
their alliance with the Seventh Day Baptist Church of Newport.
Other arraignments followed, and in the case of John Rogers, the
court ordered that he should be called to account every month and
fined £5 each time. Draco’s laws were said to have been written
in blood; Caligula set his on poles so high they could not be read;
but it was reserved for a New England court, in the perilous
times of which we are speaking, to pass sentence before the offense
was committed or trial had!
Nor have we but just entered into the vestibule of that temple
of ignorance, tyranny, and crime, which, even in the New London
plantation, reared its front and trailed its long shadow down a
century. But on the ashes of oppression thrives the tree of liberty.
Religious freedom was then emerging from the incrustation of
ages, as the bird picks its way through the shell to light and beauty.
Whippings and sittings in the stocks afterwards took place, yet
we hear of but a single attempt on the part of the Rogerenes to
interrupt the public worship of their enemies, until nearly eight
years of persecution had elapsed, and it should be remembered
.bn 025.png
.pn +1
that such interruption was not uncommon in those days; Quakers
doing the same in Boston, under like treatment.
We quote from the records of the court, 1685:—
.pm start_quote
John Rogers, James Rogers, Jr., Samuel Beebe, Jr., and Joanna Way
are complained of for profaning God’s holy day with servile work, and
are grown to that height of impiety as to come at several times into the
town to rebaptise several persons; and, when God’s people were met
together on the Lord’s Day to worship God, several of them came and
made great disturbance, behaving themselves in such a frantic manner
as if possessed with a diabolical spirit, so affrighting and amazing that
several women swooned and fainted away.[5] John Rogers to be whipped
fifteen lashes and for unlawfully re-baptising, to pay £5. The others
to be whipped.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 5
For particular account of this and a previous countermove, see #Part II, Chap. 2.:ch_2_2#
.fn-
.fm rend=t
The Quakers at Boston had been charged with having a similar
spirit, and, almost simultaneously with this complaint, witches, so-called,
were hung at Salem. Mr. Burroughs, a preacher, being a
small man, was charged with holding out a long-barrelled gun
straight with one hand. He defended himself by saying that an
Indian did the same thing. “Ah! that’s the black man!” said
the judge, meaning the devil helped him do the deed. Burroughs
was hung! It was said of Jesus of Nazareth, “He hath a devil.”
There was no printing-press at that time in New London, and
had there been it would have served the will of the dominant
power, not that of the persecuted few. Bathsheba Smith had been
previously fined £5 for attaching a paper to the side of the meeting-house,
setting forth their grievances. If John Rogers had undertaken
to harangue an audience in the street, it might have been
regarded as a still greater offense. It may be said to be an unlawful
act to present their case and assert their rights in this manner;
but an unlawful act is sometimes justified by circumstances.
It would be an unlawful act to go to your neighbor’s house in the
night, knock loudly at his door, disturb the inmates and call out
to them while quietly sleeping in their beds; but, if the house
.bn 026.png
.pn +1
were on fire, it would be a right and merciful act. Great exigencies
justify extraordinary conduct. What would be wrong under
certain conditions would be right under others.
It may be said that this course would not be tolerated at the
present day. Neither, we add, would the acts that led to it. The
prophet was at one time commanded to speak unto the people,
whether they would hear or whether they would forbear. With
our imperfect knowledge of the circumstances of the case, it may
be impossible, at this date, to judge rightly of its merits. Elizabeth
Rogers was charged with stigmatizing the reverend clergy as
hirelings, and with calling the Sabbath an idol. She was fined
five pounds. There was not much freedom of speech in those
days. As to calling the Sabbath an idol, that was no more than
saying it was unduly reverenced. It was so among the Jews, at
the time our Saviour endeavored to disabuse them of the fallacy
and to teach them that “the Sabbath was made for man and not
man for the Sabbath.” The brazen serpent ordained of God for
the healing of the people, when it became an object of idolatrous
worship, was ordered to be taken to pieces.
Miss Caulkins says:—
.pm start_quote
One of the most notorious instances of contempt exhibited by Rogers
against the religious worship of his fellow-townsmen was the sending of
a wig to a contribution made in aid of the ministry.
.pm end_quote
This was in derision of the full-bottomed wigs then worn by the
Congregational clergy.
We sympathize with him in his contempt of the ornament, if
such it may be called, of which the portraits of the Rev. Mr. Saltonstall
present a rich specimen. An ancient bishop refused to
administer the rite of baptism to one thus garnitured, saying,
“Take that thing away; I will not bless the head of a dead man.”
John Rogers made an apologetic confession of this offense, which
may be seen upon the town records to-day, viz.:—
.bn 027.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
Whereas I, John Rogers of New London, did rashly and unadvisedly
send a periwigg to the contribution of New London, which did reflect
dishonor upon that which my neighbors, ye inhabitants of New London,
account the ways and ordinances of God and ministry of the Word, to
the greate offense of them, I doe herebye declare that I am sorry for the
sayde action and doe desire all those whom I have offended to accept
this my publique acknowledgment as full satisfaction.
.ll 68
.rj
John Rogers.
.ll
.pm end_quote
A young man, sensible that his life had not been what it ought
to have been, and resolving upon amendment, sought his father
and made frank acknowledgment of his faults. Having done so,
he said, “Now, father, don’t you think you ought to confess a
little to me?” We think some confessions were also due from
the other side.
The nest in which is hatched the bird of Jove is built of rough
sticks and set in craggy places. Again, it is stirred up that the
young eaglet may spread its wings and seek the sun. The victor’s
laurels are not cheaply gained; conflict and struggle are the price.
Sparks flash from collision. Lightnings cleanse the air. The
geode is broken to free the gem that lies within. Diamonds are
cut and polished ere they shed forth their splendor. Great good
is usually ushered in by great labor and sacrifice. It is so with
liberty. Let us tread about its altars with reverence, with unshod
feet; altars from which have ascended flames so bright as to illumine
earth, and offerings so sweet as to propitiate heaven. The
unjust and tyrannical laws by which the early battlers for religious
freedom in this section were assailed have long since been erased
from the statutes of the State. The tide of public sentiment had
swollen to such height, in which all denominations except the
standing order were a unit, that they were wiped out, and their
existence was made impossible in the future. That the Rogerene
movement largely contributed to bring about this result will be
shown. Of the hardships, loss of liberty, loss of property, etc.,
which the Rogerenes endured for conscience’s sake, Miss Caulkins
speaks thus:—
.bn 028.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
Attempts were made to weary them out and break them up by a
series of fines, imposed upon presentments of the grand jury. These
fines were many times repeated, and the estates of the offenders melted
under the seizures of the constable as snow melts before the sun. The
course was a cruel one and by no means popular. At length, the magistrates
could scarcely find an officer willing to perform the irksome task
of distraining.
The demands of collectors, the brief of the constable, were ever molesting
their habitations. It was now a cow, then a few sheep, the
oxen at the plow, the standing corn, the stack of hay, the threshed
wheat, and, anon, piece after piece of land, all taken from them to uphold
a system which they denounced.
.pm end_quote
Further details of their sufferings will be omitted in this place;
but the famous suit of Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall against John
Rogers demands and shall receive dose attention.
It was while Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall was minister of the church
of New London, and through his influence, that John Rogers was
expatriated, so to speak, and mercilessly confined three years and
eight months in the jail at Hartford, “as guilty of blasphemy.”
Shortly after his release, Rev. Mr. Saltonstall brought a suit against
John Rogers for defaming his character. The following is the
record of the court:—
.pm start_quote
At a session of the County Court, held at New London, September
20th, 1698, members of the court, Capt. Daniel Wetherell, esq., Justices
William Ely and Nathaniel Lynde, Mr. Gurdon Saltonstall, minister of
the gospel, plf. pr. contra John Rogers, Sr., def’t, in an action of the
case for defamation.
Whereas you, the said John Rogers, did some time in the month of
June last, raise a lying, false and scandalous report against him, the
said Mr. Gurdon Saltonstall, and did publish the same in the hearing
of diverse persons, that is to say, did, in their hearing, openly declare
that the said Saltonstall, having promised to dispute with you publicly on
the holy Scriptures, did, contrary to his said engagement, shift or wave
the said dispute which he promised you, which said false report he, the
said Saltonstall, complaineth of as to his great scandal and to his damage
.bn 029.png
.pn +1
unto such value as shall to the said court be made to appear. In this
action the jury finds for the plaintiff £600 and costs of court £1 10s.
.pm end_quote
The £600 damages, equal perhaps to $10,000 at the present day,
was not more remarkable than the suit itself, which had no legal
foundation. Lorenzo Dow tells “how to lie, cheat and kill according
to law.” But here is a deed—ought we not to call it a
robbery?—done under cover, without the authority, of law. For
the words alleged to have been spoken, action of slander was not
legal. That this may be made clear to the general reader, we
quote the language of the law from Selwyn’s “Digest”:—
.pm start_quote
An action on the case lies against any person for falsely and maliciously
speaking and publishing of another, words which directly charge
him with any crime for which the offender is punishable by law. In
order to sustain this action it is essentially necessary that the words
should contain an express imputation of some crime liable to punishment,
some capital offense or other infamous crime or misdemeanor.
An imputation of the mere defect or want of moral virtues, moral duties,
or obligations is not sufficient.
.pm end_quote
To call a man a liar is not actionable; but the offensive words
charged upon Rogers do not necessarily impute as much as this.
There might have been a mistake or a misunderstanding on both
sides, or Mr. Saltonstall may, for good reason, have changed his
purpose. No crime was charged upon him, which we have seen is
necessary to support the action. “Where the words are not actionable
in themselves and the only ground of action is the special
damage, such damage must be proved as alleged.” In this case
no special damage, is alleged and of course none proved. The
causes of the suit were too trifling for further discussion. Falsehood
need not rest upon either. Duplicity was no part of Roger’s
character, and, since we have spoken a word for him, we will let
the Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall speak for himself, as quoted by Mr.
McEwen in his “Bi-Centennial Discourse”:—
.bn 030.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
“There never was,” said Gov. Saltonstall in a letter to Sir Henry
Ashurst, “for this twenty years that I have resided in this government,
any one, Quaker or other person, that suffered on account of his different
persuasion in religious matters from the body of this people.”
.pm end_quote
We may suppose that Mr. Saltonstall thought he had done a
brilliant act, to recover from John Rogers a sum equal to about
six year’s salary. But there are scales that never grow rusty and
dials that do not tire. Time, the great adjuster of all things, will
have its avenges.
While the least peccadilloes of the Rogerenes have been searched
out as with candles and published from pulpit and from press, no
one of their enemies has ever found it convenient to name this
high-handed act of oppression, as shown in the suit referred to.
Perhaps they have viewed it in the light that the Scotchman did
his text, when he said, “Brethren, this is a very difficult text; let
us look it square in the face and pass on.” They may not even
have looked it in the face.
Last, if not least, of the unauthenticated anecdotes narrated by
Mr. McEwen of the Rogerenes, in his half-century sermon, which
we would not care to unearth, but which has recently been republished
in The Outlook, is here given:—
.pm start_quote
One of this sect, who was employed to pave the gutters of the streets,
prepared himself with piles of small stones, by the wayside, that when
Mr. Adams was passing to church, he might dash them into the slough,
to soil the minister’s black dress. But, getting no attention from the
object of his rudeness, who simply turned to avoid the splash, the nonplussed
persecutor cried out, “Woe unto thee, Theophilus, Theophilus,
when all men speak well of thee!”
.pm end_quote
When we remember that Mr. Adam’s name was not Theophilus,
and that, if it was on Sunday that the preacher was going to church,
the gutters would not have been in process of paving, a shadow of
doubt falls upon this story.
But Mr. McEwen throws heavier stones at the Rogerenes, which
.bn 031.png
.pn +1
we are compelled to notice, and shall see what virtue there is in
them.
Why, in speaking of the Rogerenes, in his half-century sermon,
does he say: “To pay taxes of any sort grieved their souls”?
when they were so exact to render to Cæsar the things that are
Cæsar’s, and unto God the things that are God’s? Miss Caulkins
fully exonerates them from this charge. We repeat her words:—
.pm start_quote
He (John Rogers) maintained also obedience to the civil government,
except in matters of conscience and religion. A town or county
rate the Rogerenes always considered themselves bound to pay; but the
minister’s rate they abhorred.
.pm end_quote
Why should they not? Would not the Congregational church
at that time have abhorred such a tax imposed upon them to support
the Baptist ministry? Until we are willing to concede to
others the rights that we claim for ourselves, we are not the followers
of Him who speaketh from heaven. But the most glaring
wrong done to these dissenters by the standing order, outvying
perhaps Gov. Saltonstall’s groundless suit for damages, is found in
the course taken by the magistrates, unrebuked, who, however
small was the fine or however large the value of the property
distrained, returned nothing to the victims of their injustice.
Says John Rogers, Jr.:—
.pm start_quote
For a fine of ten shillings, the officer first took ten sheep, and then
complained that they were not sufficient to answer the fine and charges,
whereupon, he came a second time and took a milch cow out of the
pasture, and so we heard no more about it, by which I suppose the
cow and the ten sheep satisfied the fine and charges.
.pm end_quote
As showing the absurd and unjust treatment that John Rogers
endured at the hands of the civil and ecclesiastical power, we
quote from Miss Caulkins. Clearly he was right with regard to
the jurisdiction of the court:—
.bn 032.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
In 1711, he was fined and imprisoned for misdemeanor in court, contempt
of its authority and vituperation of the judges. He himself states
that his offense consisted in charging the court with injustice for trying
a case of life and death without a jury. This was in the case of one
John Jackson, for whom Rogers took up the battle axe. Instead of
retracting his words, he defends them and reiterates the charge. Refusing
to give bonds for his good behavior until the next term of court, he
was imprisoned in New London jail. This was in the winter season
and he thus describes his condition:—
“My son was wont in cold nights to come to the grates of the window
to see how I did, and contrived privately to help me to some fire, etc.
But he, coming in a very cold night, called to me, and perceiving that I
was not in my right senses, was in a fright, and ran along the street,
crying, ‘The authority hath killed my father’; upon which the town
was raised, and forthwith the prison doors were opened and fire brought
in, and hot stones wrapt in cloth and laid at my feet and about me, and
the minister Adams sent me a bottle of spirits, and his wife a cordial,
whose kindness I must acknowledge.
“But when those of you in authority saw that I recovered, you had
up my son and fined him for making a riot in the night, and took, for the
fine and charge, three of the best cows I had.”
.pm end_quote
John Bolles, born in 1677, a disciple of John Rogers, in his
book entitled “True Liberty of Conscience is in Bondage to No
Flesh,” makes this statement, on page 98:—
.pm start_quote
To my knowledge, was taken from a man, only for the costs of a
justice’s court and court charge of whipping him for breach of the
Sabbath (so-called) a mare worth a hundred pounds, and nothing returned,
and this is known by us yet living, to have been the general
practice in Connecticut.
.pm end_quote
His biographer adds, “Mr. Bolles was doubtless that man.”
We quote further from John Bolles:—
.pm start_quote
And as he (John Rogers) saith hitherto, so may we say now, fathers
taken from their wives and children, without any regard to distance of
.bn 033.png
.pn +1
place, or length of time. Sometimes fathers and mothers both taken
and kept in prison, leaving their fatherless and motherless children to
go mourning about the streets.
When a poor man hath had but one milch cow for his family’s comfort,
it hath been taken away; or when he hath had only a small beast
to kill for his family, it hath been taken from him, to answer a fine for
going to a meeting of our own society, or to defray the charges of a
cruel whipping for going to such a meeting, or things of this nature.
Yea, £12 or £14 worth of estate hath been taken to defray the charges
of one such whipping, without making any return as the law directs.
And this latter clause in the law is seldom attended.
Yea, fourscore and odd sheep have been taken from a man, being all
his flock; a team taken from the plough, with all its furniture, and led
away. But I am not now about giving a particular account; for it
would contain a book of a large volume to relate all that hath been
taken from us, and as unreasonable and boundless as these.
.pm end_quote
Mr. McEwen says derisively:—
.pm start_quote
Their goods were distrained; their cattle were sold at the post, and
some of their people were imprisoned. But, emulating the example of
the apostles, they took joyfully the spoiling of their goods; yea, they
gloried in bonds and imprisonment.
.pm end_quote
It was not the apostles, but the Hebrews, to whom the apostle
wrote, who took joyfully the spoiling of their goods. A small
matter, it may seem, to correct; but accuracy of Scripture quotation
may be a Rogerene trait, and the writer will be proud if it be
said, “Surely, thou art also one of them, for thy speech bewrayeth
thee.”
The subject on which we have entered opens and broadens and
deepens before us, blending with all history and all truth. It is
not exceptional, it is not isolated. It may not be blotted from
memory, as it cannot be blotted from existence, painfully interwoven
as it is with the mottled fabric of time. The world’s greatest
benefactors have often been its greatest sufferers. Socrates was
made to drink the fatal hemlock, for not believing in the gods acknowledged
.bn 034.png
.pn +1
by the state. Seneca, the moralist, was put to death
by his ungrateful pupil, Nero. The first followers of Christ were
persecuted, tortured and slain by the heathen world. Attaining to
civil power, Christians treated in like manner their fellow Christians.
Ecclesiastical history, wherever there has been an alliance
of church and state, is blackened with crimes and cruelties too
foul to be named. Recall the nameless horrors of the Inquisition,
perpetrated under such rule. Think of Smithfield and the bloody
queen.
Is it to be wondered at that the Rogerenes, meeting persecution
at every turn, should have been aroused to a sublimity of courage,
perhaps of defiance, against the tide of intolerance which had
swept over the ages and was now wildly dashing its unspent
waves across their path? Not until more than a century later did
the potent word of Christian enlightenment go forth, “Hitherto
shalt thou come, but no further; and here shall thy proud waves be
stayed.”
Passing a period of fifty years, darkened with wrongs and cruelties,
the following notice of whipping is here given. It is necessary
to present facts, that we may form a true judgment of the character
and mission of this sect, which had at least the honor, like that
of the early Christians, of being “everywhere spoken against.”
From the “Life of John Bolles” we take the following:—
.pm start_quote
I have before me a copy of the record of proceedings, in July, 1725,
before Joseph Backus, Esq., a magistrate of Norwich, Conn., against
Andrew Davis, John Bolles, and his son Joseph Bolles (a young man of
twenty-four years), John Rogers (the younger), Sarah Culver and others,
charged with Sabbath breaking, by which it appears that for going on
Sunday, from Groton and New London, to attend Baptist worship in
Lebanon, they were arrested on Sunday, imprisoned till the next day
and then heavily fined, the sentence being that if fine and costs were
not paid they should be flogged on the bare back for non-payment of
fine, and then lie in jail till payment of costs. As none of them would
pay, they were all flogged, the women as well as the men, John Bolles
receiving fifteen stripes and each of the others ten.
.bn 035.png
.pn +1
According to the statement of one of the sufferers, Mary Mann of
Lebanon wished to be immersed, and applied to John Rogers (the
younger) and his society for baptism. Notice was publicly posted some
weeks beforehand that on Monday, July 26th, 1725, she would be baptised
and that a religious meeting would be held in Lebanon on Sunday,
July 25th, “the day,” says Rogers, “on which we usually meet, as well
as the rest of our neighbors.”[6] When the Sunday came, a company of
Baptists, men and women, from Groton and New London, set out for
Lebanon, by the county road that led through Norwich. The passage
through Norwich was so timed as not to interfere with the hours of
public worship. After they had passed through the village, they were
pursued and stopped, brought back to Norwich, imprisoned until Monday,
and then tried, convicted and sentenced for Sabbath breaking. It
must be added that a woman who was thus stripped and flogged was
pregnant at the time, and that the magistrate who ordered the whipping
stood by and witnessed the execution of the sentence. This outrage was
much talked of throughout New England, and led to the publication of
divers proclamations and pamphlets.
Deputy Governor Jenks, of Rhode Island, the following January,
having obtained a copy of the proceedings against Davis and the others,
ordered it to be publicly posted in Providence, to show the people of
Rhode Island “what may be expected from a Presbyterian government,”
and appended to it an indignant official proclamation.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 6
About 1705, the Rogerene Society came to the conclusion that the Jewish
Sabbath and ordinances were, according to the teachings of the New Testament,
done away with by the new dispensation, and they began to hold their meetings on
Sunday as the more convenient day. See #Part II, Chap. VI:ch_2_6#.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
.ce
Governor Jenk’s Proclamation.
.pm start_quote
I order this to be set up in open view, in some public place, in the
town of Providence, that the inhabitants may see and be sensible of
what may be expected from a Presbyterian government, in case they
should once get the rule over us. Their ministers are creeping in
amongst us with adulatious pretense, and declare their great abhorrence
to their forefather’s sanguinary proceedings with the Quakers, Baptists
and others. I am unwilling to apply Prov. xxvi, 25, to any of them;
.bn 036.png
.pn +1
but we have a specimen of what has lately been acted in a Presbyterian
government, which I think may suppose it sits a queen and shall see no
sorrow. I may fairly say of some of the Presbyterian rulers and Papists,
as Jacob once said of his two sons, Gen. xlix, 5 and 6 verses, “They
are brethren, instruments of cruelty are in their habitations! O, my
soul, come not thou into their secret! Unto their assembly, mine
honor, be thou not united!” Amos v, 7, “They who turn judgment
into wormwood and leave off righteousness in the earth.” Chapter vi,
12, “For they have turned judgment into gall, and the fruit of righteousness
into hemlock!” And I think in whomsoever the spirit of persecution
restest there cannot be much of the spirit of God. And I must
observe that, notwithstanding the Presbyterian pretended zeal to a
strict observance of a first day Sabbath was such that those poor people
might not be suffered to travel from Groton to Lebanon on that day, on
a religious occasion, as hath been minded, but must be apprehended as
gross malefactors and unmercifully punished; yet, when a Presbyterian
minister, which hath a great fame for abilities, hath been to preach in
the town of Providence, why truly then the Presbyterians have come
flocking in, upon the first day of the week, to hear him, from Rehoboth,
and the furthest parts of Attleborough, and from Killingly, which is
much further than John Rogers and his friends were travelling; and
this may pass for a Godly zeal; but the other must be punished for a
sinful action. Oh! the partiality of such nominal Christians!
.ll 68
.rj
Joseph Jenks, Dep. Gov.
.ll
.pm end_quote
.bn 037.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_2'
CHAPTER II.
.sp 2
In the contemplation of noble deeds, we become more noble,
and by the just anathematizing of error our love of truth is made
stronger. As the bee derives honey from nauseous substances, so
we would extract good even from wrongdoing. It is with no
spirit of animosity towards any one that we pursue this subject.
No word of palliation for the acts of the Rogerenes, no admission
of wrong done to them by their opponents, is heard from the
ecclesiastical side. Perhaps even the severity of the statements
made against them may be an evidence in their favor.
The Rev. Mr. Saltonstall began his ministry in New London in
1688, at the age of twenty-two. This was about twelve years after
the prosecutions against the Rogers family, for non-conformity,
had commenced. In 1691, he was ordained, and continued to
preach until 1708, when he was chosen governor of the State and
abandoned the ministry altogether. Bred in the narrow school of
ecclesiasticism, and of a proud and dominant spirit, the day-star
of religious liberty seems not even to have dawned upon his mind.
He was virulent in his enmity to John Rogers from the beginning.
The Furies have been said to relent; his rancor showed no
abatement.
In 1694, he presented charges of blasphemy against John Rogers,
without the knowledge of the latter, and while he was confined in
New London jail. We copy the following extract, from a statement
made by John Rogers, Jr., writing in defence of his father,
which shows how closely he was watched by his adversaries, that
they might find grounds of accusation against him.
Peter Pratt, of whom we shall say more hereafter, an author
mainly quoted by historians on the subject we are discussing, in a
pamphlet traducing the character of John Rogers, and written
after his death, had said of his treatment in Hartford: “His whippings
.bn 038.png
.pn +1
there were for most audacious contempt of authority; his
sitting on the gallows was for blasphemous words.”
To which John Rogers, Jr., thus replies:—
.pm start_quote
First, he asserts that his whippings there—viz., at Hartford—“were
for most audacious contempt of Authority”; but doth not inform the
reader what the contempt was; making himself the judge, as well as
the witness, whereas it was only his business to have proved what the
contempt was, and to have left the judgment to the reader.
And forasmuch as his assertion is altogether unintelligible, so may it
reasonably be expected that my answer must be by supposition, and is
as follows:—
“I suppose he intends that barbarous cruelty which was acted on
John Rogers, while he was a prisoner at Hartford, in the time of his
long imprisonment above mentioned, which was so contrary to the laws
of God and kingdom of England, that I never could find that they made
a record of that matter, according to Christ’s words, John iii, 20, ‘For
every one that doeth evil hateth the light,’ etc.
“But John Rogers has given a large relation about it, as may be seen
in his book entitled, ‘A Midnight Cry.’ From pages 12-15, where he asserts
that he was taken out of Prison, he knew not for what, and tied to
the Carriage of a great gun, where he had seventy-six stripes on his
naked body, with a whip much larger than the lines of a drum, with
knots at the end as big as a walnut, and in that maimed condition was
returned to prison again; and his bed, which he had hired at a dear
rate, taken from him, and not so much as straw allowed him to lie on,
it being on the eighteenth day of the eighth month, called October, and
very cold weather.”
And although myself, with a multitude of spectators, who were present
at Hartford and saw this cruel act, can testify to the truth of the
account which he gives of it, yet I cannot inform the reader on what
account it was that he suffered it, or what he was charged with; for, as
I said before, I never could find a record of that matter.
But if it was for contempt of Authority, as Peter Pratt asserts, then
I think those that inflicted such a punishment were more guilty of contempt
against God than John Rogers was of contempt against the
Authority; for God in his holy law has strictly commanded Judges not
to exceed forty stripes on any account, as may be seen, Deut. xxv, 3, “So
.bn 039.png
.pn +1
that for Judges to exceed forty stripes is high contempt against God.”
In the next place, he adds that “his sitting on the gallows was for
blasphemous words.”
Reply:—
Here again he ought to have informed the reader what the words
were, which doubtless would have been more satisfaction to the reader
than for Peter Pratt to make himself both witness and judge, and so
leave nothing for the reader to do but to remain as ignorant as before
they saw his book.
And he might as well have said of the Martyr Stephen that his suffering
was for blasphemous words, as what he says of John Rogers, for it
was but the judgment of John Roger’s persecutors that the words were
blasphemous, and so it was the judgment of the Martyr Stephen’s persecutors
that he was guilty of speaking blasphemous words, as may be
seen, Acts vi, 13, “This man ceaseth not to speak blasphemous
words,” etc. Whereupon they put him to death.
In the next place, I shall give the reader an account of what these
words were for which John Rogers was charged with blasphemy; the
account of which here follows:—
He being at a house in New London where there were many persons
present, was giving a description of the state of an unregenerate person,
and also of the state of a sanctified person; wherein he alleged that the
body of an unregenerate person was a body of sin, and that Satan had
his habitation there. And, on the contrary, that the body of a sanctified
person was Christ’s body, and that Christ dwelt in such a body.
Whereupon, one of the company asked him whether he intended the
humane body, to which he replied that he did intend the humane
body. Whereupon, the person replied again, “Will you say that your
humane body is Christ’s body?” to which he replied, clapping his
hand on his breast, “Yes, I do affirm that this humane body is Christ’s
body; for Christ has purchased it with His precious blood; and I am
not my own, for I am bought with a price.”
Whereupon, two of the persons present gave their testimony as follows:
“We being present, saw John Rogers clap his hand on his breast
and say, ‘This is Christ’s humane body.’” But they omitted the other
words which John Rogers joined with it.
And because I was very desirous to have given those testimonies
out of the Secretary’s Office, I took a journey to Hartford on purpose
.bn 040.png
.pn +1
but the Secretary could not find them; yet, forasmuch as myself was
present, both when the words were spoken, and also at the trial at
Hartford, I am very confident that I have given them verbatim. And
whether or no this was blasphemy, I desire not to be the judge, but am
willing to leave the judgment to every unprejudiced reader.
.pm end_quote
The words of John Rogers were perfectly scriptural, as will be
understood by every intelligent reader of the Bible.
The Apostle speaks of the church as the body of Christ. Again,
“Know ye not that your bodies are the members of Christ?”
And other passages to the same effect.
The cry of blasphemy has been a favorite device with murderers
and persecutors in all ages.
When Naboth was set on high by Ahab to be slain, proclamation
was made, “This man hath blasphemed God and the King.”
“For a good work we stone you not,” said the Jews to Christ,
“but for blasphemy.” And the high priest said of Christ himself,
“What need we any further witness? Have we not heard his
blasphemy from his own mouth?”
Miss Caulkins, in her “History of New London,” although inclined
to favor the ecclesiastical side, says: “The offences of the
Rogerenes were multiplied and exaggerated, both by prejudice and
rumor. Doubtless a sober mind would not now give so harsh a
name to expressions which our ancestors deemed blasphemous.”
It will be remembered that in 1677, “the court ordered that
John Rogers should be called to account once a month and fined
£5 each time,” irrespective of his innocence or guilt, and without
trial of either. This unrighteous order would seem to have been
in force fifteen years later, viz., in November, 1692. “At that
time,” says Miss Caulkins, “besides his customary fines for working
on the Sabbath and for baptizing, he was amerced £4 for entertaining
Banks and Case (itinerant exhorters) for a month or
more at his house.”—“Customary fines!”
In the spring of 1694, Rogers was transferred from the New
London to the Hartford Prison. Why was this transfer made?
Perhaps that the charges of blasphemy brought against him might
.bn 041.png
.pn +1
with more certainty be sustained where he was not known. Perhaps
that the sympathies of the people would not be as likely to
find expression there as they sometimes did at his outrageous treatment
in New London; as will be seen. Or, by a more rigorous
treatment he might be made to submit.
In Hartford he was placed in charge of a cruel and unprincipled
jailer, who was entirely subservient to the will of his enemies,
and who told John Rogers he would make him comply with their
worship, if the authorities could not.
What prompted, we might ask, the unusual and merciless treatment
that he received during this imprisonment at Hartford? He
had not offended the authorities nor the people there; he was a
stranger in their midst. The same remorseless spirit that had
delivered him up to them as guilty of blasphemy was doubtless the
moving, animating cause of such savage conduct. Scarcely four
months had elapsed after his release from the Hartford prison
where he had been confined nearly four years, before the Rev.
Gurdon Saltonstall brought a suit of defamation against him, for
the most trivial reasons, as we have seen (Chapter I), and upon no
legal grounds whatever; yet a parasitical jury awarded the august
complainant damages in the unconscionable sum of £600. Of
this proceeding, Miss Caulkins, in her “History of New London,”
says: “Rogers had not been long released from prison, before he
threw himself into the very jaws of the lion, as it were, by provoking
a personal collision with Mr. Saltonstall, the minister of the
town.”
“Jaws of the lion!” Perhaps Miss Caulkins builded wiser than
she knew. We had not ourselves presumed to characterize Mr.
Saltonstall as the king of beasts; but, since John Rogers, so far as
we know, was never charged with deviation from the truth, except
in the above mentioned suit, while the Rev. Mr. Saltonstall was
not above suspicion, as will appear by the false charge of blasphemy
he brought against Rogers, and by other acts of which we shall
speak hereafter, we will leave the reader to judge on which side
the truth lay in this case.
.bn 042.png
.pn +1
It should be remembered that years had elapsed after the fines,
imprisonments, etc., of Rogers had commenced—for non-attendance
at the meetings of the standing order, for baptizing, breach
of the Sabbath, etc.—before he was charged with entering the
meeting-house in time of public worship and remonstrating there
with the people. It was not in self-defence alone, it was in defence
of justice that he spoke. Who were the first aggressors?
Who disturbed him in the performance of the baptismal rites?
Who interfered with his meetings? Who entered them as spies,
to lay the foundation for suits against him? These things have
not been referred to; they have not been confessed; they have not
been apologized for, on the part of the standing order. If John
Rogers was such a terrible sinner for what he did to them, how
much greater accountability will they have to meet who, without
any just cause, made their attack upon him!
There are fires burning in the heart of every good man that
cannot be quenched. As well undertake to smother the rays of
the sun or to confine ignited dynamite. We would not justify
breach of courtesy, or any other law not contrary to the law of
God; but there are times when to be silent would be treason to
truth.
John Roger’s father was the largest taxpayer in the colony,
and had himself alone been subjected to the payment of one-tenth
part of the cost of building the meeting-house, while John
Rogers and his adherents, who were industrious, frugal, and thrifty
people—or they never could have sustained the immense fines
imposed upon them without being brought to abject poverty—had
probably paid as much more; so we may suppose that at
least one-fifth of the meeting-house, strictly speaking, belonged to
them, while they were constantly being taxed for the support of
this church of their persecutors.
The meeting-house was, in those times, quite often used for
public purposes; in fact, the courts were frequently held there.
How, upon a week day, could he have found an audience of his
persecutors, or permission to address them? If he had published
.bn 043.png
.pn +1
a circular it would have been deemed a scandalous paper, for
which he might have been fined and imprisoned. He could
scarcely get at the ear of the people in any other way than by the
course he took, and he could in no other way put as forcible a
check upon the church party persecutions of his own sect.
There are volcanoes in nature; may there not be such in the
moral world? Who knows but they are safety valves to the
whole system. It cannot be denied that the church gave ample
and repeated occasion to call from these reformers something more
than the sound of the lute. These moral upheavings must tend to
a sublime end, and like adversity have their sweet uses. We are
now breathing the fragrance of the flower planted in the dark soil
of those turbulent times. Of the Puritanism of New England, we
must say it is bespattered with many a blot, which ought not to
be passed over with zephyrs of praise. “Fair weather cometh out
of the north. Men see not the bright light in the cloud. The
wind passeth over and cleanseth them.” Let us revere the names
of all who, in the face of suffering and loss, have dared to stand
up boldly in truth’s defence.
To impress men to haul an apostle of liberty from jail to jail,
break into the sanctity of family relations, imprison fathers and
mothers, purloin their property, for no just cause whatever, leaving
their children to cry in the streets for bread, and this under
the cloak of religion, is an offence incomparably greater than to
make one’s voice heard in vindication of truth, even in a meeting-house.
The offences of John Rogers, whatever they may have been,
encountering opposition with opposition, in which facts were the
only swords, and words the only lash, are as insignificant as the
fly on the elephant’s back compared with the treatment that he
and his followers received from those who had fled from persecution
in the Old World to stain their own hands with like atrocities
in the New.
Of the almost unprecedented suffering and cruelties which John
Rogers endured for conscience’s sake, and in the cause of religious
.bn 044.png
.pn +1
freedom, for many years, and particularly of his confinement in
the Hartford prison, he here tells the story, written by himself
about twelve years after his release from that prison. See “Midnight
Cry,” pages 4-16:—
.pm start_quote
Friends and Brethren:—
I have found it no small matter to enter in at the straight gate and
to keep the narrow way that leads unto life; for it hath led me to forsake
a dear wife and children, yea, my house and land and all my
worldly enjoyment, and not only so, but to lose all the friendships of
the world, yea, to bury all my honor and glory in the dust, and to be
counted the off-scouring and filth of all things; yea, the straight and
narrow way hath led me into prisons, into stocks and to cruel scourgings,
mockings and derision, and I could not keep in it without perfect
patience under all these things; for through much tribulation must we
enter into the kingdom of God.
I have been a listed soldier under His banner now about thirty-two
years, under Him whose name is called the Word of God, who is my
Captain and Leader, that warreth against the devil and his angels,
against whom I have fought many a sore battle, within this thirty-two
years, for refusing to be subject to the said devil’s or dragon’s laws,
ordinances, institutions and worship; and for disregarding his ministers,
for which transgressions I have been sentenced to pay hundreds of
pounds, laid in iron chains, cruelly scourged, endured long imprisonments,
set in the stocks many hours together, out of the bounds of all
human law, and in a cruel manner.
Considering who was my Captain and Leader, and how well He had
armed me for the battle, I thought it my wisdom to make open proclamation
of war against the dragon, accordingly I did, in writing, and
hung it out on a board at the prison window, but kept no copy of it,
but strangely met with a copy of it many years after, and here followeth
a copy of it. (See #Part II, Chapter IV.:ch_2_4#) This proclamation of War
was in the first month, and in the year 1694. It did not hang long at
the Prison window before a Captain, who also was a Magistrate, came
to the prison window and told me he was a Commission Officer and
that proclamations belonged to him to publish; and so he took it away
with him, and I never heard anything more about it from the Authority
themselves; but I heard from others, who told me they were present and
.bn 045.png
.pn +1
heard it read among the Authority, with great laughter and sport at
the fancy of it.
But the Dragon which deceiveth the whole world, pitted all his
forces against me in a great fury; for one of his ministers, a preacher of
his doctrine, not many days after this proclamation, made complaint to
the Authority against me, as I was informed, and after understood it
to be so by the Authority, and that he had given evidence of Blasphemy
against me; though nothing relating to my proclamation; and this following
Warrant and Mittimus was issued against me, while I was in
New London prison, which I took no copy of also; but the Mittimus
itself came to my hands as strangely as the copy of the Proclamation
did; of which here followeth a copy:—
.sp 1
.ce
Mittimus.
.sp 1
“Whereas John Rogers of New London hath of late set himself in a
furious way, in direct opposition to the true worship and pure ordinances
and holy institution of God; as also on the Lord’s Day passing
out of prison in the time of public worship, running into the meeting-house
in a railing and raging manner, as being guilty of Blasphemy.
“To the Constable of New London, or County Marshal, these are
therefore in their Majestie’s name to require you to impress two sufficient
men, to take unto their custody the body of John Rogers and
him safely to convey unto Hartford and deliver unto the prison-keeper,
who is hereby required him the said John Rogers to receive into custody
and safely to secure in close prison until next Court of Assistants held
in Hartford. Fail not: this dated in New London, March 28th, 1694.”
.sp 1
By this Warrant and Mittimus I was taken out of New London
Prison, by two armed men, and carried to the head jail of the Government,
where I was kept till the next Court of Assistants, and there
fined £5 for reproaching their ministry, and to sit on the gallows a
quarter of an hour with a halter about my neck; and from thence to
the prison again, and there to continue till I paid the said £5 and gave
in a bond of £50 not to disturb their churches; where I continued
three years and eight months from my first commitment. This was
the sentence. And upon a training day the Marshall came with eight
Musqueteers, and a man to put the halter on, and as I passed by the
.bn 046.png
.pn +1
Train Band, I held up the halter and told them my Lord was crowned
with thorns for my sake and should I be ashamed to go with a halter
about my neck for His sake? Whereupon, the Authority gave order
forthwith that no person should go with me to the gallows, save but
the guard; the gallows was out of the town. When I came to it, I saw
that both gallows and ladder were newly made. I stepped up the ladder
and walked on the gallows, it being a great square piece of timber
and very high. I stamped on it with my feet, and told them I came
there to stamp it under my feet; for my Lord had suffered on the gallows
for me, that I might escape it.
From thence, I was guarded with the said eight Musqueteers to the
prison again. Being come there, the Officers read to me the Court’s
sentence and demanded of me whether I would give in a bond of £50
not to disturb their churches for time to come, and pay the £5 fine.
I told them I owed them nothing and would not bind myself.
About five or six months after, there was a malefactor taken out of
the prison where I was and put to death, by reason of which there was
a very great concourse of people to behold it; and, when they had executed
him, they stopped in the street near to the prison where I was,
and I was taken out (I know not for what) and tied to the carriage of
a great gun, where I saw the County whip, which I knew well, for it
was kept in the prison where I was, and I had it oftentimes in my hand,
and had viewed it, it being one single line opened at the end, and three
knots tied at the end, on each strand a knot, being not so big as a cod-line;
I suppose they were wont, when not upon the Dragon’s service,
not to exceed forty stripes, according to the law of Moses, every lash
being a stripe.
I also saw another whip lie by it with two lines, the ends of the lines
tied with twine that they might not open, the two knots seemed to me
about as big as a walnut; some told me they had compared the lines
of the whip to the lines on the drum and the lines of the whip were
much bigger. The man that did the execution did not only strike
with the strength of his arm, but with a swing of his body also; my
senses seemed to be quicker, in feeling, hearing, discerning, or comprehending
anything at that time than at any other time.
The spectators told me they gave me three score stripes, and then
they let me loose and asked me if I did not desire mercy of them. I
told them, “No, they were cruel wretches.” Forthwith, they sentenced
.bn 047.png
.pn +1
me to be whipped a second time. I was told by the spectators that
they gave me sixteen stripes; and from thence I was carried to the
prison again; and one leg chained to the cell. A bed which I had hired
to this time, at a dear rate, was now taken from me by the jailer, and
not so much as straw to lie on, nor any covering. The floor was hollow
from the ground, and the planks had wide and open joints. It was
upon the 18th day of the 8th month that I was thus chained, and kept
thus chained six weeks, the weather cold. When the jailer first chained
me, he brought some dry crusts on a dish and put them to my mouth,
and told me he that was executed that day had left them, and that he
would make me thankful for them before he had done with me, and
would make me comply with their worship before he had done with
me though the Authority could not do it; and then went out from me
and came no more at me for three days and three nights; nor sent me
one mouthful of meat, nor one drop of drink to me; and then he brought
a pottinger of warm broth and offered it to me. I replied, “Stand
away with thy broth, I have no need of it.”
“Ay! ay!” said he, “have you so much life yet in you?” and went
his way. Thus I lay chained at this cell six weeks. My back felt
like a dry stick without sense of feeling, being puffed up like a bladder,
so that I was fain to lie upon my face. In which prison I continued
three years after this, under cruel sufferings.
But I must desist; for it would contain a book of a large volume to
relate particularly what I suffered in the time of this imprisonment.
But I trod upon the Lion and Adder, the young lion and the dragon I
trampled under my feet, and came forth a conqueror, through faith in
Him who is the King of Kings and Lord of Lords, and hath overcome
death itself for us, and him that hath the power of it also, who is the
devil. But this long war hath kept me waking and watching and looking
for the coming of the bridegroom and earnestly desiring that his
bride may be prepared and in readiness to meet Him in her beautiful
garments, being arrayed in fine linen, clean and white, which is the
righteousness of the saints.
.pm end_quote
We are glad to set before the gaze of the world an example of
moral heroism, courage and endurance, strongly in contrast with
the spirit of this pleasure-loving, gain-seeking age. A light shining
.bn 048.png
.pn +1
in a dark place, which the storms of persecution could not extinguish
nor its waves overwhelm.
Mr. McEwen says, in his Half-Century Sermon:—
.pm start_quote
During the ministry of Mr. Saltonstall, and reaching down through
the long ministry of Mr. Adams, and the shorter one of Mr. Byles, a
religious sect prevailed here whose acts were vexatious to this church
and congregation. I have no wish to give their history except so far
as their fanaticism operated as a persecution of our predecessors in this
place of worship.
.pm end_quote
On the side of the oppressor there was power, said Solomon.
These people were powerless from the beginning, so far as the
secular or ecclesiastical arm was concerned. The power lay in
the church and state, and was freely exercised by both, in a cruel
and most tyrannical manner, as undisputed history attests.
Mr. McEwen admits that the Rogerenes held the doctrine of
non-resistance to violence from men. Referring to this sect in the
time of Mr. Byles,[7] he says:—
“They were careful to make no resistance, showing their faith
by their works,” and relates an anecdote which reflects no credit
upon the officers of the law at that day. He says:—
.pm start_quote
One constable displayed his genius in putting the strength of this
principle of non-resistance to a test. He took a bold assailant of public
worship down to the harbor, placed him in a boat that was moored to
a stake in deep water, perforated the bottom of the boat with an auger,
gave the man a dish and left him to live by faith or die in the faith.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 7
During the countermove, 1764-1766. See #Part II, Chapter XII:ch_2_12#.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Quoting the words of Satan, Mr. McEwen adds, “Skin for
skin, all that a man hath will he give for his life.” The faith of
the man was strong, yet he was saved not by faith, but by bailing
water.
Mr. McEwen is quick to condemn the infringement of the law
when charged upon the Rogerenes, but makes no objections to the
.bn 049.png
.pn +1
constable’s outrage upon law, and no reference to the hundred
years of oppression, in fines, whippings, imprisonments, etc., which
the Rogerenes had then endured; fines which, with, interest, would
have amounted to millions of dollars at the time Mr. McEwen was
speaking.
But, notwithstanding the principles of non-resistance so publicly
professed by the Rogerenes, from whom the weakest had nothing
to fear, Mr. McEwen dwells strongly upon the terrors which they
inspired. He says:—
.pm start_quote
Mr. Saltonstall and Mr. Adams were brave men. Mr. Byles was a
man of less nerve and he suffered not a little from their annoyances.
He was actually afraid to go without an escort, lest he should suffer
indignities from them.
.pm end_quote
We have shown (Chapter I) the transparent groundlessness of
another statement made of their rudeness by Mr. McEwen, which
we need not repeat; but the trials into which Mr. Byles was thrown
and the escort deemed necessary present such a comical aspect
that the following lines from Mother Goose seem appropriate to
the case:—
.pm start_poem
Four and twenty tailors
Went to kill a snail,
The best man among them
Durst not touch its tail;
It stuck up its horns,
Like a little Kyloe cow;
Run! tailors, run! or it
Will kill you all just now.
.pm end_poem
Mr. Byles, who was ordained in 1757, seems to have been as
much displeased with the church as with the Rogerenes themselves;
for in 1768 he left New London, renounced the Congregational
church and abandoned its ministry altogether. (See Part
II, Chapter XII.)
.bn 050.png
.pn +1
Herod and Pilate were men of note in their day. What are
they thought of now? The records of history show many examples
of this sort. Quakers were once persecuted and slain.
Men are now proud of such ancestry. Let the calumniated wait
their hour. The progress of truth adown the ages is slow, but its
chariot is golden and its coming sure.
.bn 051.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_3'
CHAPTER III.
.pm start_poem
As round and round it takes its flight,
That lofty dweller of the skies,
And never on the earth doth light,
The fabled bird of Paradise;
So would we soar on pinions bright,
And ever keep the sun in sight,
That sun of truth, whose golden rays
Are as the “light of seven days.”
.pm end_poem
.sp 4
Falsehood is the bane of the world. It links men with him who
was a liar from the beginning. We would bruise a lie as we
would a serpent under our feet. Not so much to defend persons
as to vindicate justice do we write.
It has been said that toleration is the only real test of civilization.
But toleration is not the word; all men are entitled to equal
religious freedom, and any infringement thereof is an infringement
of a God-given right.
Who was the most calumniated person the world has ever seen,—stigmatized
as a blasphemer, as a gluttonous man, as beside himself,
as one that hath a devil? From his mouth we hear the words:
“Blessed are ye when men shall persecute and revile you, and say
all manner of evil against you falsely.”
John Rogers and his disciples, who, in the face of so much
obloquy, nurtured the tree of liberty with tears, with sacrifices
and with blood, would seem to be entitled to this blessing.
Is it not strange, as we have before said, that Mr. McEwen
should say, “To pay taxes of any kind grieved their souls”?
Ought a public teacher to state that which a little research on
his part would have shown him to be false?
Miss Caulkins sets this matter in its true light, as already
.bn 052.png
.pn +1
shown, and it will be further elucidated by the words of John
Rogers, 2d, here given:—
.pm start_quote
Forasmuch as we acknowledge the worldly government to be set up
of God, we have always paid all public demands for the upholding of
the same, as Town Rates and County Rates and all other demands,
excepting such as are for the upholding of hireling ministers and false
teachers, which God called us to testify against.
Now when the worldly rulers take upon themselves to make laws
relating to God’s worship, and thereby do force and command men’s
consciences, and so turn their swords against God’s children, they then
act beyond their commission and jurisdiction.
.pm end_quote
Thus it is by misrepresentations without number that the name
and fame of these moral heroes have been tarnished.
We will again refer to the false statements in Dr. Trumbull’s
History, nearly all of which aspersions are taken from that volume
of falsehoods written by Peter Pratt after Roger’s death, from
which we shall presently make quotations that, we doubt not, will
convince the intelligent reader that this author was unscrupulous
to a degree utterly incomprehensible, unless by supposition of a
natural tendency to falsehood.
Yet it is from this book of Pratt’s that historians have drawn
nearly all their statements regarding the Rogerenes.
Trumbull (quoting from Pratt) says: “John Rogers was divorced
from his wife for certain immoralities.”
The General Court divorced him from his wife without assigning
any cause whatever, of which act Rogers always greatly complained.
It was left for his enemies to circulate the above scandal,
with the intent to blacken his character and thus weaken Rogerene
influence. John Rogers, 2d, testifies that his mother left her
husband solely on account of his religion. He says (“Ans. to
Peter Pratt”):—
.pm start_quote
I shall give the reader a true account concerning the matter of the
first difference between John Rogers and his wife, as I received it from
.bn 053.png
.pn +1
their own mouths, they never differing in any material point as to the
account they gave about it.
Although I did faithfully, and in the fear of God, labor with her in
her lifetime, by persuading her to forsake her adulterous life and unlawful
companions; yet, since her death, should have been glad to have
heard no more about it, had not Peter Pratt, like a bad bird, befouled
his own nest by raking in the graves of the dead and by publishing
such notorious lies against them “whom the clods of the valley forbid to
answer for themselves;”[8] for which cause I am compelled to give a
true account concerning those things, which is as follows:—
.fm rend=t
.fn 8
Here John Rogers quotes from Peter Pratt.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
John Rogers and his wife were both brought up in the New England
way of worship, never being acquainted with any other sect; and although
they were zealous of the form which they had been brought up
in, yet were wholly ignorant as to the work of regeneration, until, by
a sore affliction which John Rogers met with, it pleased God to lay
before his consideration the vanity of all earthly things and the necessity
of making his peace with God and getting an interest in Jesus Christ,
which he now applies himself to seek for, by earnest prayer to God in
secret and according to Christ’s words, Matt. vii, 7, 8, “Ask and it shall
be given you, seek and ye shall find, knock and it shall be opened unto
you. For every one that asketh receiveth, and he that seeketh findeth,” etc.
And he coming to witness the truth of these scriptures, by God’s
giving him a new heart and another spirit, and by remitting the guilt of
his sins, did greatly engage him to love God with all his heart, and his
neighbor as himself, as did appear by his warning all people he met with
to make their peace with God, declaring what God had done for his soul.
Now his wife, observing the great change which was wrought in her
husband, as appeared by his fervent prayers, continually searching the
scriptures, and daily discoursing about the things of God to all persons
he met with, and particularly to her, persuading her to forsake her vain
conversation and make her peace with God, did greatly stir her up to
seek to God by earnest prayer, that he would work the same work of
grace in her soul, as she saw and believed to be wrought in her husband.
After some time, upon their diligent searching the holy scriptures,
they began to doubt of some of the principles which they had traditionally
been brought up in; and particularly that of sprinkling infants
.bn 054.png
.pn +1
which they had been taught to call Baptism; but now they find it to be
only an invention of men; and neither command nor example in Scripture
for it. Upon which, they bore a public testimony against it, which
soon caused a great uproar in the country.
And their relations, together with their neighbors, and indeed the
world in general who had any opportunity, were all united in persuading
them that it was a spirit of error by which they were deluded.
But the main instrument which Satan at length made use of to deceive
John Roger’s wife, was her own natural mother, who, by giving
her daughter an account of her own conversion, as she called it, and
telling her daughter there was no such great change in the work of conversion
as they had met with; but that it was the Devil had transformed
himself into an angel of light, at length fully persuaded her daughter to
believe that it was even so.
Whereupon, she soon publicly recanted and renounced that Spirit
which she had been led by, and declared it to be the spirit of the Devil,
and then vehemently persuaded her husband to do the like, telling
him, with bitter tears, that unless he would renounce that spirit she dare
not live with him. But he constantly telling her that he knew it to be
the Spirit of God and that to deny it would be to deny God; which he
dare not do.
Whereupon she left her husband, taking her two children with her,
and with the help of her relations went to her father’s house, about
eighteen miles from her husband’s habitation.
And I do solemnly declare, in the presence of God, that this is a true
relation of their first separation, as I received it from their own mouths,
as also by the testimony of two of their next neighbors is fully proved.
(See Chapter IV, 1st Part.)
So doubtful was she herself of the lawfulness of her subsequent marriage
with the father of Peter Pratt, that she never signed her name
Elizabeth Pratt to any legal document; but “Elizabeth, daughter of
Matthew Griswold,” many instances of which are on record.
.pm end_quote
This charge made against John Rogers, in Dr. Trumbull’s
History, is further shown to be false by the record of the Court
at Hartford, May 25, 1675; the grand jury returning that they
“find not the bill.” Yet, in the face of this patent fact, has this
false charge been perpetuated by ecclesiastical historians and their
.bn 055.png
.pn +1
followers. We note, however, one shining exception, contained in
the Saulisbury “Family Histories,” under the Matthew Griswold
line, treating of the divorce of his daughter Elizabeth, which is
here given:—
.pm start_quote
In 1674, her first husband departed from the established orthodoxy
of the New England churches, by embracing the doctrines of the Seventh
Day Baptists; and, having adopted later “certain peculiar notions of his
own,” though still essentially orthodox as respects the fundamental
faith of his time, became the founder of a new sect, named after him
Rogerenes, Rogerene Quakers, or Rogerene Baptists. Maintaining
“obedience to the civil government,” he denounced as unscriptural all
interference of the civil power in the worship of God.
It seemed proper to give these particulars with regard to Rogers,
because they were made the ground[9] of a petition by his wife for divorce,
in May, 1675, which was granted by the “General Court,” in
October of the next year, and was followed in 1677 by another, also
granted, for the custody of her children, her late husband being so
“hettridox in his opinions and practice.”
The whole reminds us of other instances, more conspicuous in history,
of the narrowness manifested by fathers of New England towards
any deviations from the established belief, and of their distrust of individual
conscience as a sufficient rule of religious life, without the
interference of civil authority. There is no reason to believe that the
heterodoxy “in practice” referred to in the wife’s last petition to
the Court, was anything else than a nonconformity akin to that for the
sake of which the shores of their “dear old England” had been left
behind forever by the very men who forgot to tolerate it themselves, in
their new Western homes. Of course, like all persecuted, especially
religious, parties, the Rogerenes courted, gloried in, and profited by,
distresses.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 9
That this was the true ground, both on the part of the Griswolds and the
General Court, is patent in the light of the many evidences, but this being untenable
ground for a divorce, an ostensible cause was presented by the Griswolds, which,
upon investigation by the grand jury, brought forth “we find not the bill.” The
divorce was, therefore, granted upon no legal grounds and with no stated cause.
For the authenticated facts, see #Part II, Chapter XI:ch_2_11#.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
.bn 056.png
.pn +1
In Trumbull’s History, we also find the scandalous statement,
to which we have previously referred: “They would come on
the Lord’s day into the most public assemblies nearly or quite
naked.”
Nothing could be further from the truth. There is no evidence
on record, or tradition, concerning any such act. Among the
hundreds of prosecutions against the Rogerenes, no such thing is
alluded to on the records, etc. Miss Caulkins in her History
makes no reference to this stigma. Yet Mr. McEwen, in his
Half-Century Sermon, says: “Dr. Trumbull and perhaps some
others give us some historical items of the Rogerenes.”
By thus referring to Dr. Trumbull’s History, he virtually, we
would hope not intentionally, indorses all the errors concerning
this sect, which are contained in that work.
But, like the entablature of a column, crowning all the rest, are
the words of Rev. Mr. Saltonstall, credited to same ‘History,’ and
which we have before quoted:—
.pm start_quote
There never was, for this twenty years that I have resided in this
government, any one, Quaker or other person, that suffered on account
of his different persuasion in religious matters from the body of this
people.
.pm end_quote
Why were the Rogerenes fined for observing the seventh day
instead of the first day of the week, consistently with their profession?
Why fined for absenting themselves from the meetings of
the Congregational church? Why forbidden to hold meetings of
their own? Why was John Rogers fined for every one he baptized
by immersion, and for entertaining Quakers, as we have
seen? And why did the Hartford jailer say to him: “I will make
you comply with their worship if the Authority cannot”?
Miss Caulkins, though writing in partial defence of the Church,
speaks truthfully on this subject when she says:—
.pm start_quote
It was certainly a great error in the early planters of New England
to endeavor to produce uniformity in doctrine by the strong arm of
.bn 057.png
.pn +1
physical force. Was ever religious dissent subdued either by petty annoyance
or actual cruelty? Is it possible to make a true convert by
persecution? The principle of toleration was, however, then less
clearly understood.
.pm end_quote
This self-justification of Mr. Saltonstall would seem to vie for
insincerity with the language used by papists, as they handed
over heretics to the civil power, asking that they be treated with
mercy and that not a drop of blood be shed, meaning that they
be burned.
It is not unlike what that most cruel persecutor, Philip II of
Spain, husband of Bloody Mary, said of himself: “that he had
always from the beginning of his government followed the path of
clemency, according to his natural disposition, so well known to
the world;” or what Virgilius wrote of the merciless Duke of
Alva, while the latter was carrying out some of the most diabolical
devices of the Inquisition, under the orders of this same king
Philip: “All,” said Virgilius, “venerate the prudence and gentleness
of the Duke of Alva.”
Mr. Saltonstall’s words also run in a groove with those of Peter
Pratt, the great traducer. “In short,” says Pratt, “he never suffered
the loss of one hair of his head by the Authority for any
article of his religion, nor for the exercise of it.”
To which John Rogers, 2d, replies:—
.pm start_quote
In answer to this last extravagant assertion, which the whole neighborhood
knows to be false, I shall only mention the causes of some few
of his sufferings, which I am sure that both the records and neighborhood
will witness the truth of.
In the first place, he lost his wife and children on the account of his
religion, as has been fully proved.
The next long persecution, which both himself and all his Society
suffered for many years, was for refusing to come to Presbyterian meetings;
upon which account, their estates were extremely destroyed and
their bodies often imprisoned.
Also the multitude of fines and imprisonments which he suffered on
the account of baptizing such as desired to be baptized after the example
.bn 058.png
.pn +1
of Christ, by burying in the water. All which fines and imprisonments
were executed in the most rigorous manner. Sometimes
the officers, taking him in the dead of winter, as he came wet out of the
water, committed him to prison without a spark of fire, with many
other cruel acts, which for brevity I must omit.
Moreover, the many hundreds of pounds which the collectors have
taken from him for the maintainance of the Presbyterian ministers,
which suffering he endured to the day of his death and which his Society
still suffers.
But, forasmuch as his sufferings continued more than forty years, and
were so numerous that I doubt not but to give a particular account of
them would fill a larger volume than was ever printed in New England,
I must desist.
But the same spirit of persecution under which he suffered, is yet
living among us; as is evidenced by what here follows:—
The last fifth month called July, in the year 1725, we were going to
our meeting, being eight of us in number, it being the first day of the
week, the day which we usually meet on as well as the rest of our neighbors;
and as we were in our way, we were taken upon the king’s highway,
by order of Joseph Backus, called a justice of the peace, and the
next day by his order cruelly whipped, with an unmerciful instrument,
by which our bodies were exceedingly wounded and maimed; and the
next first day following, as we were returning home from our meeting,
we were again, three of us, taken upon the king’s highway, by order of
John Woodward and Ebenezer West of Lebanon, called justices of the
peace, and the next day by them sentenced to be whipped, and were
accordingly carried to the place of execution and stripped in order to
receive the sentence; but there happened to be present some tender-spirited
people, who, seeing the wounds in our bodies we had received
the week before, paid the fines and so prevented the punishment.
And also the same John Woodward, soon after this, committed two
of our brethren to prison, viz., Richard Man and Elisha Man, for not
attending the Presbyterian meeting, although they declared it to be
contrary to their consciences to do so. Neither have their persecutors
allowed them one meal of victuals, nor so much as straw to lie on, all
the time of their imprisonment; although they are well known to be
very poor men.
But, to return to the matter I was upon, which was to prove Peter
.bn 059.png
.pn +1
Pratt’s assertion false, in saying John Rogers never suffered the loss of
one hair of his head by the Authority for any article of his religion, nor
for the exercise of it. And had not Peter Pratt been bereft as well of
reason as conscience, he would not have presumed to have asserted such
a thing, which the generality of the neighborhood knows to be false.
.pm end_quote
In further proof of the falsity of Mr. Saltonstall’s assertions,
and as showing also the spirit of those times, we quote the following
from Dr. Trumbull’s History:—
.pm start_quote
But though the churches were multiplying and generally enjoying
peace, yet sectaries were creeping in and began to make their appearance
in the Colony. Episcopacy made some advances, and in several
instances there was a separation from the Standing Churches. The
Rogerenes and a few Baptists made their appearance among the inhabitants;
meetings were held in private houses, and laymen undertook
to administer the sacraments. This occasioned the following act
of the General Assembly, at their sessions in May, 1723.[10]
“Be it enacted, &c., That whatsoever persons shall presume on the
Lord’s Day to neglect the public worship of God in some lawful congregation,
and form themselves into separate companies in private
houses, being convicted thereof before any assistant or Justice of the
Peace, shall each of them on every such offense, forfeit the sum of
twenty shillings, and that whatsoever person (not being lawfully allowed
minister of the Standing Order) shall presume to profane the
holy sacraments by administering them to any person or persons whatsoever,
and being thereof convicted before the County Court, in such
County where such offense shall be committed, shall incur the penalty
of £10 for every such offense and suffer corporal punishment, by whipping
not exceeding thirty stripes for each offense.”
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 10
This act was not materially different from the former laws of this kind.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Previous to this act, the penalty for baptizing by immersion was
£5, which penalty was often inflicted upon John Rogers, as we
have seen.
In the Boston plantation, for merely speaking against sprinkling
of infants the like penalty was incurred. Thus thick was the
.bn 060.png
.pn +1
cloud of bigotry and ignorance which had settled down on the
people at that day and which John Rogers, and his followers by
the light of truth labored to disperse, deserving honor instead of
the reproaches which they have suffered from prejudiced and
careless historians and narrow-minded ecclesiastics.
Still, in the face of facts like these, “all of which he saw and a
large part of which he was,” the Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall asserts
“that no man hath suffered on account of his religious opinions,”
etc.
Dr. Trumbull says, “Mr. Saltonstall was a great man.”
.pm start_quote
“They helped every one his neighbor; so the carpenter encouraged
the goldsmith.”—Isaiah. “And the great man he uttereth his mischievous
desire: so they wrap it up.”—Micah.
.pm end_quote
.bn 061.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_4'
CHAPTER IV.
.sp 2
One has said that an angel would feel as much honored in receiving
a commission to sweep the streets as though called to a
service higher in the world’s estimation. We confess to something
like a street-cleaning duty in removing the scandals which have
settled about the name of John Rogers.
Since the enemies of Rogers have mainly taken their artillery
from Pratt’s work, the falsity of which has in part been shown,
we now proceed to give it further notice and refutation. Base
coin is sometimes passed around and received as genuine; put to
the test, its worth vanishes. Written in a malignant spirit, with
no regard to truth whatever, the untrustworthiness of Pratt’s book
can scarcely be overstated.
We will continue to quote from this book, and John Rogers,
2d’s “Reply” to the same.
.pm start_quote
It remains (says Pratt) that I speak of the third step in Quakerism
taken by John Rogers, who received his first notions of spirituality from
Banks and Case, a couple of lewd men[11] of that sort called Singing
Quakers. These men, as they danced through this Colony, lit on John
Rogers and made a Quaker of him; but neither they nor the Spirit could
teach him to sing. However, he remained their disciple for a while,
and then, being wiser than his teachers, made a transition to the church
of the Seventh Day Baptists. But, the same spirit not deserting him,
but setting in with the disposition of his own spirit to a vehement affectation
of precedency, he resolved to reach it, though it should happen
to lead to singularity; whereupon, after a few revelations, he resolved
upon Quakerism again, though under a modification somewhat new. I
call it Quakerism, not but that he differed from them in many things,
.bn 062.png
.pn +1
yet holding with them in the main, being guided by the same spirit,
acknowledging their spirit and they his, he must needs be called a
Quaker.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 11
We have been unable to find any historical account of Banks and Case; but
that any of the Quakers were “lewd men,” is so incredible as to need more proof
than the mere assertion of Peter Pratt.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Reply of John Rogers, Jr.:—
.pm start_quote
Every article of this whole paragraph (so far as it relates to John
Rogers) is notoriously false; for the proof of which I have taken these
following testimonies from two of his ancient neighbors, which though
they have always been enemies to his principles, yet have been very
free in giving their testimonies to the truth, signifying their abhorrence
of such an abuse done to a dead man.
.sp 1
“The testimony of Daniel Stubbins, aged about eighty years, testifieth,
that from a lad I have been near neighbor and well acquainted
with John Rogers, late of New London, deceased, to his dying day, and
do testify that the time he first pretended to spiritual conversation and
declared himself to be a converted man, upon which he broke off from
the Presbyterian church in New London and joined with the Seventh
Day Baptists, and his wife therefore left him and went to her father,
Matthew Griswold of Lyme, was about the year 1674, and the time
that Case and Banks, with a great company of other ranters, first came
into this Colony was about twelve years after; and I never heard or
understood that J. Rogers ever inclined to their way, or left any of his
former principles on their account.
.ll 68
.rj
Daniel Stubbins.”
.ll
.ti +4
Dated in New London, June 27, 1725.
.pm end_quote
.pm start_quote
“The testimony of Mary Tubbs, aged about seventy-seven years,
testifieth, that I was a near neighbor to John Rogers, late of New London,
deceased, at the time when his wife left him and went to her father,
Matthew Griswold of Lyme, and I had discourse with her the same day
she went, and she informed me that it was because her husband had
renounced his religion and was joined with the Seventh Day Baptists,
and this was about the year 1674, and it was many years after that one
Case and Banks, with a great company of ranters, first came into this
Colony and came to New London and were some days at the house of
James Rogers, where John Rogers then dwelt; but I never understood
.bn 063.png
.pn +1
that John Rogers inclined to their way or principles, or countenanced
their practices, but continued in the religion which he was in before.
.ll 68
.rj
Mary Tubbs.”
.ll
.ti +4
Dated in New London, June 29, 1725.
.sp 1
Now the first falsehood which I shall observe in this place is his asserting
that “the first notions of spirituality taken by John Rogers were
from Case and Banks,” etc. Whereas the above witnesses testify that
he had broke off from the church of New London and joined with the
Seventh Day Baptists; upon which his wife had left him, and that all
this was many years before Case and Banks came into this Colony.
The second falsehood is his saying, “These men lit on John Rogers
and made a Quaker of him.” Whereas these witnesses testify that he
never inclined to their way, nor countenanced their practices, but continued
in the religion which he was in before.
The third falsehood is his saying, “He remained their disciple for
awhile;” since it is fully proved that he never was their disciple at all.
The fourth falsehood is his saying that “after he had remained their
disciple awhile he made a transition to the church of the Seventh Day
Baptists.” Whereas it is fully proved that his joining with the Seventh
Day Baptists was many years before those people first came into this
Colony.
And among his other scoffs and falsehoods, he asserts that John
Rogers “often changed his principles.” To which I answer that upon
condition that Peter Pratt will make it appear that John Rogers ever
altered or varied in any one article of his religion, since his separating
from the Presbyterian church and joining with the Seventh Day Baptists,
which is more than fifty years past (excepting only as to the observation
of the seventh day), I will reward him with the sum of £20 for
his labor. No, verily, he mistakes the man; it was not John Rogers
that used to change his religion, but it was Peter Pratt himself.
.pm end_quote
Here follow more of the false statements made by Peter Pratt,
which have been repeated by Trumbull, Barber, and others:—
.pm start_quote
Great part of his imprisonment at Hartford was upon strong suspicion
of his being accessory to the burning of New London meeting-house.
.pm end_quote
.bn 064.png
.pn +1
To which John Rogers, 2d, replies:—
.pm start_quote
As to this charge against John Rogers concerning New London
meeting-house, were it not for the sake of those who live remote, I
should make no reply to it; because there are so many hundreds of
people inhabiting about New London who know it to be notoriously
false, and that John Rogers was a close prisoner at Hartford (which is
fifty miles distant from New London) several months before and three
years after said meeting-house was burnt. And that this long imprisonment
was for refusing to give a bond of £50, which he declared he
could not in conscience do, and to pay a fine of £5, which he refused
to do, for which reason he was kept a prisoner, from the time of his
first commitment, three years and eight months, and then set at liberty
by open proclamation, is so fully proved by the records of Hartford
that I presume none will dare contradict.
And now, in order to prove Peter Pratt’s affirmation to be false, in
that he affirms that “great part of his imprisonment at Hartford was
upon strong suspicion of his being accessory to the burning of New
London meeting-house,” take these following testimonies:—
.sp 1
“The testimony of Thomas Hancox, aged about eighty years, testifieth,
That when I was goal keeper at Hartford, John Rogers, late of
New London, deceased, was a prisoner under my charge for more than
three years; in which time of his confinement at Hartford, New London
meeting-house was burnt, and I never heard or understood that the
Authority, or any other person, had any mistrust that he was any way
concerned in that fact, nor did he ever suffer one hour’s imprisonment
on that account.
.ll 68
.rj
Thomas Hancox, Kinsington, Sept. 17, 1725.”
.ll
“Samuel Gilbert, aged sixty-two years, testifieth and saith: That at
the time when John Rogers, late of New London, deceased, was a
prisoner several years at Hartford, I did at the same time keep a
public house of entertainment near the prison, and was well knowing to
the concerns of the said Rogers all the time of his imprisonment, and I
do farther testify that New London meeting-house was burnt at the
time while he was a prisoner in said prison, but no part of his imprisonment
was upon that account.
.ll 68
.rj
Samuel Gilbert, October, 1725.”
.ll
.bn 065.png
.pn +1
.sp 1
Thus it plainly appears that this affirmation concerning New London
meeting-house is a positive falsehood.
He (Pratt) further says that “Rogers held downright that man had
no soul at all, and that though he used the term, yet intended by it
either the natural life, or else the natural faculties, which he attributed
to the body, and held that they died with it, even as it is with a dog.”
In answer to this notorious falsehood charged upon John Rogers, I
shall boldly appeal to all mankind who had conversation with him in
his lifetime; for that they well knew it to be utterly false: and for the
satisfaction of such as had not acquaintance with him, I shall refer
them to his books, and particularly in this point to his “Exposition on
the Revelations,” beginning at page 232, where he largely sets forth
the Resurrection of the Body, both of the just and unjust, and of the
eternal judgment which God shall then pass upon all, both small and
great. All which sufficiently proves Peter Pratt guilty of slandering
and belying a dead man, a crime generally abhorred by all sober people;
and so shall pass to his 3d chapter, judging that by these few remarks
which have been taken, the reader may plainly see that the account he
pretends to give of John Roger’s principles is so false and self-contradictory
that it deserves no answer at all, and that it was great folly in
Peter Pratt so to expose himself as to pretend to give an account of
John Roger’s principles in such a false manner; since John Rogers himself
has largely published his own principles in print, which books are
plenty, and will fully satisfy every one that desires satisfaction in that
matter of what I have here asserted.
In page 48 he (Pratt) tells the reader as follows: “But John Rogers
held three ordinances of religious use; viz., Baptism, the Lord’s Supper,
and imposition of hands.” Again, “that all worship is in the heart
only, and there are no external forms.”
Here the reader may observe that, first, he owns that Rogers held
three external ordinances, viz., Baptism, the Lord’s Supper, and imposition
of hands; and in the very next words forgets himself and tells
the reader that Rogers held all worship to be in the heart only, and
that there were no external forms. See how plainly he contradicts
himself.
.pm end_quote
Here we ought to say, without soiling our pen with his obscene
language, that what Peter Pratt said and others have quoted about
.bn 066.png
.pn +1
John Roger’s “maid” has reference to his second wife, an account
of his marriage to whom, with other facts of the case, we now give
to the reader, in the words of John Rogers, 2d, in his “Reply”
to Peter Pratt:—
.pm start_quote
After John Roger’s first wife had left him, on account of his religion,
he remained single for more than twenty-five years, in hopes that she
would come to repentance and forsake her unlawful companions. But,
seeing no change in her, he began to think of marrying another woman,
and, accordingly, did agree upon marriage with a maid belonging to
New London, whose name was Mary Ransford. They thereupon
agreed to go into the County Court and there declare their marriage;
and accordingly they did so, he leading his bride by the hand into
court, where the judges were sitting and a multitude of spectators present,
and then desired the whole assembly to take notice that he took
that woman to be his wife; his bride also assenting to what he said.
Whereupon, the judge offered to marry them in their form, which John
Rogers refused, telling him that he had once been married by their
Authority, and by their Authority they had taken away his wife again
and rendered him no reason why they did it. Upon which account, he
looked at their form of marriage to be of no value, and therefore would
be married by their form no more, etc. And from the court he went
to the Governor’s house with his bride, and declared their marriage to
the Governor,[12] who seemed to like it well enough, and wished them
much joy, which is a usual compliment.
.fm rend=t
.fn 12
Governor Winthrop.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
And thus having given a true and impartial relation of the manner
of his marriage to his second wife, which I doubt not but every unprejudiced
person will judge to be as authentic as any marriage that was
ever made in Connecticut Colony, in the next place, I shall proceed to
inform the reader in what manner he came to be deprived of this his
second wife; for, after they had lived together about three years and
had had two children, the court had up John Roger’s wife and charged
her with fornication, for having her last child, pretending no other
reason than that the marriage was not lawful; and thereupon called her
Mary Ransford, after her maiden name. And then vehemently urged
her to give her oath who was the father of her child, which they charged
.bn 067.png
.pn +1
to be by fornication, her husband standing by her in court, with the
child in his arms, strictly commanding her not to take the oath, for
these three following reasons:—
First, because it was contrary to Christ’s command, Matt. v, 34,
“But I say unto you, swear not at all,” etc.
A second reason was because it was a vain oath, inasmuch as they
had been married so publickly, and then lived together three years after,
and that he himself did not deny his child, nor did any person doubt
who was the father of the child, etc.
A third reason was, he told her, they laid a snare for her, and wanted
her oath to prove their charge, which was that the child was by fornication;
so that her swearing would be that he was the father of that child
by fornication, and so it would not only be a reproach to him and the
child, but also a false oath, forasmuch as the child was not by fornication.
For these reasons, he forbid her taking the oath, but bid her tell the
court that her husband was the father of that child in his arms. He
also told her in the court that if she would be ruled by him, he would
defend her from any damage. But if she would join with the court
against him, by being a witness that the child was by fornication, he
should scruple to own her any more as a wife.
But the court continuing to urge her to take the oath, promising her
favor if she took it, and threatening her with severity if she refused to
take it, at length she declared she would not be ruled by John Rogers,
but would accept of the court’s favor, and so took the oath; and the
favor which the court granted her was to pass the following sentence:—
.tb
New London, at a County Court, the 15th of September, 1702.
Mary Ransford of New London, being presented by the grandjurymen
to this court, for having a child by fornication, which was
born in March last, and she being now brought before this court to
answer for the same, being examined who was the father of her child,
she said John Rogers senior of New London, to which she made oath,
the said Rogers being present.
The court having considered her offense, sentence her, for the same,
to pay unto the County Treasurer forty shillings money, or to be whipt
ten stripes on the naked body. She is allowed till the last of November
to pay the fine.
.bn 068.png
.pn +1
A true copy of the Record, as far as it respects the said Mary Ransford,
her examination and fine.
.ll 68
.rj
Test. John Picket, Clerk.
.ll
And now the poor woman found that by her oath she had proved
her child illegitimate, and thereby denied her marriage, and that her
husband dare not own her as a wife; for I think that no woman can be
said to be a wife (though ever so lawfully married) if she turn so much
against her husband as not only to disobey his most strict commands,
but also to prove by her oath that his children are by fornication, as it
was in this case. She was also greatly terrified on account of her whipping,
to avoid which she some time after made her escape out of the
Government, to a remote Island in Rhode Island Government, called
Block Island; and in about eight years after she had thus been driven
from her husband she was married to one Robert Jones, upon said
Island, with whom she still lives in that Government.
Whereupon, John Rogers again lived single twelve years, which was
four years after she was married to Robert Jones, and then he made
suit to one Sarah Coles of Oyster Bay, on Long Island, a widow, and
by reason of the many false reports which had spread about the Country,
as if he had turned away his second wife, etc., he offered the woman to
carry her to Block Island, where she might know the truth of the matter,
by discoursing with the woman herself, as well as the Authority and
neighbors, which accordingly he did; by which means she was so well
satisfied that she proposed to be married before they came off; and
accordingly was married, by Justice Ray.
.pm end_quote
There are other scandalous stories quoted nearly verbatim from
Pratt’s book by Trumbull, which neither space, nor the patience of
the reader, nor delicacy permits us to repeat, all of which have
been completely refuted by John Rogers, 2d, in his “Reply” to
the same.
We will presently entertain the reader with Pratt’s poetical effort
deriding baptism by immersion, concerning which John Rogers,
2d, replies. It should be remembered that Peter Pratt was the
son of John Roger’s first wife, by her second husband, and was
much at the house of John Rogers, Sr., on visits to his half brother,
.bn 069.png
.pn +1
John, 2d. He was baptized (viz., rebaptized by immersion) by
Rogers, and even suffered imprisonment, at one time, with other
Rogerenes, but apostatized under persecution and returned to the
Congregational church, from which, after the death of Rogers, he
threw at him those poisonous shafts of which the reader has seen
some specimens.
Here follow Pratt’s verses, quoted in “Reply” of John
Rogers, 2d:—
.pm start_quote
And now as to his songs and other verses, I shall be very brief, only
mentioning some of the gross blasphemies which they contain, not
doubting that all sober Christians, together with myself, will abhor
such profaneness as may be seen in page 36, and is as follows:—
.pm start_poem
That sacramental bond,
By which my soul was tied
To Christ in baptism, I cast off
And basely vilified.
I suffered to be washed
As Satan instituted,
My body, so my soul thereby,
Became the more polluted.
.pm end_poem
I suppose he intends by that sacramental bond by which he says his
soul was tied to Christ, that non-scriptural practice of sprinkling a
little water out of a basin on his face in his unregenerate state. Now
the scriptures abundantly show us that the Spirit of God is the bond
by which God’s children are sealed or united to him; as Eph. i, 13,
Eph. iv, 3 and 30, John iii, 24. Thus it plainly appears it is the
Spirit of God that is the bond by which God’s children are united to
Christ, and not by sprinkling a little elementary water on their faces,
as Peter Pratt has ignorantly and blasphemously asserted.
Whereas he says he suffered his body to be washed as Satan instituted,
I suppose he intends his being baptized according to the rule of
Scripture of which he gives us an account, page 18, how that he was
stirred up to this ordinance from those words, Acts xxii, 16, “And now
why tarriest thou? arise and be baptized and wash away thy sins,” and
that accordingly he was baptized by burying his body in the water.
.bn 070.png
.pn +1
As to the first institutor of this ordinance, we know that John the
Baptist was the first practiser of it, therefore let us take his testimony
as to the institutor of it, which is to be seen John i, 33, “And I knew
Him not, but He that sent me to baptize with water, the same said unto
me, upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit,” etc.
And here I suppose none but Peter Pratt will dare deny that it was
God Almighty that instituted this ordinance and sent John the Baptist
to administer it.
.pm end_quote
Having given a specimen of Peter Pratt’s poetical effusions, we
will further entertain the reader with some verses by John Rogers,
2d, which precede his “Reply” to Pratt’s book:—
.nf c
A POETICAL INQUIRY INTO WHAT ADVANTAGE P. PRATT COULD
PROMISE HIMSELF BY HIS LATE ENGAGEMENT WITH
A DEAD MAN.
.nf-
.pm start_poem
I marvel that when Peter Pratt, in armor did appear,
He should engage, in such a rage, a man that’s dead three year.
Could he suppose for to disclose his valour in the field?
Or by his word, or wooden sword, to make his en’my yield?
Did he advance, thinking by chance, and taking so much pain,
To fright away a lump of clay, some honour for to gain?
Was his intent by argument, some honour for to have?
Or gain repute by making mute a man that’s in his grave?
Why did he strain his foolish brain, and muse upon his bed,
To study lies, for to despise a man when he is dead?
Why did he flout his venom out against the harmless dirt,
Which when alive did never strive to do the creature hurt?
No manly face, or Godly grace such actions will uphold,
Yet ’tis not new; apostates crew did do the like of old.
When Cain let in that dreadful sin which never can be pardoned,
He then did hate his loving mate, because he was so hardened.
Though Saul before did much adore his well-belovèd David,
Yet in the state that I relate his life he greatly cravèd.
In Judas we may also see another strange disaster,
Who for small gain did take such pain to sell his blessèd Master.
Apostates then, the vilest men, they’re always most forlorn;
.bn 071.png
.pn +1
Because such deeds from them proceeds which other men do scorn.
Such raging waves Satan depraves of all humanity;
They can embrace no saving grace, nor yet civility.
Had but this strife been in the life of his supposèd foe,
Then Peter Pratt would like a rat into a corner go;
Or flee apace, or hide his face, although that now he glories
To trample on one dead and gone, with his debauchèd stories.
.pm end_poem
A certain tribe of Indians would not allow the burial of any one
until some person could speak a word in his praise. On one such
occasion, silence long reigned, when a squaw arose and said, “He
was a good smoker.” What can we say of Peter Pratt, that the right
of sepulture may be granted him? This may be said: He at one
time thought he had discovered the “wonderful art of longitude,”
by which he expected to be made famous the world over, and presented
his scheme to the faculty of Yale College, who regarded it
as the product of an hallucinated mind. Upon this, Pratt gave up
the fallacy, which should be spoken to his praise. The following
testimony which he gave in his book regarding John Rogers, 2d,
and incidentally in favor of John Rogers senior, should also be
put to his credit:—
.pm start_quote
My near alliance to John Rogers (then junior) who is my brother,
viz., the son of my mother, proved an unhappy snare to me. He being,
naturally, a man as manly, wise, facetious and generous perhaps as one
among a thousand, I was exceedingly delighted in and with his conversation.
He also endeared himself to me very much by his repeated expressions
of complacency in me, by which I was induced to be frequently
in his company and often at his house, where his father would
be entertaining me with exhortations to a religious life, warning me of
the danger of sin, and certainty of that wrath which shall come on all
that know not God. I would sometimes, for curiosity, be inquiring
into his principles, and othertimes, for diversion, be disputing a point
with him; but I knew not that the dead were there, Prov. ix, 18. I was
not religious enough to be much concerned about his principles, but
pitiful enough to be extremely moved with the story of his sufferings.
I had also a reserve in his favor, that it was possible he might be a good
.bn 072.png
.pn +1
man (the strangeness of his doctrine notwithstanding), especially seeing
all his sufferings were not able to shake his constancy, or oblige him to
recede from the least part of his religion.
.pm end_quote
And here a just tribute may be paid to John Rogers, 2d, from
whom we have so largely quoted. The appreciative reader will
agree with us in saying he was a son worthy of the father, in defence
of whose honor he wrote. Clear in his statement of facts,
conclusive in his reasoning, and abundantly supplied with authority
in proof of his assertions, his words bear the sacred impress of
truth. Malice has raised no aspersions against his character.
“Notwithstanding,” says Miss Caulkins, “his long testimony and
his many weary trials and imprisonments, he reared to maturity a
family of eighteen children, most of them, like their parents,
sturdy Rogerenes.” As soon as he was able to make choice for
himself, about the age of sixteen, he left the home of his grandfather,
Matthew Griswold of Lyme, the ancestor of many noted
men, and chose to live with his father. His sister did the same
thing at the age of fourteen, and was married at her father’s
house. A purer, sweeter, and higher tribute could scarcely be
paid to that heroic defender of religious liberty and great sufferer
for conscience’ sake.
John Rogers, 2d, was the author of several other books besides
his “Reply to Peter Pratt,” each of them being of the same able
character.
.bn 073.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_5'
CHAPTER V.
.sp 2
“Nine and twenty knives.”—Ezra i, 9. It would take more
than that number of knives to sever the many threads of falsehood
and malice wound about the name of John Rogers, a name that
may yet emerge as the royal butterfly from its chrysalis, to dwell in
the light and atmosphere of heaven.
We must now charge the Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall, governor of
the State of Connecticut, and judge of its Superior Court, with
concocting a plan whereby he and his ecclesiastical accomplices
might incarcerate John Rogers in the Hartford jail, exclude him
from the light, and hide him from the public thought. Had this
nefarious scheme succeeded, Rogers would doubtless have been
held a close prisoner for life; but he was apprised of it and
enabled to make his escape, like as St. Paul was let down in a
basket from the wall of Damascus to elude the fury of his enemies.
The governor’s suit against him for slanderous words—not slanderous
in law—for which a subservient jury awarded him damages
in the sum of £600, proves with what malign purpose Roger’s
conduct was watched by him.
Here follows an account of the above mentioned plot and other
matters, in Roger’s own words, copied from his address to the
civil authorities and particularly to Gov. Saltonstall, in which he
recounts some of the atrocious wrongs he had received from them,—wrongs
which could hardly gain credence had they not been openly
published at the time, during the life of Gov. Saltonstall, and not
denied by him.
.pm start_quote
The last fine you fined me was ten shillings. All that I did was
expounding upon a chapter in the Bible between your meetings, after
the people were gone to dinner, which you call a riot. I went into no
other seat but that which I was seated in by them whom the town appointed
to seat every one. The building of the meeting-house cost me
.bn 074.png
.pn +1
three of the best fat cattle I had that year and as many sheep as sold for
thirty shillings in silver money. For which said fine of ten shillings,
the officer took ten sheep, as some told me that helped to drive them
away. The sheep were half my son’s. They were marked with a
mark that we marked creatures with that were between us, which said
mark had been recorded in the town book, I suppose for above twenty
years. And after they were sold, the officer went into my son’s pasture,
unbeknown to him, and took a milch cow which was between us (my
part he hired), all upon the same fine of ten shillings. Such things as
these have been frequently done upon us; but my purpose is brevity,
and such things as these would contain a great volume; therefore I
think to mention but one more. I was fined £20 by a Superior Court
for charging an Inferior Court with injustice for trying upon life and
death without a jury. The judge of the Superior Court that fined me
was this present Governor, who also denied me a jury, though I chose
the jury then panelled. For which £20 and the charges, an execution
was laid upon land which I bought for my son, with his own money,
and after it was taken away by said execution, he went and bought it
of you this present Government, and gave you the money down for it,
and you gave him a patent for it I think as substantial as your patent
from the crown of England for your Government, upon all accounts,
being sealed with your seal and with your present Governor’s hand and
your Secretary’s to it. The patent cost 19s. to the Governor for signing
it. And when you had got his money for it, and given him said patent,
then you took this very individual land from him, and kept his money
also, and left him nothing but said patent in his hand; for said Governor
kept the deed which the man of whom I bought it gave, and keeps it
to this day, I think for that end that my son may not help himself of
said deed; for the man of whom I bought it lives in another Government.
I prosecuted the judges of your said Inferior Court before your General
Court for judging upon life and death without a jury, it being by
your own law out of their jurisdiction to judge in so high a fact without
a jury; the fact also charged to be done in New York government; to
wit, the stealing of three servants out of a man’s house on Long Island
in the night. But you non-suited me in your Court of Chancery and
laid all the charge upon me and fined me £20. So that if the poor
man had not obtained justice in Boston Government, he had lost his
wife and children by you, as I had mine; for he had tried in Rhode
.bn 075.png
.pn +1
Island Government before, and had got bondsmen to answer all damages,
if he did not make good his right and title to his wife and children.
But said Governor of Rhode Island sent them back to this present
Governor; but, by the good hand of God, they were after transported
into Boston Government, by which means the poor man came at justice.
I thought to have concluded with what is above written; but, upon
consideration that it is but two things among many, I shall set before
you this last to the end of it. The said Inferior Court did proceed and
pass judgment in a case that was upon life and death by the law of
God, the law of England and your own law, upon a fact charged in
another government, as above said, and without witness. And when I
saw they would proceed, I then drew up the following protest and gave
it unto your court.
.tb
The Protest of John Rogers, senior, of New London, against the
proceedings of the present Court, against myself and John Jackson,
being a pretended fact done upon Long Island, within the bounds and
limits of the Government established there for to do justice and judgment
within their limits and territories, and do appeal to their Court of
Justice for a trial where I have evidence to clear myself of any such fact.
.pm singlelinesig 'June 11, 1711.' 'John Rogers, Sr.'
A true copy, testified George Denison, County Clerk.
.ll 68
.rj
June 28, 1711.
.ll
.tb
And I do declare unto you, in the presence of God, that I was not at
that time upon Long Island, when the fact was charged to be done,
though I was at that time within the government of New York. But
when I heard the said Court’s sentence, I did declare it to be injustice
and rebellion against the laws of the crown of England; upon which
charge, the said court demanded of me a bond of £200 to answer it at
the next Superior Court. And when the Superior Court came, I desired
to be tried by a jury, and chose that jury then sitting. But this
present Governor, being judge of this Superior Court, denied me a jury
and fined me £20 and required of me a great bond for my good behavior
till the next Superior Court, which I refused to give, upon this
reason that I would not reflect upon myself, as if I had misbehaved myself,
as I had not. Whereupon, I was committed to prison, and kept a
close prisoner in the inner prison, where no fire was allowed me, and
that winter was a violent cold winter and there was no jailer, but the
.bn 076.png
.pn +1
sheriff kept the keys, who lived half a mile distant from the prison, and
my own habitation full two miles distant; so that it was a difficult thing
for my friends to come at me; the prison new and not under-pinned, and
stood upon blocks some distance from the ground; the floor, being
planked with green plank, shrunk much and let in the cold. My son
was wont in cold nights to come to the grates of the window to see how
I did, and contrived privately in cold nights to help me with some fire
(for the sheriff said he had order that no fire be allowed me), but could
not find any way to make it do by giving it in at the grates, they being
so close, and no place to make it within. But he, coming in a very
cold night, called to me, and perceiving that I was not in my right senses,
was in a fright, and ran along the street, crying, “The Authority hath
killed my father!” and cried at the sheriff’s, “You have killed my
father!” Upon which, the town was raised and my life was narrowly
preserved, for forthwith the prison doors were opened and fire brought
in, and hot stones wrapt in cloth and laid at my feet and about me,
and the minister Adams sent me a bottle of spirits and his wife a cordial,
whose kindness I must acknowledge. And the neighbors came about
me with what relief they could, all which kindness I acknowledge.
But when those of you in authority saw that I recovered, you had up
my son and fined him for making a riot in the night, and he desired to
be tried by a jury, but you dismissed the jury that was in being and
panelled a jury purposely for him, as I was informed,—and since have
seen it to be so by your own court record,—and took for the fine and
charge three of the best cows I had.
In which prison I lay till the next Superior Court and in the sheriff’s
house. The time of the bond demanded by them being out, I was
dismissed. I think the next day, I was going to baptize a person,[13]
and, as I was going to the water, the sheriff came to me and desired to
speak with me. His house being close by, I went in with him. He
went through two rooms and came to the door of the third, and then
told me the Superior Court had ordered him to shut me up. Upon
that, I made a stop and desired him to show me his order. He said it
.bn 077.png
.pn +1
was by word of mouth. He keeping a tavern, there were many present
who told him he ought not to shut me up without a written order. He
then laid violent hands upon me to pull me in, but the people rescued
me; and then he told me he would go to the court and get it in writing.
And so he left me and brought this following Mittimus, this present
Governor being judge of this Superior Court also.
.fm rend=t
.fn 13
Not for baptizing a person, but for going to baptize a person, was Rogers arrested.
“Yet,” said Gov. Saltonstall, “there never was any one that suffered on
account of his different persuasion in religious matters from the body of this people.”
The law against baptizing (other than by the standing order) was simply a fine
for every such baptism.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
.tb
“To the Sheriff of the County of New London, or to his Deputy:
“By special order of her Majesty’s Superior Court, now holden in
New London, you are hereby required, in her Majesty’s name, to take
John Rogers, Sr., of New London, who, to the view of said Court, appears
to be under a high degree of distraction, and him secure in her
majesty’s jail for the County abovesaid, in some dark room or apartment
thereof, that proper means may be used for his cure, and till he
be recovered from his madness and you receive order for his release.
“Signed by order of the said Court, March 26, 1712. In the 11th
year of Her Majesty’s reign.
.pm doublelinesig '“Vera Copia, Testified' 'Jonathan Law, Clerk.' 'John Prentis, Sheriff.”'
.sp 1
And upon this Mittimus, he carried me to prison and put me into
the inner prison and had the light of the window stopt. Upon this, the
common people was in an uproar, and broke the plank of the window
and let light in. And one of the lieutenants that came out of England
told me he had been with the said Superior Court and desired that I
might be brought forth to their view, and they would see that I was
under no distraction, and that they had ordered that I should be brought
out to the Governor in the evening. When it was dark night, I was
taken out by the sheriff and carried to the Governor’s House, into a
private room, and the sheriff sent out by the Governor to see that the
yard was clear; but it is too much to write what was done to some that
were found standing there; but the body of them ran away. The Governor
ordered the sheriff to take me home with him, and keep me at
his house. Accordingly he did so, and gave me charge not to go out of
his yard, but set nobody to look after me; he himself tended on the said
court. About two days after, I was told that the sheriff told a friend
of his that he was ordered, after the court was broke up and the people
dispersed, to carry me up to Hartford prison and to see me shut up in
some dark room, and that one Laborell, a French doctor, was to shave
my head and give me purges to recover me of my madness. I hearing
.bn 078.png
.pn +1
of this, desired the sheriff to give me a copy of the Mittimus, and after
I told him what I heard privately, he owned the truth of it. The night
following, I got up and got a neighbor to acquaint my son how matters
were circumstanced, who brought £10 of money for me, and hired
hands to row me over to Long Island, and pulled off his own shirt and
gave me.
I got to Southold, on Long Island, in the night, and, early in the
morning (it being the first day of the week), I went to a justice, to give
him an account of the matter, having told him that I got away from
under the sheriff’s hand at New London. He replied, “It is the Sabbath;
it is not a day to discourse about such things.” So I returned to
the tavern, and I suppose it was not above an hour before the constable
came and set a guard over me, till about nine or ten of the clock the
next day, and then took me where three justices were sitting at a table,
with a written paper lying before them, who read a law to me that it
was to be counted felony to break out of a constable’s hand. I then
presented a copy of the Mittimus. They read it and desired to be in
private. Being brought before them again, they told me they did not
look at me to be such a person as I was there rendered, and so discharged
me, without any charge.
I told them my design was to their Governor for protection; and that
I expected Hue and Cries to pursue me, and requested of them to stop
them if they could. They promised me they would, and afterwards I
heard they did stop them. I got a man and horse to go with me to
York, with all the speed I could, and the first house I went into was
Governor Hunter’s, in the fort. I showed him the Mittimus and gave
him an account of the matters. He told me he would not advise me to
venture thither again, and that I should have safe protection. I told
him I expected Hue and Cries to come after me. He told me I need
not fear that at all, “For,” said he, “I have heard you differ in opinion
from them, and they will be glad to be rid of you. It is evident you are
no such man as they pretend.”
But, the next day, about ten of the clock, there came two printed
Hue and Cries in at the tavern where I was, and I got them both, and
went directly to the Governor, who was walking alone on the wall of
the fort, and delivered one of them to him, who read it and then called
to a little man walking on the pavement of the fort, saying, “Mr. Bickly,
Mr. Bickly, come hither.” And when he was come he read it, and
.bn 079.png
.pn +1
said he, “I grant protection to this man; he shall not be sent back upon
this Hue and Cry,” and saith he, “I will write to the Governor of Connecticut,”
and to me he said, “You are safe enough here; I will grant
you protection.” I told him I did believe no answer would be returned
him. He found my words true, and advised me to go for England and
make my complaint, and told me there was a ship then going from
Pennsylvania. A merchant being then present told me if I wanted
money he would lend it to me, and if I should never be able to pay him
he would never trouble me for it. All this kindness have I met with
from strangers; but have thought it my wisdom to commit my cause to
the all-seeing God.
And after I had continued in York about three months, I returned
home, and, after I was recruited, with great difficulty I prosecuted the
judges of said Inferior Court, for you had made it so difficult to summon
them that none could give forth a summons but your General
Court in such a case; but when I with great difficulty brought it to your
Court of Chancery, you non-suited me and ordered me to pay all the
charges and fined me £20. All which causes me to suspect your pretended
care expressed in your printed Hue and Cries to cure me of my
distraction. And here follows a copy for you to view:—
.ce
ADVERTISEMENT.
Whereas John Rogers, Sr., of New London, being committed to the
custody of her Majesty’s Goal, in the County of New London, which is
under my care, with special orders to keep him in some dark apartment
thereof, until proper means be used for the cure of that distraction
which he appears (to her Majesty’s Court of said County) to be
under in a very high degree, hath, by the assistance of evil persons,
made his escape out of the said custody, these are therefore to desire
all persons to seize and secure the said Rogers and return him forthwith
unto me, the subscriber, sheriff of the said County, and they shall
be well satisfied for the trouble and charge they may be at therein.
.pm singlelinesig 'Dated in New London, March 31, 1712.' 'John Prentis.'
.sp 1
After I returned home, I went to the printer to know who it was
that drew this advertisement up, and he showed me the copy, and I
took it to be Governor Saltonstall’s own hand.
.pm singlelinesig 'New London, 15th of the 7th month, 1721.' 'J. Rogers.'
.bn 080.png
.pn +1
Matt. x, 26. “Fear them not therefore, for there is nothing covered
that shall not be revealed, and hid that shall not be known.”
.pm end_quote
We will say a few words in this place concerning the crime of
falsely charging persons with insanity, whether from personal dislike
or from motives of a pecuniary or other nature. Depravity
can scarcely find a lower depth, or infamy wear a deeper brand.
Even now such atrocities are not uncommon, and should be guarded
against with the utmost vigilance. Nearly every one of long and
large experience has been made cognizant of some such diabolism,
where the laws have been too lax in reference to this matter. In
the State of Connecticut, until recently, nothing was required but
the certificate of a physician to secure the incarceration of any
one in a lunatic asylum, with the superintendent’s consent. But
by the law passed, May, 1889, the defect has been thoroughly
remedied. It is also enacted, Section 23, that “Any person who
wilfully conspires with any other person unlawfully to commit to
any asylum any person who is not insane, and any person who
shall wilfully and falsely certify to the insanity of such person,
shall be punished by a fine not exceeding one thousand dollars,
or by imprisonment in the State Prison not exceeding five years,
or both.”
To charge a sane person with insanity, and then devise methods
for his cure which would tend to deprive a sane person of reason!
Could the blade of enmity be drawn to a keener point?
.bn 081.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_6'
CHAPTER VI.
.sp 2
It is with regret that we are compelled to make the following
strictures upon “The Discourse Delivered on the Two Hundredth
Anniversary of the First Church of Christ, in New London,
by Thos. P. Field, 1870.” Amiable as was its author, and
highly esteemed, yet in this discourse, so far as it relates to the
Rogerenes, he has followed in the footsteps of his predecessors,
showing how much easier it is to float on the surface, with the tide,
than to dive deep and bring up gems from the bottom of the
sea. We shall briefly quote from this discourse and make
reply.
Mr. Field says: “During the ministry of Mr. Saltonstall, peculiar
disturbances arose in the church,” referring to the sect called
Rogerenes.
Since we have shown the falsity of many of the statements concerning
the Rogerenes which are repeated by Mr. Field in this discourse,
it is needless to take further notice of them here. But is it
not a matter of surprise that Mr. Field should have spoken with
seeming favor concerning the malicious suit brought by Mr. Saltonstall
against John Rogers for slander? His words are: “On
one occasion, when John Rogers circulated some false report about
him, he brought an action in the county court for defamation and
obtained a verdict of the jury in his behalf.”
He does not tell us the verdict was the enormous sum of £600,
and that there was no legal basis for the action, even had the charge
been true; neither does he state that this suit was brought against
Rogers but a few months after release from his long confinement,
of three years and eight months, in Hartford jail, where he had been
placed at the instance of Mr. Saltonstall, on charge of blasphemy
for words truly scriptural. Mr. Field’s reference to this suit shows
how superficially he had looked into the subject.
.bn 082.png
.pn +1
We must also express surprise that the statement, so falsely and
unblushingly made by Mr. Saltonstall, should be quoted and indorsed
in Mr. Field’s discourse:—
.pm start_quote
There never was, for the twenty years that I have resided in this government,
any one, Quaker or other person, that suffered on account of
his different persuasion in religious matters from the body of this
people.
.pm end_quote
A note appended to Mr. Field’s discourse, may be presumed to
contain his maturest thought, or rather absence of thought. “Lucus
a non lucendo.” The note reads:—
.pm start_quote
Some who heard the discourse thought the Rogerenes were not sufficiently
commended for what was good in them, and especially for their
protest against the improper mingling of civil and religious affairs. It
is the belief of the writer that there were a great many who entertained
similar views with the Rogerenes on that subject, but who would not
unite with them in their absurd mode of testifying against what they
deemed erroneous.
.pm end_quote
“Belief of the writer!” Belief is of little consequence, unless
based upon authority or knowledge; and the person who thrusts
forward his simple belief, to command the assent of others, seems
to proffer a valueless coin. But what if there were such among the
people? They were not heard from; and Seneca says, “He who
puts a good thought into my heart, puts a good word into my
mouth, unless a fool has the keeping of it.”
There were a few, however, who did protest against the tyrannical
treatment of the dissenters and in favor of religious freedom;
but they were heavily fined and laid under the ban of the church, as
the blind man who had received his sight was cast out of the temple
by the Jews. From Miss Caulkin’s history, we quote the protest:—
.pm start_quote
While Rogers was in prison, an attack upon the government and
colony appeared, signed by Richard Steer, Samuel Beebe, Jr., Jonathan
and James Rogers, accusing them of persecution of dissenters,
.bn 083.png
.pn +1
narrow principles, self-interest, spirit of domineering, and saying that
to compel people to pay for a Presbyterian minister is against the laws
of England, is rapine, robbery and oppression.
.pm end_quote
“A special court was held at New London, Jan. 25th, 1694-5, to
consider this libellous paper. The subscribers were fined £5 each.”
Mr. Field goes on to say, “There can be no justification of their
conduct in disturbing public assemblies as they did, which would
not justify similar conduct at the present day.” So much has been
said about their disturbing public assemblies, and to such varied
notes has the tune been played, that the paucity of other arguments
against the Rogerenes is thereby evinced. Fame, with its hundred
tongues, has no doubt greatly exaggerated these offences, if such
they were. There are some Bible commands that might seem to
justify conduct like that above referred to; as, “Go cry in the ears
of this people.” Fines, whippings, imprisonments, setting in
stocks, etc., for no crime, but simply for non-conformity to the
Congregational church, were grounds for their conduct which do
not now exist. Did Mr. Field suppose that an intelligent audience
would give credence to his above assertion? or had he taken
lessons of the teacher of oratory who told his pupils to regard his
hearers as “so many cabbage stumps”?
“No justification of their conduct” at that time “which would
not justify similar conduct at the present day!”
There was an evil to be assailed then that has now passed away.
The man who should enter a meeting-house now with a plea for
religious liberty might properly be regarded as a lunatic. But, if
the old abuses were revived, some Samson would again arise, to
shake the pillars of tyranny.
Mr. Field closes his remarks by saying:—
.pm start_quote
There is no evidence that their testimony or their protestations had
the slightest influence in correcting any of the errors of the times in respect
to the relation of civil and ecclesiastical authority.
.pm end_quote
Had Mr. Field said that there was no evidence within his knowledge,
.bn 084.png
.pn +1
we should have taken no notice of this statement. Confession
of ignorance, like other confessions, may sometimes be good
for the soul. But when he presumes to assert that a fact does not
exist of which other people may be cognizant, he transcends the
bounds of prudence.
Proof is abundant, that the Rogerenes and their descendants
were foremost in advocating the severance of church from state
and the equal rights of all to religious liberty. Their uniform testimony
in Connecticut, for more than a century, in defence of true
liberty of conscience, which awakened so much discussion throughout
the State, could not have been without its enlightening influence.
But we will be more minute by mentioning some of the things
which were said and done by Rogerenes,[14] and by those into whose
minds their doctrines had been early and effectually instilled.
.fm rend=t
.fn 14
Abundant proof of the prominent stand taken by John Rogers himself in behalf
of religious liberty will be found not only throughout this volume but by extracts
from his writings to be found in Appendix.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
John Bolles, whom Miss Caulkins calls “a noted disciple of
John Rogers,” wrote largely on the subject of religious liberty.
In his work, entitled “True Liberty of Conscience is in Bondage
to No Flesh,” this point is amply discussed. In his address to the
Elders and Messengers of the Boston and Connecticut Colonies,
concerning their Confessions of Faith, which were one and the
same, he says:—
.pm start_quote
First, the Elders and Messengers of each Colony have recommended
them to the Civil Government, and the Civil Government have taken
them under their protection to defend them. And now God hath put
it into my heart to reprove both Governments.
.pm end_quote
After showing by Scripture that the civil government is ordained
of God to rule in temporal affairs, and not for the government of
men’s consciences in matters of religion, he goes on to say:—
.pm start_quote
Thus it is sufficiently proved that God hath set up the Civil Government
to rule in the Commonwealth, in temporal things; and as well
proved that he hath not committed unto them the government of his
.bn 085.png
.pn +1
church. I have proved that the Civil Government as they exercise
their authority to rule only in temporal things are the ministers of God,
and that God hath not committed to them the government of his Church,
or to meddle in cases of conscience.—And now I speak to you, Elders
and Messengers; as you have recommended your Confessions of Faith;
and to you, Rulers of the Commonwealth, as you have acknowledged
them, and established them by law, and defend them by the carnal
sword; I speak, I say, to both parties, as you are in fellowship with each
other in these things, and so proceed to prove that exercising yourselves
in the affairs of conscience and matters of faith towards God, you do it
under the authority of the dragon, or spirit of antichrist.
And you, Elders and Messengers (as you are called), as you stand to
maintain and defend the said confessions, are not Elders and Messengers
of the churches of Christ, but of antichrist. And you, Rulers of
the Commonwealth of each Government, as you exercise yourselves as
such in the affairs of conscience, and things relating to the worship of
God, you do it not under Christ; but against Christ, under the power
of antichrist, as by the Scripture hath been fully proved. In the form of
church government in Boston, Confession, Chapter 17, par. 6, they say:
“It is the duty of the Magistrate to take care of matters of religion, and
improve his civil authority for observing the duties commanded in the
first, as well as for observing the duties commanded in the second table.”
And further say, “The end of the Magistrate’s office is not only the
quiet and peaceable life of the subject in matters of righteousness and
honesty, but also in matters of Godliness, yea, of all godliness.” The
gospel was preached and received in opposition to the civil magistrates,
as is abundantly recorded: And the encouragement Christ has given to
his followers is by way of blessing under persecution: “Blessed are
they which are persecuted for righteousnes’s sake, for theirs is the kingdom
of heaven.” And for any people professing the Christian faith to
set up a form of Godliness, and establish it by their human laws, and
defend it by the authority of the Magistrate, is to exclude Christ from
having authority over his Church, and themselves to be the supreme
head thereof.
.pm end_quote
The book from which we quote was published about 1754. The
following, from the same book, has reference to the persecutions in
New England, of the Rogerenes and others:—
.bn 086.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
Now, Boston and Connecticut, let us briefly inquire into the doings
of our forefathers[15] towards those that separated themselves from them
for conscience’ sake, and testified against their form of godliness. To
begin with Connecticut: they punished by setting in stocks, by fining,
whipping, imprisoning and chaining in prison, and causing to set on the
gallows with a halter about the neck, and prohibiting the keeping Quaker
books, and that such books should be suppressed, as also putting fathers
and mothers both in prison from their children, and then enclosing the
prison with a boarded fence about ten foot high, with spikes above,
points upwards, and a gate kept under lock and key to prevent any communication
of friends or relations with the prisoners, or communicating
anything necessary for their support; but must go near half a mile to
the prison keeper to have the gate opened.
.fm rend=t
.fn 15
This “Message” of John Bolles was written when the Rogerenes were not under
virulent persecution, of which there was cessation after the death of Gov. Saltonstall
(1724) until the time of Mather Byles over thirty years later. See Part II.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
At New Haven, a stranger, named Humphrey Norton, being put
ashore, not of his own seeking, was put in prison and chained to a post,
and kept night and day for the space of twenty days, with great weights
of iron, without fire or candle, in the winter season, and not any suffered
to come to visit him; and after this brought before their court, and
there was their priest, John Davenport, to whom said Norton endeavored
to make reply, but was prevented by having a key tied athwart his
mouth, till the priest had done; then, said Norton was had again to
prison, and there chained ten days, and then sentenced to be severely
whipped, and to be burned in the hand with the letter H, for heresy,
who, my author says, was convicted of none; and to be sent out of the
Colony, and not to return upon pain of the utmost penalty they could
inflict by law. And the drum was beat, and the people gathered, and
he was fetched and stripped to the waist, and whipped thirty-six cruel
stripes and burned in the hand very deep with a red-hot iron, as aforesaid,
and then had to prison again and tendered his liberty upon paying
his fine and fees.—See George Bishop: “New England Judged,” page
203, 4.
These and other like things were done in Connecticut.
Now let us hear what was done in Boston Government, as it is to be
seen in the title-page of said Bishop’s history, touching the sufferings of
the people called Quakers: “A brief relation,” saith he, “of the suffering
.bn 087.png
.pn +1
of the people called Quakers in those parts of America, from the beginning
of the fifth month, 1656, the time of their first arrival at Boston
from England, to the latter end of the tenth month, 1660, wherein the
cruel whippings and scourgings, bonds and imprisonments, beatings
and chainings, starvings and huntings, fines and confiscation of estates,
burning in the hand and cutting off ears, orders of sale for bond-men
and bond-women, banishment upon pain of death, and putting to death
of those people are shortly touched, with a relation of the manner, and
some of the most material proceedings, and a judgment thereupon.”
They also burned their books by the common executioners (see Daniel
Neal’s “History of New England,” Vol. I., page 292). They also impoverished
them by compelling them to take the oath of fidelity, which
they scrupled for conscience’ sake, and for their refusing of which they
were fined £5 each or depart the Colony; but they, not departing, and
under the same scruple, came under the penalty of another £5; and so
from time to time, and many other fines were imposed on them, as for
meeting by themselves. (See said History, page 320.)
And in said book is contained a brief relation of the barbarous cruelties,
persecutions and massacres upon the Protestants in foreign parts
by the Papists, etc. And now I return to Boston and Connecticut, with
reference to what was said touching the doings of our forefathers; they
not being repented, nor called in question, but a persisting in acts of
force upon conscience in some measure to this day. But it is the same
dragon, and same persecuting spirit that required the worshipping of
idols, and persecuted the primitive church, that now professes himself
to be a Christian, and furnishes himself with college-learned ministers,
nourished up in pride through idleness and voluptuous living; and these
are his ministers; and they are the same set of men that Christ thanked
God that he had hid the mysteries of the kingdom of God from, Matt.
xi, 25. And he, the dragon, assures the rulers of the commonwealth
that God hath set them to do justice among men, and to take under their
care the government of the church also.
In 1754, I went to the General Court at Hartford, and also to the
General Court at Boston, considering their Confessions were both one,
and that both Governments lie under the same reproof,—and I have
published three treatises already, touching these things; but there has
been no answer made to any, and this is the fourth; after so much proof,
I think it may truly be said of them, as in Rev. ii, 2, “And thou hast
.bn 088.png
.pn +1
tried them which say they are apostles, and are not, and hast found
them liars.”
In a word, to rule the church by the power of the magistrate is to
destroy the peace of both church, families and commonwealths. But,
on the contrary, Christ is said to be the Prince of Peace. Isaiah ix, 6.
And all that walk in His spirit follow His example, to live peaceably
towards all men, as also towards the Commonwealth, as he did, for
peace’ sake, rather than to offend.
.pm end_quote
Perhaps we cannot give a better idea of the extent and versatility
of Mr. Bolle’s efforts in this direction, which extended over
a long period, than by transcribing some portion of what is said
of him by his biographer (in “Bolles Genealogy”):—
.pm start_quote
John Bolles, third and only surviving son of Thomas and Zipporah
Bolles, was born in New London, Conn., August 7, 1767. At the age
of thirty, he became dissatisfied with the tenets of the Presbyterian
church, in which he had been educated. That church was the only one
recognized by law. Its members composed the standing order, and,
from the foundation of the colony until the adoption of a state constitution
and the principle of religious toleration, in 1818, every person in
Connecticut, whatever his creed, was compelled by law to belong to or
pay taxes for the support of the standing order. It was as complete an
“Establishment” as is the “Established Church of England.” Mr.
Bolles became a Seventh Day Baptist,[16] and was immersed by John
Rogers, the elder. Well educated, familiar with the Bible, independent
in fortune, earnest in his convictions and of a proselyting spirit, bold
and fond of discussion, Mr. Bolles engaged very actively in polemical
controversy, and wrote and published many books and pamphlets;
some of which still extant prove him to have been, as Miss Caulkins,
the historian of New London, describes him, “fluent with the pen and
adroit in argument.” From one of his books in my possession, it appears
that his escape when his mother and her other children were murdered
by Stoddard, and his deliverance from other imminent perils,
“when,” to use his own words, “there was but a hair’s breadth between
.bn 089.png
.pn +1
me and death,” made a deep impression on his mind and caused him to
feel that God had spared him for some special work. This belief is expressed
in some homely verses, Bunyan-like in sound, closing with the
following couplet:
.pm start_poem
“Yet was my life preserved, by God Almighty’s hand,
Who since has called me forth for His great truth to stand!”
.pm end_poem
.fm rend=t
.fn 16
This is an error. He became a Rogerene after the Rogerene Society had given
up the Seventh Day Sabbath.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Under the spur of this conviction, he devoted himself to the great
cause of religious freedom, encountering opposition and persecution,
and suffering fines, imprisonments and beating with many stripes.
.pm end_quote
After referring to several of his books his biographer says:—
.pm start_quote
I have another of his books, called “Good News from a Far Country,”
whose argument is to prove that the Civil Government “have no
authority from God to judge in cases of conscience,” to which is added
“An Answer to an Election Sermon Preached by Nathaniel Eells.”
Another, dated from New London 11th of 7th month, 1728 (March being
then the first month of the year), is a pamphlet containing John
Bolle’s application to the General Court, holden at New Haven, the
10th of the 8th month, 1728, informing that honorable body, “in all the
honor and submissive obedience that God requires me to show unto
you,” etc., that he had examined the Confessions of Faith established
by them and found therein principles that seem not to be proved by
the Scriptures there quoted, and had drawn up some objections thereto,
etc. He published many other works, and from 1708 to 1754 hardly a
year elapsed without his thus assailing the abuses of the established
church and vindicating the great principle of “soul-liberty.” Once a
year, as a general rule, he mounted his horse, with saddle-bags stuffed
full of books, and rode from county to county challenging discussion,
inviting the Presbyterian Elders to meet him, man-fashion, in argument,[17]
or confess and abandon their errors. “But,” says he, in one of
his books, “they disregarded my request.” He even made a pilgrimage
to Boston, Mass., in 1754, to move the General Court of Massachusetts
in this behalf, as he had often endeavored to move the Connecticut
Legislature. This last exploit, a horseback ride of two hundred miles, in
.bn 090.png
.pn +1
his 77th year, may be regarded as a fit climax to a long life of zealous
effort in the cause of truth. It is no extravagant eulogy to say that
John Bolles was a great and good man.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 17
Such religious debates were common in those days between persons of different
persuasions, especially ministers, elders, etc.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
His works are his best epitaph. No man knoweth of his grave
unto this day; but the stars shine over it.
.pm start_poem
With all the humble, all the holy,
All the meek and all the lowly,
He held communion sweet;
But when he heard the lion roar,
Or saw the tushes of the boar,
Was quick upon his feet:
And what God spake within his heart
He did to man repeat.
.pm end_poem
So much from one of the early Rogerenes against the union of
church and state and in favor of equal religious liberty; thoughts,
sentiments, principles which lie at the basis of our new constitution;
published and scattered throughout the land at an early
period, instilled into the hearts of children, blossoming out in speech
and inspiring efforts which aided the complete establishment of
religious liberty in Connecticut. Descendants of John Bolles were
among the very foremost, ablest, and most efficient workers in this
cause, baptized, as it were, into these sacred truths. A few examples
will be given; but we can hardly hope that the despisers of
the Rogerenes will find in them “evidence that their testimony or
their protestations had the slightest influence in correcting any of
the errors of the times, in regard to the relations of civil and ecclesiastical
authority.”
To show that early descendants of the Rogerenes were trained in
goodness, as well as in argument, we will speak of John Bolles of
later times, brother of Rev. David Bolles and grandson of the John
Bolles of whom we have said so much. He was the founder, and
for forty years a deacon, of the First Baptist Church of Hartford,
of which Rev. David Bolles was one of the first preachers. We
quote some interesting passages concerning him from Dr. Turnbull’s
.bn 091.png
.pn +1
“Memorials of the First Baptist Church, Hartford, Conn.,”
which were read by Dr. Turnbull as sermons, after the dedication
of the new church edifice, May, 1856:—
.pm start_quote
There was no man, perhaps, to whom our church, in the early period
of its history, was more indebted than John Bolles.... He was a Nathaniel
indeed, in whom there was no guile. And yet, shrewd beyond
most men, he never failed to command the respect of his acquaintances.
Everybody loved him. Decided in his principles, his soul overflowed
with love and charity. Easy, nimble, cheerful, he was ready for every
good word and work. He lived for others. The young especially loved
him. The aged, and above all the poor, hailed him as their friend. He
was perpetually devising something for the benefit of the church or the
good of souls. How or when he was converted he could not tell. His
parents were pious, and had brought him up in the fear of God, and in
early life he had given his heart to Christ, but all he could say about it
was that God had been gracious to him and he hoped brought him
into his fold. On the relation of his experience before the church in
Suffield, the brethren, on this very account, hesitated to receive him;
but the pastor, Rev. John Hastings, shrewdly remarked that it was evident
Mr. Bolles was in the way, and that this was more important than
the question when, or by what means, he got in it; upon which they
unanimously received him. He was very happy in his connection with
the church in Suffield. The members were all his friends. He would
often start from Hartford at midnight, arrive in Suffield at early
dawn, on Sabbath morning, when they were making their fires, and
surprise them by his pleasant salutation. After breakfast and family
prayers, all hands would go to church together.
Of course, he was equally at home with the church in Hartford, and
spent much of his time in visiting, especially the poor of the flock. He
had a kind word and a ready hand for every one. One severe winter,
a fearful snow-storm had raised the roads to a level with the tops of the
fences. A certain widow Burnham lived all alone, just on the outer
edge of East Hartford. The deacon was anxious about her; he was
afraid that she might be covered with the snow and suffering from want.
He proposed to visit her; but his friends thought it perilous to cross the
meadows. But, being light of foot, he resolved to attempt it. The
weather was cold, and the snow slightly crusted on the top. By means
.bn 092.png
.pn +1
of this he succeeded, with some effort, in reaching the widow’s house.
As he supposed, he found it covered with snow to the chimneys. He
made his way into the house and found the good sister without fire or
water. He cut paths to the woodpile and to the well, and assisted her
to make a fire and put on the tea-kettle. He then cut a path to the pig-pen
and supplied the wants of the hungry beast, by which time breakfast
was ready. After breakfast, he read the word of God and prayed,
and was ready to start for home. In the meanwhile, the sun had melted
the crust of snow, and, as he was passing through the meadows, he
broke through. He tried to scramble out, but failed; he shouted, but
there was no one to hear him. The wind began to blow keenly; he did
not know but he must remain there all night and perish with cold. But
he committed himself to God, and sat down for shelter on the lee-side
of his temporary prison. He finally made a desperate effort, succeeded
in reaching the edge, and found, to his joy, that the freezing wind had
hardened the surface of the snow, which enabled him to make his way
home.
On a pleasant Sabbath morning, some seventy years ago, might be
seen a little group wending their way from Hartford, through the green
woods and meadows of the Connecticut valley, towards the little church
on Zion’s Hill. Among them was a man of small stature, something
like Zaccheus of old, of erect gait, bright eye and agile movement.
Though living eighteen miles from Suffield, he was wont, on pleasant
days, to walk the whole distance, beguiling the way with devout meditation;
or, if some younger brother chose to accompany him, with pleasant
talk about the things of the Kingdom. This was Deacon John
Bolles, brother of Rev. David Bolles, and uncle of the late excellent
Rev. Matthew Bolles, and of Dr. Lucius Bolles so well known in connection
with the cause of foreign missions.
In the year of our Lord 1790, just about the commencement of the
French Revolution, this good brother and a few others came to the conclusion
that the time had arrived to organize a Baptist Church in the
city of Hartford. Previous to that, they had held meetings in the court-house
and in private houses. On the 5th of August, 1789, the first baptism,
according to our usage, was administered in this city. On September
7, it was resolved to hold public services on the Sabbath in a
more formal way. Accordingly, the first meeting of this kind was held,
October 18, in the dwelling-house of John Bolles. These services were
.bn 093.png
.pn +1
continued, and in the ensuing season a number of persons were baptized
on a profession of their faith in the Lord Jesus Christ. On the 23d of
March, 1790, sixteen brothers and sisters were recognized as a church
of Christ, by a regularly called council, over which Elder Hastings presided
as Moderator.
When the Baptists began to hold public services, an over-zealous
member of Dr. Strong’s society (the Centre Congregational Society)
called upon him and asked him if he knew that John Bolles had “started
an opposition meeting.” “No,” said he. “When? Where?” “Why,
at the old court-house.” “Oh, yes, I know it,” the doctor carelessly replied;
“but it is not an opposition meeting. They are Baptists, to be
sure, but they preach the same doctrine that I do; you had better go
and hear them.” “Go!” said the man, “I am a Presbyterian!” “So
am I,” rejoined Dr. Strong; “but that need not prevent us wishing
them well. You had better go.” “No!” said the man, with energy,
“I shan’t go near them! Dr. Strong, a’n’t you going to do something
about it?” “What?” “Stop it, can’t you?” “My friend,” said the
doctor, “John Bolles is a good man, and will surely go to heaven. If
you and I get there, we shall meet him, and we had better, therefore,
cultivate pleasant acquaintance with him here.”
Dr. Bushnell, many years after, paid him a sweet tribute, in his sermon
“Living to God in Small Things.” “I often hear mentioned by the
Christians of our city (Hartford) the name of a certain godly man, who
has been dead many years; and he is always spoken of with so much
respectfulness and affection that I, a stranger of another generation,
feel his power, and the sound of his name refreshes me. That man
was one who lived to God in small things. I know this, not by any
description which has thus set forth his character, but from the very
respect and homage with which he is named. Virtually, he still lives
among us, and the face of his goodness shines upon all our Christian
labors.”
.pm end_quote
Dr. Samuel Bowles, founder of the Springfield Republican, says
in his “Notes of the Bowles Family:” “Deacon John Bolles of
Hartford, one of the most godly men that ever lived, a descendant
of Thomas Bolles, was a contemporary and neighbor of my father,
and used to call him ‘cousin Bowles.’”
Judge David Bolles, son of the Rev. David Bolles before named,
.bn 094.png
.pn +1
was prominent for many years as an active advocate of religious
freedom. We quote the following historical statement concerning
him:—
.pm start_quote
David Bolles, Jr., first child of Rev. David and Susannah Bolles,
was born in Ashford, Ct., September 26, 1765, and died there May 22,
1830. He first studied and practised medicine, and afterwards law.
At the time of his death he was judge of the Windham County Court.
He received the honorary degree of A.M. from Brown University in
1819. He was a Methodist in religion, and to his long continued and
zealous services, as advocate of “the Baptist Petition,” before successive
legislatures, was Connecticut largely indebted for the full establishment
of religious liberty in 1818.
.pm end_quote
He was the author of the famous “Baptist Petition” above referred
to, the original copy of which, written by his own hand, was
shown to the author by his nephew, Gen. John A. Bolles.
Judge David Bolles was extensively known throughout the State
as the earnest advocate of the liberal movement. The following
anecdote was told the writer by one who sat at a dinner with him.
Calvin Goddard, the late distinguished lawyer of Norwich, then a
young man, said to Judge Bolles on the occasion, “You will blow
your Baptist ram’s horn until the walls of Jericho fall.”
Rev. Augustus Bolles, another brother of Judge Bolles, a Baptist
preacher, many years a resident of Hartford and for some time
associated with the Christian Secretary published there, referring
to the great controversy for equal religious rights in the State of
Connecticut, said to the writer, more than fifty years ago, “The
Bolleses were perfect Bonapartes in that contest.” Where was
Mr. Field then? Perhaps he wasn’t born.
That ably conducted paper, the Hartford Times, was established
in 1817, by Frederick D. Bolles, a descendant of John Bolles, for
the express purpose of meeting this question. From the first number
of said paper, we copy the following:—
.pm start_quote
Anxious to make the Times as useful and worthy of public patronage
as possible, the subscriber has associated himself with John M. Niles,
.bn 095.png
.pn +1
Esq., a young gentleman of talent. The business will be conducted
under the firm of F. D. Bolles & Co., and they hope, through their joint
exertions, to render the paper acceptable to its readers.
.ll 68
.rj
F. D. Bolles.
.ll
.pm end_quote
The subject of religious rights was the main topic of discussion
in this paper. A subsequent number, August 12, 1817, has a long
article signed, “Roger Williams.” It is headed, “An Inquiry
Whether the Several Denominations of Christians in the States
Enjoy Equal Civil and Religious Privileges.”
From the “History of Hartford County,” we quote the following:—
.pm start_quote
The Hartford Times was started at the beginning of the year 1817.
Its publisher was Frederick D. Bolles, a practical printer, and at that
time a young man full of confidence and enthusiasm in his journal and
his cause. That cause was, in the party terms of the day, “TOLERATION.”
First, and paramount, of the objects of the Tolerationists was to secure
the adoption of a new Constitution for Connecticut. Under the ancient
and loose organic law then in force, people of all forms and shades
of religious belief were obliged to pay tribute to the established church.
Such a state of things permitted no personal liberty, no individual election
in the vital matter of a man’s religion; and it naturally created a
revolt. The cry of “Toleration” arose. The Federalists met the argument
with ridicule. The “Democratic Republicans,” of the Jefferson
fold, were the chief users of the Toleration cry, and the Hartford
Times was established on that issue, and in support of the movement
for a new and more tolerant Constitution. It proved to be a lively year
in party politics. The toleration issue became the engrossing theme.
The Times had as associate editor, John M. Niles, then a young and
but little known lawyer from Poquonock, who subsequently rose to a
national reputation in the Senate at Washington. It dealt the Federalists
some powerful blows, and enlisted in the cause a number of men
of ability, who, but for the peculiar issue presented—one of religious
freedom—never would have entered into party politics. Among them
were prominent men of other denominations than the orthodox Congregationalists;
no wonder; they were struggling for life. There was
a good deal of public speaking; circulars and pamphlets were handed
.bn 096.png
.pn +1
from neighbor to neighbor; the “campaign” was, in short, a sharp
and bitter one, and the main issue was hotly contested. The excitement
was intense. When it began to appear that the Toleration cause
was stronger than the Federalists had supposed, there arose a fresh
feeling of horrified apprehension, much akin to that which, seventeen
years before, had led hundreds of good people in Connecticut, when
they heard of the election of the “Infidel Jefferson” to the Presidency,
to hide their Bibles—many of them in hay-mows—under the conviction
that that evident instrument of the Evil One would seek out and
destroy every obtainable copy of the Bible in the land.
The election came on in the spring of 1818, and the Federal party in
Connecticut found itself actually overthrown. It was a thing unheard
of, not to be believed by good Christians. Lyman Beecher, in his Litchfield
pulpit and family prayers, as one out of numerous cases, poured
out the bitterness of his heart in declarations that everything was lost
and the days of darkness had come.
.pm end_quote
Was not the soul of John Rogers marching on?
.pm start_quote
In fact, it proved to be the day of the new Constitution—the existing
law of 1818—and under its more tolerant influence other churches
rapidly arose; the Episcopalians, the Baptists, and the Methodists all
feeling their indebtedness to the party of Toleration.
The Times, successful in the main object of its beginning, after witnessing
this peaceful political revolution, continued, with several changes
of proprietors. It was about sixty years ago that the paper became the
property of Bowles and Francis, as its publishing firm; the Bowles being
Samuel Bowles, the founder, many years later, of the Springfield Republican,
whose son, the late Samuel Bowles, built up that well-known
journal to a high degree of prosperity.
.pm end_quote
Mrs. Watson, of East Windsor Hill, daughter of Frederick D.
Bolles, the founder of the Hartford Times, who courteously furnished
us with the above quotations, also sent us a paper containing
the following tribute to John M. Niles, early associated with
her father in the publication of the Times.
.pm start_quote
Mr. Niles, then a young man, who perhaps had not dreamed at that
time of becoming a Senator of the United States and of making speeches
.bn 097.png
.pn +1
in the Senate Chamber, which, however dry in manner, were to be complimented
by Mr. Calhoun as being the most interesting and instructive
speeches he was accustomed to hear in the Senate—this then unknown
young man was one of the editors. The Times was established on the
motto of “Toleration”—the severance of church from state—the exemption
of men from paying taxes to a particular church if they did not
agree with that church in their consciences. The reform aimed at the
establishment of a more liberal rule in Connecticut; a rule which would
let Baptists, Methodists, and other denominations rise and grow, as
well as the one old dominant and domineering church that had so long
reigned, and with which party federalism had become so incorporated
as to be looked upon practically as part of its creed and substance. The
cause advocated by the Times triumphed; the constitution framed in
1818 established a new order of things. Both Mr. Bolles and Mr.
Niles have passed out of the life of earth; but the work which was accomplished
by the agitation of the “Toleration” question, sixty years
ago, has remained in Connecticut and grown. The old intolerant influence
also is not dead; its spirit remains, but its old power for intolerant
rule has passed away.
.pm end_quote
A terrible weight of prejudice rested upon the Rogerenes who
first planted that seed in Connecticut, whose outshoot, ingrafted
into the constitution of every State in the Union, has become a
great tree of religious liberty spreading its branches over all the
land, under the shadow of which not only we but immigrants from
every clime sit with delight.
This weight of superstition and intolerance was not wholly removed
when Mr. Field wrote of the Rogerenes, which is the only
excuse we can offer for the statements made by him in his “Discourse
Delivered on the Two Hundredth Anniversary of the First
Church of Christ, in New London, October 19, 1870.” Compared,
however, with what John Rogers and his early followers
endured at the hands of a tyrannical, bigoted, blinded church, and
the falsehoods and scoffs which ecclesiastical historians have promulgated,
Mr. Field’s utterances are lighter than a feather.
.bn 098.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_1_7'
CHAPTER VII.
.sp 2
We had not intended to make further reply (see Chapter #II:ch_1_2#)
to Mr. McEwen’s Half-Century Sermon; but lest our silence should
be construed by some as implying an inability to do so, we turn to
it again.
“The elder Gov. Griswold,” he says, “acted at one time as
prosecuting attorney against the Rogerenes.” If this was so, he
was prosecuting his somewhat near relatives, so far as the descendants
of John Rogers, 2d, were concerned, Henry Wolcott and
Matthew Griswold, Sr., being their common ancestors.
Is it not strange that ministers of religion should delight in showing
the powers of this world to be their support, as if to add honor
and respectability to the church? “Who is she that”—without
secular pomp—“looketh forth as the morning; fair as the moon,
clear as the sun, and terrible as an army with banners?”
Mr. McEwen proceeds, “I have not yet spoken of scourging, nor
of the effect of it; which, in the consummation of judgments,
actually befell these crusaders against idolatry,” referring to the
“outbreak” of 1764-6.
Neither does Mr. McEwen speak of fines, imprisonments, setting
in stocks, and other barbarous cruelties practised upon John
Rogers and his followers; but he adds: “What the law could not
do, in that it was weak, lynching did.” We wonder that Mr.
McEwen should have made this admission; but we honor him for
it, although he gives away his cause. “Lynching did.” Here is
an acknowledgment that the church and government of that
day, regardless even of their own laws, resolved themselves into
a mob.
Says Mr. McEwen:—
.pm start_quote
Historical fidelity constrains me, though with reluctance and sadness,
to say that our forefathers of this congregation, in the extremity of their
.bn 099.png
.pn +1
embarrassment, took the disturbers of public worship out, tied them to
trees, and permitted the boys to give them a severe whipping with
switches taken from the prim bush.
.pm end_quote
This treatment was made more disgraceful from the fact, admitted
by Mr. McEwen, that the Rogerenes, “in common with
Quakers, held the doctrine of non-resistance to violence from men,”
as an example of which, he says:—
.pm start_quote
A constable often took out a lusty man and with a twine tied him to
a tree. He was studious not to break the ligature; but stood, conscientiously,
until the close of divine service, when he was officially released.
.pm end_quote
He continues:—
.pm start_quote
The affirmation of the Rogerenes is that the shrub has never vegetated
in this town since that irreligious and cruel use of it.[18] It is to be
feared that the moral effect upon the boys was worse than the blasting
effect upon the prim bush.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 18
The fact that prim still grows abundantly upon the farm once owned and
occupied by John Rogers, may be an exception worthy of note.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Mr. McEwen goes on to say, as palliating their conduct: “But
our fathers had not the Sabbath School.”
Was the preaching of the gospel a less potent influence than the
Sabbath School? They had Moses and the prophets and the
teachings of Christ. The persecutors of the Christians in all
former ages had not the Sabbath School; but who ever before
offered this excuse in their behalf? And even this apology he does
not extend to the Rogerenes; but holds them to the strictest account,
notwithstanding that they also had not the Sabbath School.
“The Rogerenes,” he adds, “have dwindled to insignificance.”
Should he not know that the work of these reformers is accomplished?
The principles for which they contended have become
universal; their distinctive existence is no longer needed. The
.bn 100.png
.pn +1
citadel of religious bigotry which they assailed has been demolished.
While the dark night of superstition and intolerance overspread
the land, the Rogerenes, like stars and constellations,
pierced the gloom. Leo and the Great Bear shone in the heavens;
but when the sun arose they made obeisance and retired. The
trumpet of Luther is not now blown in Protestant churches. The
Anti-Slavery Society, once potent, has ceased to exist; slavery is
abolished. Would Mr. McEwen doom the Rogerenes to endless
labor, like Sisyphus? He rolled up the stone to have it roll back
again; they helped to roll the stone to the top of the mountain,
the headstone, brought forth with shoutings, to rest there forever.
Mr. McEwen says: “A small remnant of their posterity, almost
unknown, exists in an adjacent town, with hardly a relic
of their earth-born religion. ‘A small remnant’ will be noted
hereafter.”
“Earth-born religion!” In regard to doctrinal points in religion
they differed not from the Congregational church. Mr.
Field himself said, in the discourse from which we have before
quoted, “In their opinions concerning the doctrines of religion
generally they coincided with other Christians, and they did not
abandon, as do the Quakers, the ordinances of Baptism and the
Lord’s Supper.” And Miss Caulkins, in her history, says that
John Rogers was strenuously orthodox in his religious views, as
all his writings clearly show. The Rogerenes baptized by immersion,
it is true, and much of their suffering was on that account.
Benedict, in his Church History, speaks of them as “Rogerene
Baptists.” This feature of their belief, ancient though it may be,
against which the Congregational church a century or two ago
set itself in such violent opposition, has now become current and
popular. With the progress of religious freedom and of gospel
truth, the Rogerenes have long since affiliated with other denominations
and are as one with them. We shall, presently, show to
the reader that prominent ministers, in different denominations,
have been of Rogerene descent.
“But why,” says Mr. McEwen, “you may be ready to ask,
.bn 101.png
.pn +1
rake from oblivion a sect devised for nothing but to destroy the
religion of the gospel and destined to vanish away?”[19]
.fm rend=t
.fn 19
Apparently, Mr. McEwen judged the Puritan Sabbath to have been one and
the same with the “religion of the gospel.”
.fn-
.fm rend=t
In view of what we have already said and shown, we are now
somewhat at a loss which of Solomon’s rules to adopt (see Proverbs
xxvi, 4 and 5), and therefore deem it the part of wisdom to make
no answer at all. Had Mr. McEwen attempted to rear a monument
to his own ignorance, he could not have succeeded better
than by uttering the words above quoted.
“Our answer is,” he continues, “to confirm our faith in the
Almighty Saviour, who said, ‘Every plant which my Heavenly
Father hath not planted shall be rooted up.’”
We are glad that our faith needs no such confirmation. Said
the apostle, “We know whom we have believed.” But what have
the ages preceding the Rogerene movement not lost, who lived
and passed away before this new means of confirming the truth
of the gospel was discovered!
“Shall be rooted up.” If he refers to the principles advocated
by the Rogerenes, to the seed of equal religious rights sown by
them, these are deeper rooted in the hearts, consciences and understandings
of men to-day than ever before at any period in the
world’s history.
To quote further from Mr. McEwen’s discourse:
“Men and women of low minds, in regions of darkness, now
invent religions.”
An insinuation, perhaps, that the Rogerenes were “men and
women of low minds.” They did not invent a new religion, as
we have fully shown, and, for intelligence, for wealth, for moral
rectitude, were not behind others, as will further appear.
Mr. McEwen spoke of “a small remnant of their posterity, almost
unknown, in a neighboring town,” seeming to intimate, perhaps
unintentionally, that all, or nearly all, “their posterity” were
in that “town” and “almost unknown.”
We will mention some of their numerous posterity outside of
.bn 102.png
.pn +1
this “neighboring town,” where in fact are and have been comparatively
few of their descendants, showing first and chiefly how
numerous and well known are descendants of James Rogers, Sr.,
and his son John Rogers, founders of this sect, in the town in
which Mr. McEwen resided and where he delivered this sermon.
First, we will mention Miss Frances Manwaring Caulkins, of
pleasant memory, author of “The History of New London,” and
also Pamela, her amiable sister, for many years an acceptable
teacher in this city. They were descendants of James Rogers, Sr.,
as was also their brother, Henry P. Haven, so well known in religious
and commercial circles, to whose munificent gift, and that
of his daughter, Mrs. Anna Perkins, we are indebted for our Public
Library, a noble monument to their memory. The mother of
Henry P. Haven and the Misses Caulkins was a sister of Christopher
Manwaring, formerly a well-known citizen of this town,
whose father, Robert Manwaring, married Elizabeth Rogers,
daughter of James. Miss Caulkins was also of Rogerene descent
on her father’s side, in the line of Joseph, son of James, Sr.
The late Dr. Robert A. Manwaring, son of the above Christopher
Manwaring, was, by both his parents, honored by Rogers
descent, his mother being daughter of Dr. Simon Wolcott, of
Windsor, who married Lucy Rogers a descendant of James and
settled in this place.
Capt. Richard Law also married a daughter of Dr. Simon Wolcott
and Lucy Rogers; his descendants include the later branches
of the Chew family, also the children of William C. Crump and of
Horace Coit.
J. N. Harris, one of New London’s most enterprising citizens, is
a descendant of James Rogers, Sr.
Ex-Lieut.-Gov. F. B. Loomis was a descendant in the same
line, as was the eminent Professor of Astronomy, the late Elias
Loomis, of Yale College, and also his brother, Dr. Loomis, of New
York.
Rev. Nehemiah Dodge, formerly so well known in New London
as the talented minister of the First Baptist Church, who afterwards
.bn 103.png
.pn +1
adopted the doctrines of Universalism, was a descendant of
James Rogers; as, of course, was his brother, Israel Dodge, father
of Senator Henry Dodge of Wisconsin and grandfather of Senator
Augustus C. Dodge, first governor of the Territory of Iowa, and
afterwards minister to Spain. Rev. Nehemiah was remarkable
for his wit and quickness of repartee, and of him many anecdotes
might be told. One may suffice, as showing his abundant humor.
As Mr. Dodge was driving his horse and sleigh through a narrow
passage, high banks of snow on both sides, he was approached
by a person, also in a sleigh, coming in the opposite direction. Mr.
Dodge, who was a large, stalwart man, arose, and, lifting his whip
loftily, said, “Turn out, you rascal, or I’ll serve you as I did the
last man I met.” The poor fellow, his horses floundering in the
snow, replied, “How did you serve the last man you met?” “I
turned out for him,” was Mr. Dodge’s jovial reply, as he drove past.
The wife of Dr. Nathaniel Perkins and her sister, Miss Jane
Richards, may be mentioned as of Rogers ancestry.
The children of the late Thomas Fitch, one of New London’s
most enterprising citizens, are descendants of James Rogers, in
the line of his daughter, Bathsheba Smith, their mother being
sister of the famous whaling captains of this place, Robert Smith
and Parker Smith, also James Smith, the popular captain of the
Manhansett.
The descendants of Henry Deshon, one of the early residents of
New London, are doubly of Rogers ancestry, being descendants of
John Rogers and also of his sister Bathsheba, by marriage of
daughter of latter to John Rogers, 2d. The late Capt. John
Deshon, the children of B. B. Thurston, and also Augustus Brandagee,
on his mother’s side, are in this line of descent.
John Bishop, government contractor, builder and first proprietor
of the Pequot House, Charles, Henry and Gilbert Bishop, of
the enterprising firm of Bishop Bros., and the late Joseph B. Congdon
may be named as descendants of John Rogers.
The children of Ex-Gov. T. M. Waller and the children of
Frank Chappell are descendants of John Rogers, in the Bishop line.
.bn 104.png
.pn +1
The children of Alfred Chappell are descendants of John Bolles,
in the Turner line.[20]
.fm rend=t
.fn 20
Thomas Turner came to New London, as a young man, about 1721. He
married Patience, daughter of John Bolles, in 1727. She died December 18, 1769,
aged sixty-one. After her death he married Mary (née Harris), widow of John
Waterhouse 2d, and after her death he married Isabel Whitney. His first marriage
was by the regular form common with the New London Rogerenes; his second
and third marriages were by the Quaker form prevalent in Quakertown at that
date, and were recorded by Joseph Bolles, clerk of the Rogerene Society. See Chapter
XIV. Thomas Turner lived in Montville. He died in 1791, aged ninety-two.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Peter C. Turner, for some time cashier of the whaling bank in
New London, and afterwards of the First National Bank, was a
descendant of John Bolles; as are also, in the same line, the Weavers
and Newcombs of the later generations.
Elisha and Frank Palmer, of New London, large manufacturers
at Montville, Fitchville, etc., are descendants of James Rogers
and of John Bolles, as are also Reuben and Tyler Palmer, of New
London, manufacturers. Mr. George S. Palmer of Norwich is of
the same line.
The late enterprising brothers, President and George Rogers, of
New London, were descendants of James Rogers, 2d, and of John
Rogers.
The late Mrs. Marvin, of New London, daughter of Job Taber,
was a descendant of John Rogers and John Bolles, by marriage of
a son of the latter (Ebenezer) with a daughter of John Rogers, 2d.
William Bolles (brother of the writer) was for many years engaged
in the printing, publishing and book-selling business in New
London. He was author and compiler of several books, among
which was Bolle’s “Phonographic and Pronouncing Dictionary,”
royal octavo, admitted to be the best dictionary in this country
previous to Webster’s Unabridged. From the “History of New
London County” we quote the following:—
.pm start_quote
It is a fact worthy of notice, as displaying the originality and versatility
of New England thought and enterprise, that the paper mill at
Bolle’s Cove, a few miles out of New London, was erected by William
.bn 105.png
.pn +1
Bolles, who there made the paper for his dictionary, which was printed
and bound by the concern of which he was senior partner.
.pm end_quote
William Bolles was a foremost abolitionist, when to speak
against slavery was to call down ridicule and opposition of a very
serious nature. William Bolles was a descendant of John Rogers
and John Bolles, who, one hundred and fifty years before, tenaciously
maintained the equal right of all to religious liberty.
Joshua Bolles, brother of above, was a prominent business man
of New London, being not only a partner in the book publishing
firm and bookstore, but also concerned in banking and brokerage.
Of his transactions as a broker, he was able to say that he never
sold stock which he considered unsafe to any man without fully
stating to the applicant his own opinion of the same, and that
even after such warning, he had never sold such stock unless fully
confident that the would-be purchaser was able to lose the amount
thus risked.
Peter Strickland, Consul to Goree-dakir, Senegal, conspicuous
for fidelity in discharging the duties of that office, which he has
held for twenty years, and equally honored as a captain sailing
between Boston and foreign ports, is a descendant of John Rogers
and James Rogers, 2d. His skill in seamanship and fertility of resource
when his vessel was dismantled in a gale, and which he
brought safely into Boston, though it might lawfully have been
abandoned, won him great praise and a gold medal from the underwriters
whose interests he had so faithfully served.
Among lawyers of John Bolles descent: David Bolles, whose
labors were so efficient in the defence of religious liberty more
than half a century ago, to which we have before referred; John
A. Bolles (son of Rev. Matthew Bolles), first editor of the Boston
Daily Journal, and for many years a prominent lawyer in that
city. He received the degree of LL.D. from Brown University, and
was Secretary of State of Massachusetts. He was author of the
prize essay on a Congress of Nations, published by the American
Peace Society, also of many magazine articles. He was a member
.bn 106.png
.pn +1
of Gen. John A. Dix’s staff during the Civil War, and afterwards
Judge Advocate General and solicitor of the Navy Department.[21]
His son, Frank Bolles, was a lawyer, although better known as
Secretary of Harvard College. To his superior qualities of mind
and heart no words of ours can do justice. He was the author of
works illustrative of nature, among which are “The Land of the
Lingering Snow” and “Back of Beaucamp Water.” Of his recent
death, the Boston Journal said: “The birds and flowers have
lost their best historian.” The following lines to his memory were
written by George B. Bancroft:—
.pm start_poem
All the world loves a lover,
Proclaims our poet seer.
So, Nature’s sweet interpreter—
We hold thy memory dear.
And all the world, with myriad tongues,
Rejoices to proclaim,
With insight true, and clear as thine,
Thy fair and spotless fame,
Which lifted high on mighty pens
On every side is heard,
Wherever sounds an insect note
Or carol of a bird.
On opening leaf of tree and plant
He who has eyes may see
The imprint of the secrets rare
It whispered unto thee.
Thy life, so short, compared with ours,
Seems very full and long,
Crowned with the mystic harmony
Of wild melodious song.
The gentle river, drifting slow,
Its verdant banks between,
Reflects the pines that bear thy name
And keeps them ever green.
.pm end_poem
.fm rend=t
.fn 21
“Secretary Bolles” is mentioned in the Biglow Papers. He wrote an “Essay
on Usury and Usury Laws,” published by the Boston Chamber of Commerce,
which led to the suspension of usury laws on short bills of exchange.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
.bn 107.png
.pn +1
H. Eugene Bolles (son of William Bolles mentioned above),
now an active lawyer in Boston, of large practice, is a descendant
of John Rogers and John Bolles.
There are seven lawyers of the present date in New London
who are descendants of John Rogers, viz., Hon. Augustus Brandagee,
Frank Brandagee, Tracy Waller and brothers, Abel Tanner
and the writer. There are three others who are descended from
James Rogers, Sr., in other lines, viz., Clayton B. Smith, W. F. M.
Rogers and Richard Crump.
Benjamin Thurston, a distinguished lawyer in Providence, and
his brother, also a lawyer, are descendants of John Rogers.
We will now speak of ministers, and first of Rev. Peter Rogers,
descendant of James Rogers, 2d, and John Rogers, 2d, his father
being a grandson of the former and his mother a granddaughter
of the latter. We give the following extract from an obituary
notice[22] of this early New England Baptist minister.
.pm start_quote
Elder Peter Rogers was born in New London, Conn., June 23, 1754,
and died at Waterloo, Munroe Co., Illinois, Nov. 4, 1849, at the age of
95 years. His father was a seafaring man and commanded a vessel;
his mother was a devout, praying woman and made a lasting impression
upon his character. Yet he grew up worldly and thoughtless, and
at an early period in the Revolutionary War, enlisted in the army as a
musician and became attached to the corps denominated “Washington’s
Life Guards.” After three year’s service in the army, he was honorably
discharged and then commanded a government vessel, in which
he performed valiant deeds and took three prizes from the enemy.
His conviction of sin was instrumentally produced by the life of faith
and happy death of his first wife (we think she lived to rejoice in his
conversion, but died soon after) and remembrance of the prayers and
instruction of his mother. He was baptized by Eld. Amos Crandall
and soon began to “improve his gift,” as the Baptist phrase was in
early times. In 1790, he was ordained by Elder Zadoc Darrow, Sr.,
Jason Lee and Christopher Palmer. His ministry was distinguished
by revivals.
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 22
Obituary Notice of Elder Peter Rogers, by Rev. J. M. Peck, D.D., of
Illinois. Published in the Minutes of the Pastoral Union for 1850.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
.bn 108.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
For a number of years, Eld. Rogers was a retailing merchant, while
his gratuitous labors were abundant as an evangelist and pastor.
He lived and preached in New London, Killingly and Hampton, in
Connecticut, in Leicester, Mass., and Swanzey, N. Ham., from 1789 to
1828, when he removed to Munroe County, Illinois.
For a few years, he was partially sustained as a pastor; but for a
large part of sixty years he performed the warfare at his own charges,
as did nearly all the Baptist ministers of New England in that day.
Several hundred were converted and baptized under his ministry, a
much larger number, in that day and in that part of the country, than
by other Baptist ministers.
He was past threescore and ten when he came to Illinois, yet for a
number of years he labored much in the gospel and was highly esteemed
and beloved by all his brethren.
He delighted in Christian society, and, like a memorable patriarch of
a former age, his presence, counsel and kindness were welcome in all
our circles. “He fell like a shock of corn fully ripe in its season,” strong
in faith, full of hope, and abundant in joy and consolation.
.pm end_quote
Dr. Lucius Bolles (Rev., D.D., and S.T.D.) was a descendant of
John Bolles. He was for more than twenty-two years pastor of the
First Baptist Church in Salem, Mass., and for many years Secretary
of the American Baptist Board of Foreign Missions and Fellow
of Brown University. Of him it is said, “No man of his denomination
occupied a more prominent position, or exercised an
influence more strong and universal.”
James A. Bolles, D.D., Episcopalian, for many years pastor of
the Church of the Advent, Boston, was a descendant of John Bolles.
He was author of several pamphlets and books on church matters.
Edwin C. Bolles, D.D., a talented preacher of New York City
(Church of the Eternal Hope), whose sermons are embellished
more with the precepts of the Bible than with sectarian tenets, is
a descendant of John Bolles.
Four ministers born in New London during the present century
were descendants of John Rogers, among them Rev. John Brandagee
and Father Deshon of good fame.
Rev. John Middleton was a descendant of James Rogers, 2d.
.bn 109.png
.pn +1
Rev. Charles H. Peck, of Bennington, Vt., is a descendant of
James Rogers, 2d. He is the son of Mrs. E. P. Peck, of New
London, daughter of our late esteemed fellow-townsman, Daniel
Rogers, to whose interest in genealogical researches many besides
ourselves are indebted for information concerning early inhabitants
of New London.
As to physicians of Rogerene descent, we recall very few at time
of this writing. Their ancestors largely discarded medicines, and
this sentiment may have been handed down. But we will mention
William P. Bolles, M.D., of Boston, brother of Lawyer H. E.
Bolles above mentioned, who by his skill in surgery and medical
practice, and also by literary work in the same lines, has brought
honor to himself and his profession.
The writer will here relate a conversation which was held with
a prominent physician of the present day.
“If you had lived,” said we, “two hundred years ago, would
you have chosen the attendance of a physician or the good care of
friends in sickness?”
“I would have preferred the good care of friends,” was the reply.
“The science of medicine was not so well understood then
as at the present day.”
A tacit acknowledgment that the Rogerenes were right, although
the doctor knew not the purpose for which the question was
Certain it is that much less medicine is administered now than
formerly, and statistics show that longevity has increased.
Mr. McEwen has not failed to ridicule the belief of the Rogerenes
concerning the non-use of medicine, and perhaps the best
reply is given by Mrs. Caulkins, when she says of John Rogers, 2d,
as before quoted, “Notwithstanding his long testimony and his
many weary trials and imprisonments, he reared to maturity a
family of eighteen children, most of them, like their parents, sturdy
Rogerenes.”
And of John Bolles in this connection we have only to say, he
had fifteen children, the average age reached by whom was more
than seventy-six years. He himself lived to be ninety.
.bn 110.png
.pn +1
We are not disposed to deny the fact that the Rogerenes held
the sentiments ascribed to them on this subject, and, not to spoil
a joke for relation’s sake, we will relate an anecdote which was told
us by the late Edward Prentice, with much glee on his part.
Joshua Bolles, youngest son of John Bolles (and grandfather of
the writer), then living on Bolles Hill, was badly injured by a ferocious
animal on his place, and brought to the house insensible.
Mr. Frink, his nearest neighbor, immediately sent for Dr. Wolcott,
who came to his assistance. When Mr. Bolles recovered consciousness,
he saw Dr. Wolcott in the room and said to Mr. Frink,
who was standing near him, “What’s Wolcott here for?” Mr.
Frink replied, “I sent for him; if I had not, you would have been
dead by this time.” “Then you should have let me die!” was
Mr. Bolle’s answer. Joshua Bolles lived to be eighty-three years
of age; only one of his fifteen children died in childhood. Several
lived to be eighty and upwards, and all but one of the others to
past middle age.
Since we have introduced Joshua Bolles, we will make the reader
acquainted with a few more of his descendants.
Andrew W. Phillips, the distinguished Professor of Mathematics
in Yale College, is a descendant of Joshua Bolles; as are
also Rev. Joshua Bolles Garritt, Professor of Greek and Latin in
Hanover College, Indiana, his son, Joshua Garritt, missionary in
China, and his daughter, Mrs. Coulter, well known in missionary
and philanthropic circles, wife of John M. Coulter, formerly Professor
of Natural Sciences in Wabash College, and now President
of the Indiana State University.[23]
.fm rend=t
.fn 23
Later a professor in Chicago University.
.fn-
.fm rend=t
Of professors in the Rogers line, we will mention Hamilton
Smith, son of Anson Smith, formerly of New London. He early
gave his attention to telescopic observations, and is a well-known
professor of astronomy in Hobart College, N.Y. He is a descendant
of John Rogers.
William Augustus Rogers, a descendant of James Rogers, 2d,
.bn 111.png
.pn +1
also deserves honorable notice. He is a graduate of Brown University.
He was Professor of Mathematics and Industrial Mechanics
at Alfred University, N.Y., where he secured the building of
an observatory which he equipped at his own expense. Afterwards,
he was for fifteen years Assistant Professor of Astronomy
at Harvard College. In 1880, he received from Yale College the
honorary degree of A.M., in recognition of his services to astronomy;
was elected member of the American Academy of Arts and
Sciences and Fellow of the Royal Microscopical Society, London;
and is now (1895) a professor in Colby University, Maine.
Prof. Nathaniel Britton, of Columbia College, New York, Professor
of Botany, is a grandson of David S. Turner, of New London,
a descendant of John Bolles. David Turner, son of the
latter, is a prominent journalist in Florence, Italy.
Of wealthy merchants and brokers of Rogerene descent in the
Rogers and Bolles line there have been and still are several millionaires.
William Bolles, of Hartford, recently deceased, whose estate was
valued at more than a million, was a grandson of Joshua Bolles.
As an example of sterling business integrity we will mention
Matthew Bolles, of Boston, well known in commercial circles at
home and abroad, a descendant of John Bolles.
Of artists, we will name John W. Bolles, of Newark, N.J., Miss
Amelia M. Watson and Miss Edith S. Watson, of Windsor, granddaughters
of Frederick D. Bolles, also Miss Thurston, of Providence,
formerly of New London, and daughter of Hon. B. B.
Thurston, a descendant of John Rogers.
A young architect, of high promise and achievement, should not
be overlooked, Charles Urbane Thrall, of the Perth Amboy Terra
Cotta Works. He is grandson of Mrs. Urbane Haven, of New
London, who is doubly of John Rogers descent.[24]
.fm rend=t
.fn 24
This young man reproduced, from a description given him by his grandmother,
Mrs. Haven, the old John Rogers house, near which Mrs. Haven lived in her youth,
and where she used to visit her aunt Elizabeth Rogers. (See the Genealogy entitled
“James Rogers and His Descendants,” for the drawing by Mr. Thrall.)
.fn-
.bn 112.png
.pn +1
Of editors and authors: Frederick D. Bolles, founder and first
editor of the Hartford Times, a descendant of John Bolles.
Joshua A. Bolles, son of the late Joshua Bolles of New London
(before mentioned), editor and proprietor of the New Milford Gazette,
a descendant of John Rogers and John Bolles.
John McGinley, editor of the New London Day, is a descendant
of John Bolles.
Anna Bolles Williams, author of a number of popular works, is
a descendant of John Rogers and John Bolles.
Mrs. Mary L. Bolles Branch (daughter of the writer), author of
many acceptable articles for periodicals, both in prose and verse,
is a descendant of John Rogers and John Bolles.[25]
.fm rend=t
.fn 25
Her daughter, Anna Hempstead Branch, is now well known as one of our
young poets.
.fn-
Among teachers, we must not fail to mention Mrs. Marion
Hempstead Lillie, so long the efficient and popular Principal of the
Coit Street School, also a prominent member of the L. S. Chapter
of the D. A. R. and other social and literary circles, in which her
genial manners and brilliant conversational powers have won her
many friends and admirers. She is a descendant of John Rogers,
also of Bathsheba Rogers.
Miss Jennie Turner, so favorably known, and for many years
Assistant Principal of the Young Ladie’s Institute of New London,
is a descendant of John Bolles.
The last four were fellow-students at the Young Ladie’s Academy
of New London, under the instruction of Mr. Amos Perry,
afterwards consul to Tunis, and now (1894) Secretary of the Rhode
Island Historical Society. They were members of an advanced
class formed by him, of which, as the names are now recalled, we
discover that nearly all were of Rogerene descent, viz.: John
Bolles, John Rogers, or both.
Goodness should not less receive its meed of praise. We present
in this place the name of one who from childhood was called
to display sweet ministries in all the walks of life, and by gentlest
.bn 113.png
.pn +1
influence to lead the hearts of others to that which is purest and
best. We speak of our own sister, Delight Rogers Bolles, admired
and loved by all, and whose influence ceases not to be felt at the
present day.
When about twenty years of age, she listened to a discourse delivered
by a preacher of some eminence, which was praised by all
who heard it. After returning home, for her own benefit and that
of others, she wrote down the sermon as nearly as possible as it
was delivered, which was read by many. Fifty years afterwards,
Mr. Charles Johnson, President of the Norwich Bank, formerly a
resident of the town of Griswold, in which she resided at the time,
spoke of it to us with fresh admiration, saying, “Every word of the
sermon was written to a dot.” Afterwards she married and lived
in Hampton for several years, where her excellence of character
won for her hosts of friends. Although a Baptist by profession,
she uniformly partook of the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper with
the Congregational Church on Hampton Hill, no Baptist meeting
being within several miles of that place, for which she received no
censure from the church to which she belonged, to their praise be
it spoken. Goodness and love overshadowed all distinction. We
should remember that the robe of Christ was seamless. Having
so beautifully served her day and generation, she still lives, though
her obsequies were celebrated at the Congregational church at
Hampton seventy years ago. We never heard an unpleasant word
spoken to or by the subject of this memoir. She kept a diary.
When eleven years of age, we cast a glance upon one of its pages
and read these words: “What shall I do to glorify Thee this day?”
This awakened in me a little surprise at the time, wondering what
a person in so small a sphere could do to glorify the great God of
the universe. But we have long since found that the smallest
offerings are acceptable to Him who makes his abode with the
humble and the contrite.
The list of persons of Rogerene descent might be much enlarged,
even within the limits of New London. Outside of this city, it
might be almost indefinitely extended. But we have here given
.bn 114.png
.pn +1
enough, we think, to show that Mr. McEwen’s words, “a small
remnant,” were not well chosen.
It is surprising to note how many of the dwellers on State
Street, in New London, have been, and are, of Rogerene descent.
Even the agent from Washington employed by the government to
select a lot on that street for the new postoffice, and other public
uses, was a descendant of John Rogers.
Instead of a “small remnant,” the words of Scripture would be
much more appropriate:—
“There shall be a handful of corn in the earth, on the top of
the mountain, and the fruit thereof shall shake like Lebanon.”
Here the writer may be indulged in a little pleasantry, and hopes
the reader will not regard it as ungermane to the subject.
As we throw our searchlights upon the past, we are pleased to
note that the lot on which the First Congregational Church now
stands was formerly owned by Stephen Bolles (grandson of John
Bolles) and then called Bolles Hill.[26] It was purchased from him
in the year 1786, by “The First Church of Christ,” and a meeting-house
built thereon; Stephen Bolles contributing one-third of the
price of the lot towards its erection. At and after this period, it
would seem that the church was more lenient toward the Rogerenes;
although they were not permitted to enter into full enjoyment
of equal religious liberty until 1818, when the New Constitution
spread its broad ægis over all alike, to the consummation
of which glorious end, the descendants of the pioneers in the
Rogers movement acted such an efficient part.
Thus, the First Congregational Church, leaving the spot where
had been enacted so much injustice towards the dissenters, planted
itself on Bolles Hill, where the fresh breezes of liberty seemed to
give it a higher and a purer life, reminding us of the old saying,
“If the mountain will not come to Mahomet, Mahomet will go to
the mountain.”
.fm rend=t
.fn 26
Not to be confounded with Bolles Hill where Joshua Bolles resided, which is a
mile and a half from above location.
.fn-
.bn 115.png
.pn +1
A fine granite structure now stands upon the old hill. May all
its future utterances be worthy of its foundation. Long may it
live to make the amende honorable, till the brightness of its future
glory shall hide the shadows of the past. None will be more ready
to publish its praises than the numerous posterity of the persecuted
Rogerenes, remembering the motto, “To err is human, to
forgive divine.”
We will close this chapter with a poem by Mary L. Bolles Branch,
one of her earlier productions which has been widely circulated in
this and other countries. Is not the same oftentimes true of character;
hidden long in obscurity under masses of prejudice and
scorn, yet destined, some day, to be presented, in all its lines of
beauty, to the gaze of men?
.ce
THE PETRIFIED FERN.
.pm start_poem
In a valley, centuries ago,
Grew a little fern-leaf, green and slender,
Veining delicate and fibres tender,
Waving when the wind crept down so low.
Rushes tall and moss and grass grew round it,
Playful sunbeams darted in and found it,
Drops of dew stole down by night and crowned it;
But no foot of man e’er trod that way;
Earth was young and keeping holiday.
Monster fishes swam the silent main,
Stately forests waved their giant branches,
Mountains hurled their snowy avalanches,
Mammoth creatures stalked across the plain;
Nature revelled in grand mysteries,
But the little fern was not of these,
Did not number with the hills and trees,
Only grew and waved its wild, sweet way.
No one came to note it, day by day.
Earth one time put on a frolic mood,
Heaved the rocks and changed the mighty motion
.bn 116.png
.pn +1
Of the deep, strong currents of the ocean;
Moved the plain and shook the haughty wood;
Crushed the little fern in soft, moist clay—
Covered it, and hid it safe away.
O the long, long centuries since that day!
O the changes! O life’s bitter cost,
Since the useless little fern was lost!
Useless? Lost? There came a thoughtful man
Searching for Nature’s secrets, far and deep;
From a fissure in a rocky steep,
He withdrew a stone, o’er which there ran
Fairy pencillings, a quaint design,
Leafage, veining fibres, clear and fine,
And the fern’s life lay in every line!
So, I think, God hides some souls away,
Sweetly to surprise us, the last day.
.pm end_poem
.tb
Shortly after mention, in this chapter, of some of the descendants
of the Rogerene leaders, Mr. John R. Bolles was called to
join those heroes whose vindication he had so conscientiously undertaken,
in the cause of justice and of truth. It remains to add to
the above list of descendants some notice of this deceased writer,
who not only bore the names of both of the principal Rogerene
leaders, but was a direct descendant of both, his mother being a
daughter of John Rogers, 3d, and his father a grandson of John
Bolles. For this purpose is here presented the briefest of the
several obituary notices that appeared in New London papers,
being an editorial in the Daily Telegraph, of February 26, 1895.
.pm start_quote
The death of John Rogers Bolles removes from the people one who
might be regarded almost as a relic of the old times when men were
inspired to bear messages to the world. He was a bold and persistent
fighter of what he deemed wrong and an active and indefatigable warrior
for the right; any cause in which he was engaged was certain to
have the whole benefit of his energies. The achievements of Mr. Bolles
for his city and state have been fully set forth in the number of brilliant
.bn 117.png
.pn +1
and graphic papers he contributed to The Telegraph and which were
read with the widest interest, not only by those here but in other states.
But it was not left for himself to chronicle his work. Some of the greatest
men of the nation have been his friends and have repeatedly testified
their admiration and respect for his remarkable qualities of mind. Mr.
Bolles had a memory that was something prodigious. He was able to
correct with the utmost ease the most trivial misplacements of a word
in a MS. of many thousands, and his familiarity with the Book and all
authors, ancient and modern, was also little less than a marvel, considering
his lack of sight in later years. His reasoning powers were
keen and wonderfully swift, he could anticipate and provide means
against an emergency in an inconceivably short time, and as a tactician
in the fight for New London’s rights he was one of the most skilful and
adroit of managers. Had he devoted his life to other than the work
which was his sole aim, he would undoubtedly have won national pre-eminence.
But after leaving the business of publishing, in which he
was very successful and which he brought to a high degree of excellence
here, he went with all his energies for the development of the
Navy Yard, and in the pursuit of this object he spared nothing, himself
least of all. He was very fluent in speech. His figures were always
grand and forcible, and the magnetic power of his utterance carried
away his audience. His pen is well known. There was a wonderful
power of imagery in him, and he often expressed himself in verse of no
mean order. His capacity for doing literary labor was something enormous;
he could turn out a volume that would stagger an industrious
man, and yet be fresh to tackle another subject after five or six consecutive
hours of steady application. New London owes a great deal
to John R. Bolles, how much it will understand more fully as time goes on.
But apart from his mental endowments, the grand simplicity and
purity of the man deserves the highest commendation. He hated vice.
He lived in virtue. His faith might not have been that of the creed
follower, but he had a sublime and unshaken confidence in God and
belief in His love for him and all true followers of His rules. Simple,
sincere, innocent as a babe of wrong thought or act, John R. Bolles
ended his long life a firm believer in the goodness and mercy of the
Creator whom all that life he had worshipped with the worship of
faith and act and example. In Christ he lived and in Christ he fell
asleep.
.pm end_quote
.bn 118.png
.bn 119.png
.pn +2
.pb
.h2
PART II.| HISTORY OF THE ROGERENES.
.nf c
BY
ANNA B. WILLIAMS.
.nf-
.bn 120.png
.bn 121.png
.pn +2
.sp 4
.ce
THE GREAT LEADERSHIP.
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_1'.
CHAPTER I.
.sp 2
.h4
1637-1652.
.sp 2
Among noticeable young men in the Colony of Connecticut,
previous to 1640, is James Rogers.[27] His name first appears on
record at New Haven, but shortly after, in 1637, he is a soldier
from Saybrook in the Pequot war.[28] He is next at Stratford,
where he acquires considerable real estate and marries Elizabeth,
daughter of Samuel Rowland, a landed proprietor of that place,
who eventually leaves a valuable estate to his grandson, Samuel
Rogers, and presumably other property to his daughter, who
seems to have been an only child. A few years later, James
Rogers appears at Milford. His wife joins the Congregational
church there in 1645, and he himself joins this church in 1652.
.fm rend=t
.fn 27
The parentage and native place of James Rogers remain undiscovered. He
may, or may not, have been the James Rogers who came over in the Increase
(Hotten). There were several of the same name and date in New England. There
is a tradition in the New London family, which can be traced as far back as 1750,
that James Rogers of New London was a grandson, or greatgrandson, of John
Rogers the martyr. Up to this date (1904) no proof has been found to substantiate
this claim. The same claim has been made by descendants of other first settlers
of the name of Rogers, and their traditions are also proven to have been of
early date. These long-standing and very persistent traditions may possibly be
explained by some future discovery.
.fn-
.fn 28
1679—James Rogers sells Thos. Parker 50 A. of land that were granted
James Rogers of N. London, by the Gen. Court, he being a Pequot soldier.—New
London Land Records.
Also in “Memorial History of Hartford,” by J. Hammond Trumbull (pub.
1886), p. 81, is a chapter on the Pequot War, by Rev. Increase N. Tarbox, which
names the men from Saybrook, viz. “John Underhill, Edward Pattison, James
Rogers, Edward Lay, John Gallup and John Wood.”
.fn-
.fm rend=t
He has evidently been a baker on a large scale for some time
previous to 1655, at which date complaint is made to the General
.bn 122.png
.pn +1
Court in regard to a quantity of biscuit furnished by him, which
was exported to Virginia and the Barbadoes, upon which occasion
he states that the flour furnished by the miller for this
bread was not properly ground. The miller substantially admits
that he did not at that time understand the correct manner
of grinding.
In the course of ten years, Milford proves too small a port for
the operations of this enterprising and energetic man, whose business
includes supplies to seamen and troops. Governor Winthrop
is holding out inducements for him to settle at New London. In
1656 he is empowered by the General Court to sell his warehouse
at Milford, with his other property, provided said building be used
only as a warehouse. He now begins to purchase valuable lands
and houses at New London, and so continues for many years, frequently
adding some choice house-lot, Indian clearing, meadowland,
pasture or woodland to his possessions. In 1659 he sells to
Francis Hall, an attorney of Fairfield, “all” his “lands, commons
and houses in Stratford, Milford and New Haven.”—(History
of Stratford.)
At New London, in addition to his large baking business, he has
charge of the town mill, by lease from Governor Winthrop, at the
head of an inlet called Winthrop’s Cove and forming Winthrop’s
Neck, which neck comprises the home lot of the governor. That
James Rogers may build his house near the mill,[29] the Governor
conveys to him a piece of his own land adjoining, upon which
Mr. Rogers builds a stone dwelling. He also builds a stone bakery
by the cove and has a wharf at this point.[30]
.fm rend=t
.fn 29
An ancient mill built in 1728, on or very near the site of the first mill, is still
standing (see “Hempstead Diary,” page 200). Less than fifty years ago, the cove
was a beautiful sheet of water commencing just in front of the mill, separated from
it by little more than the width of the winding street, and from thence stretching
out in rippling, shining currents to the river. This cove has been so filled in of
recent years that considerable imagination must be exercised to reproduce the ancient
sweep of clear, blue water known as Winthrop’s Cove.
.fn-
.fn 30
In 1664 he gave his son Samuel land “by the mill” “west side of my wharf.”
.fn-
The long Main street of the town takes a sharp turn around the
.bn 123.png
.pn +1
head of the cove, past the mill and to the house of the Governor,
the latter standing on the east side of the cove, within a stone’s
throw of the mill.
The native forest is all around, broken here and there by a
patch of pasture or planting ground. One of the main roads
leading into the neighboring country runs southerly five miles to
the Great Neck, a large, level tract of land bordering Long Island
Sound. Another principal country road runs northerly from the
mill, rises a long hill, and, after the first two or three miles, is
scarcely more than an Indian trail, extending five miles to Mohegan,
the headquarters of Uncas and his tribe. Upon this road are
occasional glimpses, through the trees, of the “Great River” (later
the Thames).
James Rogers is soon not only the principal business man of this
port, but, next to the Governor, the richest man in the colony.
His property in the colony much exceeds that of the Governor.
He is prominent in town and church affairs, he and his wife having
joined the New London church; also frequently an assistant at
the Superior Court and deputy at the General Court. His children
are receiving a superior education for the time, as becomes
their father’s means and station. Life and activity are all about
these growing youth, at the bakery, at the mill, at the wharf.
Many are the social comings and goings, not only to and from the
Governor’s house,[31] just beside them, but to and from their own
house. His extensive business dealings and his attendance at
court have brought James Rogers in contact with intelligent and
prosperous men all over the colony, among whom he is a peer.
His education is good, if not superior, for the time. He numbers
among his personal friends some of the principal planters in this
colony and neighboring colonies.
.fm rend=t
.fn 31
Occupied by his son-in-law after Mr. Winthrop’s removal to Hartford In 1657.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1666.
In 1666 James Rogers retires from active business. His sons
Samuel and Joseph are capable young men past their majority.
.bn 124.png
.pn +1
Samuel is well fitted to take charge of the bakery. Joseph inclines
to the life of a country gentleman. John, an active youth
of eighteen, is the scholar of the family. He writes his father’s
deeds and other business documents, which indicates some knowledge
of the law. Besides being sons of a rich man, these are exceptionally
capable young men. That there is no stain upon their
reputations is indicated by the favor with which they are regarded
by certain parents of marriageable daughters. In this year occurs
the marriage of Samuel to the daughter of Thomas Stanton,
who is a prominent man in the colony and interpreter between the
General Court and the Indians. The parents of each make a
handsome settlement upon the young people, James Rogers giving
his son the stone dwelling-house and the bakery. This young man
has recently sold the farm received from his grandfather, Samuel
Rowland. Having also grants from the town and lands from his
father (to say nothing of gifts from Owaneco), together with a flourishing
business, Samuel Rogers is a rich man at an early age.
Somewhat before the marriage of Samuel, his father, in anticipation
of this event, established himself upon the Great Neck, on
a farm bought in 1660, of a prominent settler named Obadiah
Bruen. This is one of the old Indian planting grounds so valuable
in these forest days. Yet James Rogers does not reside long
on the beautiful bank of Robin Hood’s Bay (now Jordan Cove),
for in this same year his son Joseph, not yet twenty-one years of
age, receives this place, “the farm where I now dwell” and also
“all my other lands on the Great Neck,” as a gift from his father.
All the “other lands” being valuable, this is a large settlement.
(It appears to mark the year of Joseph’s marriage, although the
exact date and also the name of the bride are unknown. The residence
of James Rogers for the next few years is uncertain; it is not
unlikely that he takes up his abode in one of his houses in town,
or possibly at the Mamacock farm, on the Mohegan road and the
“Great River,” which place was formerly granted by the town to
the Rev. Mr. Blinman, and, upon the latter’s removal from New
London, was purchased by Mr. Rogers.)
.bn 125.png
.pn +1
The next marriage in this family is that of Bathsheba, a beloved
daughter. She marries a young man named Richard Smith. A
prominent feature in the character of this daughter is her fidelity
to her parents and brothers, and especially to her brother John.
1670.
Matthew Griswold is a leading member in the church of Saybrook.
He resides close by the Sound, at Lyme, on a broad sweep
of low-lying meadows called Blackhall, which is but a small portion
of his landed estate. His wife is a daughter of Henry Wolcott,
one of the founders and principal men of Windsor, and a
prominent man in the colony. Matthew Griswold is, like James
Rogers, a frequent assistant and deputy. There are many proofs
that he and his wife are persons of much family pride, and not
without good reasons for the same. When, in 1670, they enter
into an agreement with James Rogers for the marriage of their
daughter Elizabeth to his son John, it is doubtless with the knowledge
that this is a very promising young man, as well as the son
of a wealthy and generous father.
How far from the mind of the young lover, when, on the night
before the happy day when he is to call Elizabeth his bride, he
pens the writing[32] which is to give her the Mamacock farm, recently
presented to him by his father, is a thought of anything that
can part them until death itself. To this writing he adds: “I do
here farther engage not to carry her out of the colony of Connecticut.”
This sentence goes to prove the great fondness of the
parents for this daughter, her own loving desire to live always near
them, and the ready compliance of the young lover with their
wishes. He marries her at Blackhall, October 17, and takes her
to the beautiful river farm which upon that day becomes her own.
He does not take her to the farmhouse built by Mr. Blinman, but
to a new and commodious dwelling, close by the Mohegan road,
whose front room is 20 by 20, and whose big fireplaces, in every
.bn 126.png
.pn +1
room, below and above, will rob the wintry blasts of their terror.
The marriage settlement upon the young couple, by James Rogers
and Matthew Griswold, includes provisions, furniture, horses,
sheep, and kine.[33]
.fm rend=t
.fn 32
Still to be seen in “Book of Crimes and Misdemeanors,” in State Library,
Hartford.
.fn-
.fn 33
See same “Book of Crimes and Misdemeanors” for Marriage Settlement.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1673.
In 1673, James Rogers, Jr., is of age. No large gift of land to
this young man is recorded; for which reason it seems probable
that his principal portion in the lifetime of his father is the good
ship of which he is master. His ability to navigate and command
a foreign bound vessel at such an age is sufficient guarantee of
the skill and enterprise of this youth. In 1674, the young shipmaster
has (according to tradition in that branch of the family—Caulkins)
among his passengers to Connecticut a family emigrating
from Ireland, one member of which is an attractive young
woman twenty years of age. Before the vessel touches port, the
young captain and his fair passenger are betrothed, and the marriage
takes place soon after.[34]
.fm rend=t
.fn 34
In after life he was accustomed to say that it was the richest cargo he ever
shipped and the best bargain he ever made.—History of New London.
It was a frequent custom in those days, for persons emigrating to the colonies
to pay the expenses of their passage by selling their services for a term after landing.
Such passengers were called “redemptioners.” Thus, Captain James actually
purchased, as the term was, his wife Mary.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1674.
Although John Rogers resides at Mamacock farm, he is by no
means wholly occupied in the care of that place; a young man of
his means has capable servants. As for years past, he is actively
interested in business, both for his father and himself. At Newport,
in the year 1674, he meets with members of the little Sabbatarian
church of that place, recently started by a few devout and
earnest students of the Bible, who having, some years before, perceived
that certain customs of the Congregational churches have
no precedent or authority in Scripture, resolved to follow these customs
no longer, but to be guided solely by the example and precepts
.bn 127.png
.pn +1
of Christ and his apostles. In attempting to carry out this
resolve, they renounced and denounced sprinkling and infant baptism
and attached themselves to the First Baptist Church of Newport.
About 1665, they were led, by the teachings of Stephen
Mumford, a Sabbatarian from England, to discern in the first day
Sabbath the authority of man and not of God. Under this persuasion,
the little company came out of the First Baptist Church,
of Newport, and formed the Sabbatarian Church of that place.
Mr. Thomas Hiscox is pastor of this little church, and Mr. Samuel
Hubbard and his wife (formerly among the founders of the First
Congregational Church of Springfield, Mass.) are among its chief
members. During this year, under the preaching and teachings
of this church, John Rogers is converted.
Hitherto this young man and his wife Elizabeth have been members
of the regular church, as ordinary membership is accounted,
and their two children have been baptized in that church, at New
London. If children of professed Christians, baptized in childhood,
lead an outwardly moral life, attend the stated worship and
otherwise conform to the various church usages, this is sufficient
to constitute them, as young men and young women, members in
good and regular standing. The daughter of Elder Matthew
Griswold has been as ignorant of the work of regeneration as has
been the son of James Rogers.
The conversion of John Rogers was directly preceded by one of
those sudden and powerful convictions of sin so frequently exemplified
in all ages of the Christian church, and so well agreeing
with Scriptural statements regarding the new birth. Although
leading a prominently active business life, in a seaport town, from
early youth, and thus thrown among all classes of men and subjected
to many temptations, this young man has given no outward
sign of any lack of entire probity. Whatever his lapses from exact
virtue, they have occasioned him no serious thought, until, by
the power of this conversion, he perceives himself a sinner. Under
this deep conviction the memory of a certain youthful error
weighs heavily upon his conscience.
.bn 128.png
.pn +1
He has at this time one confidant, his loving, sympathetic and
deeply interested young wife, who cordially welcomes the new
light from Newport. In the candid fervor of his soul, he tells her
all, even the worst he knows of himself, and that he feels in his
heart that, by God’s free grace, through the purifying blood of
Jesus Christ, even his greatest sin is washed away and forgiven.
Does this young woman turn, with horror and aversion, from
the portrayal of this young man’s secret sin? By no means.[35] She
is not only filled with sympathy for his deep sorrow and contrition,
but rejoices with him in his change of heart and quickened conscience.
More than this, understanding that even one as pure as
herself may be thus convicted of sin and thus forgiven and reborn,
she joins with him in prayer that such may be her experience also.
They study the New Testament together, and she finds, as he has
said, that there is here no mention of a change from a seventh to a
first day Sabbath, and no apparent warrant for infant baptism,
but the contrary; the command being first to believe and then to
be baptized. Other things they find quite contrary to the Congregational
way. In her ardor, she joins with him to openly declare
these errors in the prevailing belief and customs.
.fm rend=t
.fn 35
The account given by their son of this joint conviction of John Rogers and his
wife furnishes evidence of a considerable period in which they were in full friendship
and accord after the disclosure made to the wife. For account, see #Part I, Chapter III:ch_1_3#.
.fn-
Little is the wonder that to Elder Matthew Griswold and his wife
the news that their daughter and her husband are openly condemning
the usages of the powerful church of which they, and all their
relatives, are such prominent members, comes like a thunderbolt.
Their own daughter is condemning even the grand Puritan Sabbath
and proposes to work hereafter upon that sacred day and to
worship upon Saturday. They find that her husband has led
Elizabeth into this madness. They accuse and upbraid him, they
reason and plead with him. But all in vain. He declares to
them his full conviction that this is the call and enlightenment of
the Lord himself. Moreover, was it not the leading resolve of the
.bn 129.png
.pn +1
first Puritans to be guided and ruled only by the Word of God and
of His Son, Jesus Christ? Did they not warn their followers to
maintain a jealous watchfulness against any belief, decree or form
of worship not founded upon the Scriptures? Did they not urge
each to search these Scriptures for himself? He has searched
these Scriptures, and Elizabeth with him, and they have found a
most astonishing difference between the precepts and example of
Christ and the practice and teachings of the Congregational church.
Elder Matthew Griswold is ready with counter arguments on
the Presbyterian side. But “the main instrument” by which
Elizabeth is restored to her former church allegiance is her mother,
the daughter of Henry Wolcott. This lady is sister of Simon Wolcott,
who is considered one of the handsomest, most accomplished
and most attractive gentlemen of his day. Although she may have
similar charms and be a mother whose judgment a daughter would
highly respect, yet she is evidently one of the last from whom could
be expected any deviation, in belief or practice, from the teachings
and customs of her father’s house. That her daughter has been
led to adopt the notions of these erratic Baptists is, to her mind, a
disgrace unspeakable. She soon succeeds in convincing Elizabeth
that this is no influence of the Holy Spirit, as declared by
John Rogers, but a device of the Evil One himself. Under such
powerful counter representations, on the part of her relatives and
acquaintances, as well as by later consideration of the social disgrace
attendant upon her singular course, Elizabeth is finally led to
publicly recant her recently avowed belief, despite the pleadings
of her husband. At the same time, she passionately beseeches
him to recant also, declaring that unless he will renounce the evil
spirit by which he has been led, she cannot continue to live with
him. He, fully persuaded that he has been influenced by the very
Spirit of God, declares that he cannot disobey the divine voice
within his soul.
One sad day, after such a scene as imagination can well picture,
this young wife prepares herself, her little girl of two years and her
baby boy, for the journey to Blackhall, with the friends who have
.bn 130.png
.pn +1
come to accompany her. Even as she rides away, hope must be
hers that, after the happy home is left desolate, her husband will
yield to her entreaties. Not so with him as he sees depart the light
and joy of Mamacock, aye, Mamacock itself which he has given
her. He drinks the very dregs of this cup without recoil. He
parts with wife and children and lands, for His name’s sake. Well
he knows in his heart, that for him can be no turning. And what
can he now expect of the Griswolds?
Although his own home is deserted and he will no more go cheerily
to Blackhall, there is still a place where dear faces light at his
coming. It is his father’s house. Here are appreciative listeners
to the story of his recent experiences and convictions; father and
mother, brothers and sisters, are for his sake reading the Bible
anew. They find exact Scripture warrant for his sudden, deep
conviction of sin and for his certainty that God has heard his fervent
prayers, forgiven his sins and bestowed upon him a new heart.
They find no Scripture warrant for a Sabbath upon the first day of
the week, nor for baptism of other than believers, nor for a specially
learned and aristocratic ministry. They, moreover, see no
authority for the use of civil power to compel persons to religious
observances, and such as were unknown to the early church, and
no good excuse for the inculcating of doctrines and practices contrary
to the teachings of Christ and his apostles. Shortly, James,
the young shipmaster, has an experience similar to that of his
brother, as has also an Indian by the name of Japhet. This Indian
is an intelligent and esteemed servant in the family of James
Rogers, Sr.
At this time, the home of James Rogers is upon the Great Neck.
By some business agreement, his son Joseph resigned to his father,
in 1670, the lands upon this Neck which had been given him in
1666. In this year (1674), his father reconfirms to him the property
bought of Obadiah Bruen, by Robin Hood’s Bay. The
younger children, Jonathan and Elizabeth, are still at home with
their parents. Bathsheba and her family are living near, on the
Great Neck, as are also Captain James and his family.
.bn 131.png
.pn +1
Although John may still lay some claim to Mamacock farm,
while awaiting legal action on the part of the Griswolds, it can be
no home to him in these days of bitter bereavement. Warm hearts
welcome him to his father’s house, by the wide blue Sound, and
here he takes up his abode. Never a man of his temperament but
loved the sea and the wind, the sun and the storm, the field and
the wood. All of these are here. Here, too, is his “boat,” evidently
as much a part of the man as his horse. No man but has
a horse for these primitive distances, and in this family will be
none but the best of steeds and boats in plenty.
Near the close of this eventful year, Mr. James Rogers sends for
Mr. John Crandall to visit at his house. Mr. Crandall has, for
some time, been elder of the Baptist church at Westerly, an offshoot
of the Baptist church of Newport. He has recently gone
over with his flock to the Sabbatarian church of Newport. If the
subject of possible persecution in Connecticut is brought up, who
can better inspire the new converts with courage for such an ordeal
than he who has been imprisoned and whipped in Boston for daring
to avow his disbelief in infant baptism and his adherence to
the primitive mode by immersion? The conference is so satisfactory,
that Mr. Crandall baptizes John Rogers, his brother James,
and the servant Japhet.—(Letter of Mr. Hubbard.)
News of the baptism of these young men into the Anabaptist
faith by Mr. Crandall, at their father’s house, increases the comment
and excitement already started in the town. The minister,
Mr. Simon Bradstreet, expresses a hope that the church will “take
a course” with the Rogers family. The Congregational churches
at large are greatly alarmed at this startling innovation in Connecticut.
The tidings travel fast to Blackhall, dispelling any lingering
hope that John Rogers may repent of his erratic course.
Immediately after this occurrence, his wife, by the aid of her
friends, takes steps towards securing a divorce and the guardianship
of her children. From her present standpoint, her feelings
and action are simply human, even, in a sense, womanly. He who
is to suffer will be the last to upbraid her, his blame will be for
.bn 132.png
.pn +1
those who won her from his view to theirs, from the simple word
of Scripture to the iron dictates of popular ecclesiasticism.
If John Rogers and his friends know anything as yet of the plot
on the part of the Griswolds to make the very depth of his repentance
for an error of his unregenerate youth an instrument for his
utter disgrace and bereavement, their minds are not absorbed at
this time with matters of such worldly moment.
1675.
In March, 1675, James Rogers, Sr., and his family send for Elder
Hiscox, Mr. Samuel Hubbard and his son Clarke, of the Sabbatarian
church of Newport, to visit them. Before the completion
of this visit, Jonathan Rogers (twenty years of age) is
baptized. Following this baptism, John, James, Japhet and
Jonathan are received as members of the Sabbatarian church
of Newport, by prayer and laying on of hands.—(Letter of Mr.
Hubbard.)
This consummation of John’s resolves brings matters to a hasty
issue on the part of the Griswolds, in lines already planned. There
is no law by which a divorce can be granted on account of difference
in religious views. In some way this young man’s character
must be impugned, and so seriously as to afford plausible
grounds for divorcement. How fortunate that, at the time of
his conversion, he made so entire a confidant of his wife. Fortunate,
also, that his confession was a blot that may easily be darkened,
with no hindrance to swearing to the blot. At this time, the
young woman’s excited imagination can easily magnify that which
did not appear so serious in the calm and loving days at Mamacock,
even as with tear-wet eyes he told the sorrowful story of his
contrition. Thus are laid before the judges of the General Court,
representations to the effect that this is no fit man to be the husband
of Elizabeth, daughter of Matthew Griswold. The judges,
lawmakers and magistrates of Connecticut belong to the Congregational
order—the only elite and powerful circle of the time;
this, taken in connection with the unfavorable light in which the
.bn 133.png
.pn +1
Rogerses are now regarded in such quarters, is greatly to the Griswold
advantage.
Yet, despite aversion and alarm on the part of the ruling dignitaries
regarding the new departure and the highly colored petition
that has been presented to the court by the daughter of Matthew
Griswold, there is such evident proof that the petitioner is
indulging an intensity of bitterness bordering upon hatred towards
the man who has refused, even for her sake, to conform to popular
belief and usages, that the judges hesitate to take her testimony,
even under oath. Moreover, the only serious charge in this document
rests solely upon the alleged declaration of John Rogers
against himself, in a private conference with his wife. This
charge, however, being represented in the character of a crime[36]
(under the early laws), is sufficient for his arrest. Very soon after
his reception into the Sabbatarian church, the young man is seized
and sent to Hartford for imprisonment, pending the decision of
the grand jury.
.fm rend=t
.fn 36
There were, on the law books, so-called capital crimes which were never punished
as such. “Man-stealing” was a so-called capital crime, yet we shall find,
further on, that it was punishable by an ordinary fine. No mention is made on the
court records or files of the crime of which John Rogers was accused by the Griswolds,
on charge of which he was examined at Hartford. No record was made of
this matter, and we have only vague mention on the court files of the petition of
Elizabeth for this divorce by which to even conjecture the nature of the charge.
.fn-
Although John Rogers has been a member of the Sabbatarian
church but a few weeks, he is already pastor of a little church on
the Great Neck (under the Newport church) of which his father,
mother, brothers and sisters are devout attendants, together with
servants of the family and neighbors who have become interested
in the new departure. Who will preach to this little congregation,
while its young pastor is in Hartford awaiting the issue of
the Griswold vengeance? Of those who have received baptism,
James is upon the “high seas,” in pursuance of his calling, and
Jonathan is but a youth of twenty. Yet Mr. James Rogers does
not permit the Seventh Day Sabbath of Christ and His disciples
to pass unobserved. The little congregation gather at his house,
.bn 134.png
.pn +1
as usual, and sit in reverent silence, as in the presence of the Lord.[37]
Perchance the Holy Spirit will inspire some among them to speak
or to pray. They are not thus gathered because this is the Quaker
custom, for they are not Quakers; they are simply following a distinct
command of the Master and awaiting the fulfilment of one
of His promises.
.fm rend=t
.fn 37
Here is an apparent variation, at the outset, from the Newport church.
.fn-
William Edmundson, the Quaker preacher, driven by a storm
into New London harbor on a Saturday in May, 1675, goes ashore
there and endeavors to gather a meeting, but is prevented by the
authorities. Hearing there are some Baptists five miles from town,
who hold their meetings upon that day, he feels impressed with a
desire to visit them. Meeting with two men of friendly inclinations,
who are willing to accompany him, he goes to the Great
Neck and finds there this little congregation, assembled as described,
“with their servants and negroes,”[38] sitting in silence. At
first (according to his account) they appear disturbed at the arrival
of such unexpected guests; but, upon finding this stranger
only a friendly Quaker, they welcome them cordially.
.fm rend=t
.fn 38
By negroes is meant negro and Indian servants or slaves, of which there were
a number in the Rogers family, the slaves being held for a term of years.
.fn-
After sitting with them a short time in silence, the Quaker begins
to question them in regard to their belief and to expound to
them some of the Quaker doctrines. He sees they are desirous of a
knowledge of God and finds them very “ready” in the Scriptures.
He endeavors to convince them that after the coming of Christ a
Sabbath was no longer enjoined, Christ having ended the law and
being the rest of His people; also that the ordinance of water baptism
should long ago have ended, being superseded by the baptism
of the Holy Ghost. Although in no way convinced (as is
afterwards fully demonstrated), they listen courteously to his arguments
and to the prayer that follows. Not only so, but, by his declaration,
they are “very tender and loving.” The next day, this
zealous Quaker, having obtained leave of a man in New London,
who is well inclined towards the Quakers, to hold a meeting at his
.bn 135.png
.pn +1
house, finds among his audience several of the little congregation
on the Great Neck. In the midst of this meeting, the constable
and other officers appear, and break it up forcibly, with rough
handling and abuse, much to the indignation of those who have
been anxious to give Mr. Edmundson a fair hearing.
The week after his visit to New London, Mr. Edmundson is at an
inn in Hartford, where he improves an opportunity to present certain
Quaker doctrines to some of those stopping there, and judges
that he has offered unanswerable arguments in proof that every
man has a measure of the Spirit of Christ. Suddenly, a young
man in the audience rises and argues so ably upon the other side
as to destroy the effect of Mr. Edmundson’s discourse. This leads
the latter to a private interview with his opponent, whose name he
finds to be John Rogers, and who proves to be “pastor” of the
people whose meeting he had attended at New London, on the Great
Neck. He also learns from this pastor that he was summoned to
Hartford, to appear before the Assembly, for the reason that,
since he became a Baptist, the father of his wife, who is of the
ruling church, had been violently set against him and was endeavoring
to secure a divorce for his daughter on plea of a confession
made to her by himself regarding “an ill fact” in his past life,
“before he was her husband and while he was one of their church,”
with which, “under sorrow and trouble of mind,” he “had acquainted
her” and “which she had divulged to her father.”
Mr. Edmundson informs the young man that he has been with
his people at New London and “found them loving and tender.”—(Journal
of Mr. Edmundson.)
Since John Rogers remains at the inn for the night, he is evidently
just released from custody. So interwoven were truth and
misrepresentation in this case, that either admission or denial of
the main charge must have been difficult, if not impossible, on the
part of the accused. Moreover, there is for this young man, now
and henceforth, no law, precedent or example, save such as he
finds in the New Testament, through his Lord and Master. That
Master, being asked to declare whether he was or was not the King
.bn 136.png
.pn +1
of the Jews, a question of many possible phases and requiring such
answer as his judges neither could nor would comprehend, answered
only by silence. Ought this young man to repeat before
these judges the exact statement made to his wife, in the sacred
precincts of his own home, even if they would take the word of a
despised Anabaptist like himself? It is not difficult to see the
young man’s position and respect his entire silence, despite all
efforts to make him speak out in regard to the accusation made by
his wife in her petition.[39]
.fm rend=t
.fn 39
That John Rogers could not be induced to either admit or deny the charge
presented for the purpose of obtaining the divorce, is from a statement to that effect
made by Peter Pratt, in “The Prey Taken from the Strong.” This is one of the
few statements made in that pamphlet, which seem likely to be true and are not
invalidated by proof to the contrary. It will be seen that, at a later date, this attitude
of complete silence is frequent with the Rogerenes, before the court.
.fn-
The case before the grand jury having depended solely upon
the word of a woman resolved upon divorce and seeking ground
for it, they returned that they “find not the bill,” and John Rogers
was discharged from custody. Yet, in view of the representations
of Elizabeth in her petition regarding her unwillingness, for
the alleged reasons, to remain this young man’s wife, backed by
powerful influence in her favor, the court gave her permission to
remain with her children at her father’s for the present, “for comfort
and preservation” until a decision be rendered regarding the
divorce, by the General Court in October. No pains will be spared
by the friends of Elizabeth to secure a favorable decision from this
court.
The Rev. Mr. Bradstreet, bitter in his prejudice against the
young man by whose influence has occurred such a departure from
the Congregational church as that of James Rogers and his family
and such precedent for the spread of anti-presbyterian views outside
of Rhode Island, writes in his journal at this date: “He is
now at liberty, but I believe he will not escape God’s judgment,
though he has man’s.”
Mr. Bradstreet reveals in his journal knowledge that the charge
advanced against this young man related to a period previous to
.bn 137.png
.pn +1
his marriage and conversion, and rested upon a confession that he
had made to his wife under conviction of sin and belief in the saving
power of Christ, which cleanses the vilest sinner.[40] Yet knowing
this, he says: “I believe he will not escape God’s judgment.”
Truly New England Puritan theology and the theology of the New
Testament are strangely at variance in these days.
.fm rend=t
.fn 40
May 25, 1675.
“The testimony against him was his own wife—to whom he told it all with his
own mouth, and not in trouble of mind, but in a boasting manner as of free grace,
yt he was pardoned. This was much about ye time he fell into yt cursed opinion
of anabaptism.”—Journal of Mr. Bradstreet. (See “New England Genealogical
and Historical Register,” Vol. 9, p. 47.)
With above compare:—
“After it pleased God, through His rich grace in Christ Jesus, to take the guilt of
my sins from my conscience and to send the Spirit of His Son into my heart, whereby
he did reveal unto me His love and His acceptance of me in Jesus Christ, this unspeakable
mercy did greatly engage my heart to love God and diligently to search
the Scriptures, that thereby I might know how to serve God acceptably, for then I
soon became a seeker how to worship God.”—Epistle of John Rogers to the Seventh
Day Baptists.
“And the coming to witness the truth of those Scriptures, by God’s giving
him a new heart and another spirit, and by remitting the guilt of his sins, did
greatly engage him to love God with all his heart and his neighbor as himself.”—John
Rogers, Jr.—Reply to Peter Pratt.
.fn-
.bn 138.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_2'
CHAPTER II.
.sp 4
.h4
1675.
.sp 1
Week by week, the little band of Bible students on the Great
Neck are becoming more and more familiar with the contents of
the New Testament. Heretofore they have, like the majority, accepted
religion as it has been prepared for them, as naturally as
they have accepted other customs, fashions and beliefs. Now that
they have begun to search and examine for themselves, it is in no
half-way fashion. Doubtless to a bold, direct, enterprising mode
of thought and action James Rogers owed his worldly success. It
is evident that his children, by inheritance and example, possess
like characteristics. Through the mystic power of conversion
they have come “to see and to know”[41] the truth of the Gospel of
Jesus Christ. They believe that the Scriptures were inspired by
God himself, in the consciousness of holy men, and by His providence
written and preserved for the instruction of succeeding generations;
that, accordingly, what is herein written, by way of precept
or example, is binding upon the regenerate man, and no command
or example of men contrary to this Word should be obeyed,
whatever the worldly menace or action may be.
.fm rend=t
.fn 41
See preamble to will of James Rogers, #Part I., Chapter I:ch_1_1#.
.fn-
John Rogers has already begun to work on the first day of the
week. Moreover, in order to conform with exactness to the New
Testament command and example relating to preachers of the
Gospel, he has taken up a handicraft, that of shoemaking. At
this date, all handicrafts are held in esteem, some of the most
prominent men in a community having one or more; yet the large
dealings of Mr. James Rogers have called for an active business
life on the part of this son, who appears to have been his “right-hand
man.” In taking up this handicraft, John Rogers appears
.bn 139.png
.pn +1
not to neglect other business (in 1678 we shall find him fulfilling
a contract to build a ship costing £4,640[42]), but to be busily employed
at the bench in what might otherwise be his leisure hours,
and especially upon that day which has been declared “holy” by
man and not by God.
.fm rend=t
.fn 42
See “History of Stratford.”
.fn-
How closely this movement is watched by the Connecticut authorities
appears by a law enacted in May of this year, in which
it is ordered that no servile work shall be done on the Sabbath,
save that of piety, charity or necessity, upon penalty of 10s. fine
for each offense, and “in case the offence be circumstanced with
high-handed presumption as well as profaneness the penalty to be
augmented at the discretion of the judges.” What “high-handed
presumption” and “profaneness” consist of, in this case, will
soon be evident.
The hesitation of the New London church in dealing with the
Rogerses can readily be understood. Mr. James Rogers is the
principal taxpayer, his rates for church and ministry are largest
of all, to say nothing of those of his sons. Not only this, but the
family has been one of the most respected in the town. Perchance
they may yet see the error of their ways, especially when they
have decisive proof of what is likely to proceed from the civil arm,
if this foolhardiness is continued.
.sp 2
.h4
1676.
Despite the ominous law aimed at themselves and their followers,
James Rogers, his wife and their daughter Bathsheba Smith,
are preparing for a final consecration to the unpopular cause. In
September, 1676, John, Capt. James, Japhet and Jonathan, the four
New London members of the Newport church, visit that church,
and on their return, September 19, bring with them Elder Hiscox
and Mr. Hubbard.—(Letter of Mr. Hubbard.)
The Great Neck is still in midsummer beauty, with delicate
touches of autumnal brightness, when the hospitable mansion of
James Rogers is reopened to the friends who were here on a like
.bn 140.png
.pn +1
mission in the chilly days of winter. Grave and earnest must be
the discourse of those gathered on this occasion. That Connecticut
is resolved to withstand any inroad of new sects from Rhode
Island, appears certain. But James Rogers and his sons are men
not to be cowed or driven, especially when they judge their leadership
to be from on High. This little family group is resolving
to brave the power and opprobrium of Connecticut backed by
Massachusetts.
If there is a hesitating voice in this assembly, it is probably
that of Samuel Rogers, whose wife’s sister is the wife of Rev.
James Noyes of Stonington, and who is similarly allied to other
prominent members of the Congregational order. Yet his sympathies
are with the cause he hesitates to fully espouse. (We
shall find the next meeting of this kind at his house.) As for
Bathsheba, surely nothing but the waiting for father and mother
could so long have kept her from following the example of her
brother John.
In front of the house lies the wide, blue Sound. It is easy to
picture the scene, as the earnest, gray-haired man and his wife and
daughter accompany Elder Hiscox down the white slope of the
beach to the emblem of cleansing that comes to meet them. No
event in the past busy career of James Rogers can have seemed
half so momentous as the present undertaking. There are doubtless
here present not a few spectators, some of them from the
church he has renounced, to whom this baptism is as novel as it
is questionable; but they must confess to its solemnity and a consciousness
that the rite in Christ’s day was of a similar character.
Those who came to smile have surely forgotten that purpose, as
the waters close over the man who has been so honorable and
honored a citizen, and who, despite the ridicule and the censure,
has only been seeking to obey the commands of the Master, and,
through much study, pious consideration and fervent prayer, has
decided upon so serious a departure from the New England
practice.
A summons for James Rogers and his wife and daughter to
.bn 141.png
.pn +1
appear before the magistrate is not long in coming. But they are
soon released. It cannot be an easy, pleasant or popular undertaking
to use violent measures against citizens of such good repute
as James Rogers and his family, whose earnest words in defense
of their course must have more genuine force than any the
reverend minister can bring to bear against it.
There is another Bible precedent wholly at variance with the
Congregational custom that this little church zealously advocates.
The apostles and teachers in the early church exacted no payment
for preaching the gospel, receiving—with the exception of
the travelling ministry—only such assistance as might any needy
brother or sister in the church. This practice was eminently suitable
for the promulgation of a religion that was to be “without
money and without price,” and well calculated to keep out false
teachers actuated by mercenary motives. So great a religion having
been instituted, among antagonistic peoples, by men who gave
to that purpose only such time as they could snatch from constant
struggles for a livelihood, and all its doctrines and code having
been fully written out by these very men, could not the teachers
and pastors of successive ages so, and with such dignity, maintain
themselves and their families, giving undeniable proof that
their calling was of God and not of mammon?
We have seen the young man, John Rogers, preparing himself
for such a life as this. He has laid aside the worldly dignity and
ease that might be his as the son of a rich man, to work at the
humble trade of shoemaking; that he may place himself fully
with the common people and give of the earnings of his own
hands to the poor, as did the brethren of old.
The General Court has heretofore discovered no sufficient reason
for granting the petition of Elizabeth Griswold for a divorce. It
is probable that, up to this date, it has looked for some relenting
on the part of the young nonconformist, rather than movements
so distinctly straightforward in the line of dissent. But
now that James Rogers and family have openly followed his lead
to the extent of engaging in manual labor upon the first day of
.bn 142.png
.pn +1
the week, and certain others on the Great Neck, who are members
of the Congregational church, are regarding the movement
with favor, the sympathy of this practically ecclesiastical body is
fully enlisted for the Griswolds.
This Court, which, for nearly a year beyond the time appointed
for its decision, has hesitated to grant the divorce to Elizabeth,
now, with no further ground than that first advanced, except this
evidently fixed determination of John Rogers and his relatives to
persist in their nonconformity, “doe find just cause to grant her
desire and doe” (Oct. 12, 1676) “free her from her conjugal bond
to John Rogers.”
Among the documents kept on file relating to trials and decisions,
the petition of Elizabeth does not appear in evidence, that the public
may examine it and discover the nature of the charge put forward
for the divorce. This petition and other evidence are kept
state and family secrets. There is a law by which particulars of
any trial which it is desired to keep secret must not be divulged by
speech or otherwise, under penalty of a heavy fine for each such
offense. Well may John Rogers and his son by Elizabeth Griswold
ever declare that this divorce was desired and obtained for
no other cause than “because John Rogers had renounced his
religion.”
At the meeting of the County Court in January of this year,
John Rogers, Capt. James Rogers, Joseph Rogers, Richard Smith
(husband of Bathsheba), and one Joseph Horton are fined 15s.
each for non-attendance at church. All except John and Capt.
James Rogers offer excuse for this offense.
1677.
In the following February, James Rogers, Sr., and his wife
Elizabeth, Capt. James and his wife, Joseph and his wife, John,
Bathsheba and Jonathan, are each fined 15s. at the County Court
for non-attendance at church.
At the next County Court, in June, besides non-attendance at
church, John Rogers is charged with attending to his work on the
.bn 143.png
.pn +1
first day of the week, in May last, and with having upon that day
brought “a burthen of shoes into the town.” Upon this occasion,
he owns to these facts in court, and further declares before that
assembly that if his shop had stood under the window of Mr.
Wetherell (magistrate) or next to the meeting-house, he would
thus have worked upon the first day of the week. Capt. James
and his brother Jonathan being arraigned at the same court for
non-attendance at church and for work upon the first day of the
week, assert that they have worked upon that day and will so work
for the future. James Rogers, Sr., being examined upon a like
charge, owns that he has not refrained from servile work upon
the first day of the week “and in particular his plowing.” “He
had,” says the record, “been taken of plowing the 6th day of May,”
by which it appears that he has been imprisoned from that time
until this June court, as has John also, since his apprehension with
the load of shoes. To have secured bail they must have promised
“good behavior”—viz. cessation of work on the first day—until
this session of the court, which they could not do, being resolved
upon this same regular course.
Mary, wife of Capt. James Rogers, herself a member of the
Newport church, is presented at the same court for absenting herself
for the last six months from public worship. Bathsheba Smith
is presented for the same, and also for a “lying, scandalous paper
against the church and one of its elders” set up “upon the meeting
house.” This paper was evidently occasioned by the abovementioned
imprisonment of her father and brother on account of
their having substituted the Scriptural Sabbath for that instituted
centuries later by ecclesiastical law.
The court “sees cause to bear witness against such pride, presumption
and horrible profaneness in all the said persons, appearing
to be practiced and resolved in the future,” and order that “a
fine of £5 apiece be taken from each of them and that they remain
in prison at their own charge until they put in sufficient bond or
security to no more violate any of the laws respecting the due
observance of the first day of the week,” or “shall forthwith upon
.bn 144.png
.pn +1
their releasement depart and remain out of the colony.” Bathsheba
is fined £5 for non-attendance at church and the “scandalous
paper,” and Mary and Elizabeth 10s. each for non-attendance at
church.
It is evident that a crisis has now arrived; the sacred Puritan
Sabbath has been ignored in an amazingly bold manner by this
little band of dissenters, who openly declare, in court, their intention
of keeping a seventh day Sabbath, and that alone, whatever
be the menace or the punishment.
In these early days, £5 is so large a sum as to be of the nature
of an extreme penalty. Truly, the “discretion of the judges” is
beginning to work. How James Rogers and his two sons escaped
from prison at all, after this sentence, does not appear; certainly
they did not give any bonds not to repeat their offenses nor any
promise to remove from the colony. Proof of their release is in
the fact that they are all again before the court at its very next
meeting, in September, together with Elizabeth, Mary, Joseph
and his wife, all for non-attendance at church; and upon this occasion,
John declares that he neither does nor will attend the
Congregational church, nor will he refrain from servile work on
the first day of the week, upon which the court repeats the fine of
£5 “for what is past” and recommends to the commissioners that
the delinquent be called to account by a £5 fine “if not once a
week yet once a month.” This, if strictly carried out, means
almost constant imprisonment for John at his own charge, since it
is against his principles to pay any such fines, or to give any of
the required promises. Even could he be at large, £60 a year
would seem to be more than he could earn by shoemaking. (At
this period, £60 would buy a good farm “with mansion house
thereon.”)
Besides the arraignment of the Rogers family at the June court,
as previously described, a suit is brought by Matthew Griswold for
damages to the amount of £300. A part of this sum is for the
Mamacock farm, which John Rogers very naturally declined to
deliver up to the marshal on demand of the divorced wife, which
.bn 145.png
.pn +1
refusal is denominated by Mr. Griswold in this suit a “breach of
covenant.” Another part is for the Griswold share of articles
comprised in the marriage settlement of the fathers upon the
couple. In this sum of £300 is also included a considerable
charge for the maintenance of Elizabeth and her children at her
father’s, during the time between her leaving her husband’s house
and the date of the divorcement by the General Court; also board
for her and her first child three months at her father’s house,
during an illness following birth of said child (see Chapter XIV,
“Dragon’s Teeth”).
Thus the divorced husband is asked to deliver up the farm he
gave Elizabeth in full expectation of her remaining his wife, to
repay all that her father gave them during the four years of their
happy married life, to pay her board during a visit to her father’s
house by solicitation of her parents,[43] and also to recompense her
father for the maintenance of herself and children at the same
place after she had deserted her husband and forcibly taken away
his children.
.fm rend=t
.fn 43
An evident attempt is made by the Griswolds, in inserting this item in the bill
for damages, to lay the illness of Elizabeth following the birth of her child to some
failure on the part of the young husband to suitably provide for her confinement.
Her son, John Rogers, 2d, however, in his “Reply” to his half-brother, Peter
Pratt, mentions a far more serious and lengthy illness that befell Elizabeth upon
the birth of her latter son, during which illness both she and her husband, Peter
Pratt, Sr., had great misgivings regarding the justice of her divorce from John
Rogers. That the illness in either case was of a constitutional origin is indicated
by the parallel cases.
.fn-
It is to the credit of this County Court that, although incensed
at the audacity of John Rogers in bringing a load of shoes into
town on the first day of the week, together with his other “offenses,”
it decides this case wholly in favor of the defendant.
An appeal is taken by Mr. Griswold. In the following October
his suit comes before the Superior Court at Hartford. This court
reverses the decision of the County Court as regards the farm,
which is to “stand firm” to Elizabeth “during her natural life.”
At the October session of the General Court, Elizabeth Griswold
.bn 146.png
.pn +1
petitions that her children may be continued with her and brought
up by her, their father “being so hettridox in his opinions and
practice.”
The court, “having considered the petition, and John Rogers
having in open court declared that he did utterly renounce all the
visible worship of New England and professedly declare against
the Christian Sabbath as a mere invention,” grants her petition
“for the present and during the pleasure of the court.” John
Rogers is to pay a certain amount towards the support of his
children at Matthew Griswold’s, for which the Mamacock farm
is to stand as security.[44]
.fm rend=t
.fn 44
Elizabeth afterwards appears to have all the rents towards support of the
children. Later, when the children are grown, she gives up the farm to John
Rogers, for a reasonable consideration, as will be seen.
.fn-
The various forms of stringency lately in operation are so little
deterrent to the new movement that on Saturday, Nov. 23, Elder
Hiscox and Mr. Hubbard are again at New London, holding worship
with the Rogerses.[45] The next day, Joseph’s wife, having
given a satisfactory account of her experience, is to be baptized.
In this instance, John Rogers proposes that they perform the baptism
openly in the town. This earnest and zealous young man
overcomes the objections of the saintly but more cautious Mr.
Hubbard. Moreover, his father, mother, Joseph and Bathsheba
are on his side, and there is evident readiness on the part of the
person to be baptized. If they have, at much peril and loss, begun
a good work in this region, by setting aside inventions of
men and substituting the teaching and practice of Christ and his
apostles, it is no true following of the Master to hide their light
under a bushel.
.fm rend=t
.fn 45
The facts contained in this chapter, not otherwise indicated, are from Letters
of Mr. Samuel Hubbard.
.fn-
No mention is made of objection on the part of Elder Hiscox
to going into town on this occasion, and he is found preaching
there before the baptism, out of doors by the mill cove, with an
alarming number of hearers. He is soon arrested and brought
.bn 147.png
.pn +1
before a magistrate and the minister, Mr. Bradstreet. The latter
has “much to say about the good way their fathers set up in the
colony,” upon which Mr. Hubbard replies that, whereas Mr.
Bradstreet is a young man, he himself is an old planter of Connecticut
and well knows that the beginners of this colony were not
for persecution, but that they had liberty at first to worship according
to their consciences, while in later times he himself has
been persecuted, to the extent of being driven out of this Colony,
because he differed from the Congregational church.
Some impression appears to be made upon the magistrate; since
he asks them if they cannot perform this obnoxious baptism by
immersion elsewhere, to which Mr. Hubbard assents. They are
then released and proceed to the house of Samuel Rogers, by the
mill cove.
The time consumed in going from the presence of the magistrate
to the house of his brother is sufficient to fix the resolve of
John Rogers that no man, or men, shall stand between him and a
command of his Master. For more than two years he has been
an acknowledged pastor of the New London Seventh Day Baptist
Church, under the church at Newport. If the older pastor from
Newport cannot perform a scriptural baptism in the name of the
Master, for fear of what men can do, in the way of persecution,
then that duty devolves upon himself. Upon reaching his brother’s
house, he offers an earnest prayer; then, taking his sister by the
hand, he leads her down the green slope before his brother’s door,
to the water, and himself immerses her, in the name of Father,
Son and Holy Ghost, in the glistening water of the cove.
Doubtless the crowd that gathered during Mr. Hiscox’s discourse
and the after-disturbance has not yet dispersed, for the
magistrate is directly informed of what has taken place. Supposing
Mr. Hiscox to be the daring offender, he is straightway apprehended.
But John Rogers appears before the magistrate, to state
that he himself is the author of this terrible act, upon which Mr.
Hiscox is released and the younger pastor is held in custody.
This new action on the part of the fearless and uncompromising
.bn 148.png
.pn +1
youth, increases the excitement and comment. If the majority of
the townspeople condemn him, there are yet some, even of Mr.
Bradstreet’s congregation, to wonder and admire. James Rogers,
Sr., and his family undoubtedly rejoice that John is not to be
turned aside by the hesitation of others, or for fear of what men
can do to him. As for Jonathan, who is engaged to Naomi
Burdick, granddaughter of Mr. Hubbard, it is not strange if he
has hesitated to approve of a move made contrary to Mr. Hubbard’s
judgment.
It soon further appears that the New London church is not
studying to conform to that at Newport, but to know the very
doctrines and will of Christ himself, as revealed by His own words
and acts and by those of His disciples.
In the course of their study of the New Testament, the Rogerses
find distinct command against long and formal prayers like those
of the prescribed church, so evidently constructed to be heard and
considered of men, and of a length that would probably have
appalled even the Pharisee in the temple.[46]
They also carefully consider the command given by Christ to
the disciples, and to believers in general, in regard to healing the
sick, and the explicit directions given by James, the brother of
Christ in the flesh, to the church at large: “Is any sick among
you,” etc. They see that other directions in this same chapter
are held by the churches as thoroughly binding upon Christians of
to-day; yet here is one, which, although perfectly agreeing with the
teachings and practice of Christ and of the other apostles, is now
commonly ignored. Indeed, should anyone attempt to exactly
follow this direction of James, he would be considered a lunatic or
a fool. Carefully does James Rogers, Sr., consider this matter,
with his two sons, the one his logical young pastor and the other
his practical, level-headed young shipmaster. Turn it as they
may, they cannot escape the conclusion that if any of the New
Testament injunctions are binding upon the church, all of them
must be, so far as human knowledge can determine.
.fm rend=t
.fn 46
Prayers an hour or more in length were common at that time.
.fn-
.bn 149.png
.pn +1
Whether Mr. Hiscox or Mr. Hubbard agrees with them in the
above conclusions does not concern these conscientious students of
Scripture. Not so with Jonathan, the young lover. He is ready
to believe that a religion good enough for so conscientious and
godly a man as Mr. Samuel Hubbard is good enough for him.
He judges that his father and brothers are going too far, not only
in this, but in braving constant fines and imprisonments by so
openly working upon the first day of the week.
Evidently, Jonathan cannot remain with the little church of
which John is the pastor. Yet in dropping him, by his own desire,
from their devoted band, they merely leave him in the church
of Newport, of which they themselves are yet members (and will
be for years to come), although they have made their own church
a somewhat distinct and peculiar branch.[47] There is no sign of any
break with the beloved son and brother, in friendliness or affection
(now or afterwards), on account of this difference of opinion.
.fm rend=t
.fn 47
Before long, the Newport church sends Mr. Gibson to live and preach upon
the Great Neck, to such Sabbatarians as hold merely with the doctrines and customs
of that church. Between this pastor and John Rogers, pastor of the still
newer departure, we find no evidence of collision.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1678.
.sp 1
In March, 1678, Jonathan is married to Naomi; he brings her
to the Great Neck, to a handsome farm by the shore, provided
for them by his father, close bordering the home farms of his
father and brothers.[48] This is an affectionate family group, despite
some few differences in religious belief. It is evident enough to
these logicians that He who commanded men to love even their
enemies, allowed no lack of affection on the part of relatives, for
any cause.
.fm rend=t
.fn 48
This farm is afterwards conveyed to Jonathan, with other valuable property,
by the will of his father.
.fn-
When the church at Newport learns that the name of Jonathan
Rogers has been erased from the roll of the Connecticut church,
because of his more conservative views, representatives are sent to
New London to inquire into the matter. Here they learn of still
.bn 150.png
.pn +1
another departure of this church from their own, in that this church
have omitted the custom of oral family worship, because they find
no command for any prayers except those directly inspired by the
occasion and the Spirit, but direct condemnation of all formal
prayer, as tending to lip service rather than heart service, and to
be heard of men rather than of God.
What can the Newport church offer in protest, from scriptural
sources? To excommunicate persons for not following the teaching
of Christ is one thing; to excommunicate them for obeying
such teaching is another. The Newport church takes no action
in these matters, although evidently much perplexed by this conscientiously
independent branch of their denomination.
Accounts of the intolerance towards the Seventh Day sect in
Connecticut having led Peter Chamberlain[49] to write a letter regarding
this matter to Governor Leete of Connecticut, the latter
replies, in a studiously plausible manner, that the “authority” has
shown “all condescension imaginable to us” towards the New
London church (“Rogers and his of New London”), having given
them permission to worship on the seventh day, “provided they
would forbear to offend our conscience.”
.fm rend=t
.fn 49
A prominent Seventh Day Baptist of England.
.fn-
The letter of Governor Leete contains also the following ingenious
sophistry:—
.pm start_quote
“We may doubt (if they were governors in our stead) they would tell
us that their consciences would not suffer them to give us so much
liberty; but they would bear witness to the truth and beat down idolatry
as the old kings did in Scripture.”[50]
.pm end_quote
.fm rend=t
.fn 50
This statement of Governor Leete has been quoted against the Rogerenes
again and again.
.fn-
This speciously worded sentence is deserving of some reply.
Suppose the little band of Rogerenes to have attained the size
and power necessary for religious legislation, and to be able to
do by their opponents exactly as the latter have done by them.
They must exact of these the keeping of a seventh day Sabbath,
.bn 151.png
.pn +1
demand aid for the support of seventh day churches, and enact
that none shall go to or from their homes on the seventh day, except
between said homes and seventh day churches. In case any
of these laws be broken, or any dare speak out in first day churches
against the tyranny and bigotry of this seventh day legislation, such
shall be fined, imprisoned, scourged and set in the stocks. Could
any person really suppose such a course possible for these conscientious
students of New Testament teachings, who are not
only opposed to any religious legislation, but long before this
date have given marked attention to the gentle, peaceable doctrines
of the Gospel, and listened with respect and interest to the
expositions of the Quakers, one of whom at the start had found
them “tender and loving”. Close upon this date, the Rogerenes
are found openly and zealously advocating the non-resistant
principles of the New Testament.
A fact not revealed by court records (but which must frequently
be taken into account in this history) is detected in this letter of
Governor Leete: “if they would forbear to offend our conscience,” etc.,
“we would give them no offence in the seventh day worshipping,”
viz.: until such time as the Rogerenes will forbear to labor upon
the first day of the week, they must expect, not only fines, imprisonment
and stocks, but to have their Saturday meetings broken
up, according to the pleasure or caprice of the authorities.[51] Constant
liability to punishment by the town authorities, for failure to
pay fines for holding their Saturday meetings, is one of the
aggravating features of this warfare. (All the power used by the
magistrates “at their own discretion” was exercised wholly in the
dark, so far as any records are concerned, and the periods of
greatest severity in its exercise can only be discerned by effects
which can be attributed to no other cause.)
.fm rend=t
.fn 51
It will be remembered that the officers were themselves liable to be fined if
they failed to execute the Sunday laws, and that any religious meetings whatever
other than those prescribed by the standing order were against the law, both those
holding and those attending such meetings being liable to fine or—in case of non-payment—imprisonment.
.fn-
.bn 152.png
.pn +1
Continual breaking up of their meetings, together with fines and
imprisonments for breach of the first day Sabbath—to say nothing
of the license allowed the ever mischievous and merciless mob
to aid in indignities—is at length beginning to tell on this people
in a manner quite opposite to that looked for by their opponents.
In June, 1678, James Rogers, Sr., and his sons, John and James,
enter the New London meeting-house and take their seats in the
pews set off to them, that of James, Sr., being, presumably, the
highest of all, since he is the largest taxpayer in the town. It
may be supposed by some that their spirits are at length subdued
by the three years of incessant persecutions and annoyances. But
presently they rise, one by one, in the midst of the service, and
declare their condemnation of a worship in the name of Christ,
which upholds persecution of those worshipping in the same
name, and by the same book, who, in this name and this book,
find no command for a first day Sabbath. To bring such arguments
into the midst of a Congregational meeting is more effectual
than any violence of constable or mob; yet, so far from being contrary
to any command of the Gospel, it is a direct maintenance of
the command there set forth to testify to the truth, regardless of consequences.
At last, these distressed people have devised a method
by which even this powerful ecclesiastical domination may be held
in check.
From the church they are taken to prison, from prison to trial.
They are fined £5 each. Payment of the fine being refused, imprisonment
ensues, at their own expense,[52] for such a period as
will as effectually deplete their purses. Fines and imprisonments
are to them common experiences; but the church party understand
that here, at last, is an effective weapon in the hands of
these people, with blade of no lesser metal than the words of the
Master himself.
.fm rend=t
.fn 52
They were forced to pay for bed and board during imprisonment. Sometimes
a prisoner brought a bed of his own.
.fn-
(For nearly five years after this countermove, no disturbance of
meeting and no serious molestation of the Rogerenes appears on
.bn 153.png
.pn +1
record. Evidently during that period the commissioners are not
displaying such zeal in breaking up seventh day meetings as was
the case previous to this appearance in the meeting-house.)
.sp 2
.h4
1679.
.sp 1
In October, 1679, there appears in the records of the General
Court, an effort on the part of Samuel Rogers to clear a stigma
from the reputation of his wife. She has been charged, by a man
who has lost some money, with having appropriated it, and the
County Court, by weight of circumstantial evidence, decided the
case in favor of the plaintiff. In the case before the General Court,
at this date, a man who has been imprisoned, on charge of being
the true culprit, not being appeared against by Samuel Rogers, is
released. (During the four years following this release, Samuel
Rogers is at much expense in endeavoring to establish his wife’s
innocence. In 1683, he presents such clear proof of the falsity of
the charge that the General Court grants him 300 acres of land,
towards compensation for time and money expended in clearing
his wife’s name. In this instance, Samuel Rogers makes an address
to the court, the substance of which does not appear on
record.)
By this time there are a considerable number of Sabbatarians on
the Great Neck, some of whom have come from Rhode Island.
Any who object to the ultra movement of which John Rogers is
the exponent, can attend the meetings of the less radical Mr. Gibson.
Both of these pastors appear, however, to be working largely
in unison, and they are both arraigned before the County Court,
in September of this year, for servile labor on the first day of the
week, together with James Rogers, Sr., and Capt. James. John
Rogers is fined 20s., and the others 10s. each, and “the authority
of the place” is desired “to call these or any others to account”
for future profanation of the Sabbath, and to punish them according
to law. On this occasion, Mr. Gibson states that he usually
works upon the first day of the week. It is presumable that Jonathan
Rogers also works, although not conspicuously.
.bn 154.png
.pn +1
This is one of the spasmodic efforts to check this growing community
of nonconformists, by punishment of the bolder offenders,
despite the fact that the child is growing too sturdy and strategic
to be handled with perfect impunity.
In the latter part of this year, Mr. Hubbard, having come to
the Great Neck on a visit (probably to the home of his granddaughter,
Naomi Rogers), finds that Mr. James Rogers has recently
been severely injured, by a loaded cart having passed over
his leg, below the knee, for which injury he has allowed of no
physician, “their judgment being not to use any means.” A cart
in these days being of no delicate mechanism, it is not improbable
that a physician would have advised amputation. Mr. Rogers
appears to be well on the way to recovery at the date of Mr.
Hubbard’s visit.
1682.
Save the moderate fine in September, 1679, for a single non-observance
of the first day of the week, which non-observance has
been occurring with every recurring Sunday, no recorded effort to
suppress the sect occurs from the date of the appearance of James
Rogers and his sons in the Congregational meeting-house, 1678,
until late in 1682, when William Gibson, John Rogers, James, Sr.,
Capt. James, Joseph, Bathsheba and her husband, Richard Smith,
are presented before the County Court for “prophanation of the
Sabbath,” upon which occasion John Rogers declares that he
worked the last first day, the first day before, and the first day
before that, and so had done for several years. James, Sr., and
Capt. James express themselves to the same effect. Bathsheba
and her husband “own” that this is their practice also, and aver
that, “by the help of God,” they shall so continue.
The court, not only “for the offense” but for the “pride, obstinacy
and resolution” displayed in regard to continuance of the
offense, fines each of the offenders 30s. apiece,—except Joseph,
whom they fine 20s.,—and to continue in prison until they shall
give good security for the payment of these fines. A bond of £20
.bn 155.png
.pn +1
each is also required, for their good behavior for the future and
abstinence from all servile work on the first day of the week.
Here is the bringing up of a fast horse with dangerous suddenness.
But for the imprisonment, it is almost certain that the next
Sabbath would see another interruption of the Congregational
services. As it is, Joseph and Captain James break out of the
prison, for which the latter is fined £3 and the former £5. Undoubtedly
they are speedily apprehended and returned to prison.
(It is entirely unlikely that any of the fines are paid or bonds given;
so that how these people finally escape from durance, unless after
very long imprisonment, cannot be conceived.)
1683.
In this year occurs the death of Richard Smith, husband of
Bathsheba. Also the will of James Rogers is written, at his dictation,
by his son John. In this year James Rogers confirms to
his son Joseph all his lands at “Poquoig or Robin Hood’s Bay,”
within certain boundaries of fence, ledge and “dry pond.” This
land appears to be a part of the gift of land returned by Joseph
to his father, in 1670.
.bn 156.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_3'
CHAPTER III.
.sp 2
.h4
1684.
.sp 1
A youth is growing up at Lyme, in regard to whom Matthew
Griswold and his daughter Elizabeth may well feel some concern,
although it afterwards appears that he is one of the brightest and
manliest boys in the colony. This is none other than John Rogers,
Jr. For five years past, his mother has been the wife of Peter
Pratt, of Lyme, who has a son by this marriage. That gentleman
is doomed to suffer no little trouble of conscience in regard to his
marriage to the wife of John Rogers, having himself come to doubt
that any valid reasons for the divorce ever existed.[53]
.fm rend=t
.fn 53
From Reply of John Rogers, 2d, to Peter Pratt, 2d.
.fn-
In May, 1684, Matthew Griswold and his daughter petition the
General Court “for power to order and dispose of John Rogers, Jr.,
John Rogers still continuing in his evil practises,” which “evil
practices” were set forth, in the previous permission of the court
regarding the continuance of the children of John Rogers with
their mother, in these words: “he being so hettridox in his opinion
and practice.” Their request is granted, the youth “to be apprenticed
by them to some honest man.”
John Rogers, Jr., is now barely ten years of age, and must be a
forward youth to be apprenticed so young, unless we suppose this
a mere device to put him under stricter control of his mother’s
family. He has surely heard nothing in favor of his father from
those among whom he has been reared, unless perhaps from his
stepfather. Yet neither mother nor grandparents can keep his
young heart from turning warmly towards the dauntless nonconformist
at New London.
If it has been hoped that, by another attempt at more heroic
treatment than the spasmodic onslaughts of the town magistrates,
.bn 157.png
.pn +1
a death-blow may yet be dealt to the Rogerenes, it must soon become
evident that such is unlikely to be the case. Not only so,
but there is danger that some of the principal members of the New
London Congregational church, and those among the most moneyed,
may be won over to the new persuasion. Samuel Beebe, Jr.,
eldest son of one of the most substantial citizens, has recently married
Elizabeth, daughter of James Rogers, and is conforming to the
faith and usages of that family. Several from the Congregational
church have recently been rebaptized by the new sect.
1685.
The prospect of further injury to the New London church, as
well as to general church conformity in the colony, becomes such
that, in the spring of 1685, another resolute attempt is made by
the New London authorities, “by advice of the Governor and Council,”
to put a stop to the performance of servile labor on the first
day of the week, as also baptism—and rebaptism—by immersion.
On Sunday, April 12, 1685, several of the leading spirits are imprisoned
for working on the first day of the week. The court records
show that some of these escape, and enter the meeting-house
in time of public service, to denounce such persecution of followers
of the Lord, by those who pretend to worship in His name.
Two days after (April 14), John Rogers, Capt. James Rogers,
Samuel Beebe, Jr., and Joanna Way are complained of before the
County Court for servile work in general upon the first day of the
week “and particularly upon the last first day (12th), although they
have and may enjoy their persuasion undisturbed” (here is a revelation
of the fact that their Saturday meetings have not been
interrupted of late, and possibly not since the institution of the
countermove in 1678); also “for coming into town at several times
to rebaptize persons” and “for recently disturbing public worship,”
and because “they go on still to disturb and give disturbance.”[54]
.fm rend=t
.fn 54
The failing health of James Rogers, Sr., is sufficient to account for his not being
arrested for servile work at this time.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
Upon examination, John Rogers is found guilty of servile work
.bn 158.png
.pn +1
upon that first day and on many others, “by his own confession,”
and “will yet go on to do it,” regardless of the law forbidding.
The court also finds him guilty of “disturbing God’s people in
time of public worship.” For all this, they order that he receive
fifteen lashes upon the naked body. He is then complained of for
baptizing a person contrary to law, “having no authority so to doe,”
for which he is fined £5.
Captain James is complained of for servile work, “by his own
confession,” that he worked on the last Sunday, “and would doe
it again.” Also he came into the meeting-house, in time of worship,
“where he behaved himself in a frantick manner to the amazing
of some and causing some women to swounde away,” for which
he is to have fifteen lashes on the naked body. He is also fined
£5 for baptizing a negro woman.
Samuel Beebe is complained of for work on the first day and
for declaring that he will continue in that practice as long as he
lives. He also is to receive fifteen lashes on the naked body and
to pay a fine of £5, although he is charged neither with disturbance
of meeting nor with baptizing. Why this double punishment,
unless because this young man has recently left the Congregational
church to join the nonconformists? Such punishment
may intimidate others who are thus inclined. That “discretion”
granted the judges appears very prominent in this case.
Joanna Way, for servile work, for declaring that she will still
continue in that practice, and for giving disturbance in the meeting-house,
is sentenced to receive fifteen lashes on the naked body.
Here we find four persons, one of them a woman, receiving fifteen
lashes each on the naked body for working on the first day,
while keeping the seventh day, and for venturing the one sure
mode of holding their persecutors in check.
In this disturbance of the meeting, Capt. James Rogers is the
only one accounted guilty of “amazing” the congregation and
causing women to “swounde.” He is not charged with having
attempted any violence in the church, and has before this become
a convert to the peaceable doctrines of the Quakers. The court
.bn 159.png
.pn +1
record gives no hint of the words used on this occasion by Captain
James, or why the women were induced to “swounde.”[55]
.fm rend=t
.fn 55
It will later be seen that the custom, on such occasions, of ejecting disturbers
of meeting from the church in a violent manner, was calculated to create a general
excitement among the spectators.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
Despite the £5 fine, in less than two months thereafter (June)
John Rogers is complained of for baptizing, found guilty, “on his
own confession,” and again fined £5.
(Although the Rogerenes continue steadfastly and openly to perform
servile labor on the first day of the week, as well as to baptize,
there appears no further arraignment before the court for
these causes for a good while to come; the entrance into the meeting-house,
April 12, 1685, proving, like the entrance of 1678, an
effectual check upon their enemies.)
About the first of June of this same year, messengers are sent to
New London from the Sabbatarian church at Newport, “to declare
against two or more of them that were of us who are declined
to Quakerism, of whom be thou aware, for by their principles they
will travel by land and by sea to make disciples, yea sorry ones too.
Their names are John and James Rogers and one Donham.”[56]
What have these two young men been doing now? They have
ventured to adopt and to preach the principle of non-resistance,
and so, by this long-forward step, have “declined to Quakerism.”
This adoption of peace principles appears, in the estimation of
the gentle and saintly Mr. Hubbard,—recorder of the above bulletin,—to
have completed their downfall. He sufficiently expresses
the attitude of the Newport church towards Quakers and their non-resistant
principles. John and James Rogers have not been to the
Quakers to learn these principles, but have taken them directly
from the New Testament, where the Quakers themselves found
them.
.fm rend=t
.fn 56
That no actual relapse to Quakerism had occurred at the time should have been
evident from the fact that John Rogers is, even in this very month of June, baptizing,
and undoubtedly as usual administering the Lord’s Supper, ordinances to
which the Quakers were entirely opposed.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
.bn 160.png
.pn +1
That John and James have been baptizing persons in the town,
and probably at the very mill cove where John, over seven years
before, baptized his sister-in-law, is apparent. Captain James is
not only baptizing, but also, as shown by Mr. Hubbard’s letter,
preaching and proselyting. Mr. Hubbard does not complain of
his baptizing or preaching, by which it appears that he did these
in Sabbatarian order, but only of his preaching a Quaker doctrine.
The names of John and Captain James still remain on
the roll of membership of the Newport church. To drop them for
preaching the pacific principles of the Gospel is no easier than to
drop them for having accepted the principle of healing by prayer
and faith as set forth in that Gospel.
In this year, Elizabeth, daughter of John Rogers, now fourteen
years of age, is, at her own request, allowed by her mother and the
Griswolds to return to her father; she who left him a child of three
years. She is still the only daughter of her mother, and, by affirmation
of both her brothers, John Rogers, 2d, and Peter Pratt,[57] a
most lovable character.
.fm rend=t
.fn 57
See “Prey Taken from the Strong,” and Reply to same by John Rogers, 2d.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
Her free committal of this girl child to the care and training of
John Rogers, gives proof conclusive that “Elizabeth, daughter of
Matthew Griswold,” however she may disapprove of her former
husband’s religious course, knows well of the uprightness of his
character and the kindness of his heart.
.sp 2
.h4
1687.
.sp 1
In December, 1687, “Elizabeth, former wife of John Rogers,”
resigns her claim to Mamacock, on condition of certain payments,
in instalments, signing herself, “Elizabeth, daughter of Matthew
Griswold.”—(New London Records.)
.sp 2
.h4
1688.
.sp 1
James Rogers, Sr., is in declining health and fast nearing the
end. November 17, 1687, he was unable to sign a deed of exchange
of land. It was witnessed as his act by his sons John and
.bn 161.png
.pn +1
James. Administration on his estate commences September, 1688.
He leaves a large estate to his children, all of whom have received
bountiful gifts from him in his lifetime, and all of whom are intelligent,
conscientious, temperate and industrious.
While James Rogers was leading the busy life of a man of varied
interests, worldly honor for his children must have been as much
a stimulus as the accumulation for their sakes of money and of
lands. That honor was relinquished in the cause which he and
his espoused.
The esteem in which this man and his wife have been held is
shown, among other things, by the failure of the Congregational
church to expel them. In fact, where could that church lay a
finger upon any violation, on the part of these members, of the
teachings of Him in whose name that church was founded? Their
names remain on the roll of Congregational church members.
Yet by brethren in that church they have been scorned and injured,
and their children have been lashed for venturing to follow with
exactness New Testament precepts and examples.
In trouble and sorrow, under the despotism that had assumed
the very authority of that Lord whom he himself had learned to
trust so unreservedly, the mortal life of James Rogers approached
its close. Yet, wondrously upheld by faith in God the Father,
Christ the Saviour, and the presence of that Comforter which had
been promised to all true believers, he was enabled to look far beyond
all earthly gain or losses, all worldly disappointment and the
injustice and uncharitableness of men, to the eternal blessings and
rewards of heaven. Although religious preambles to wills are not
unusual at this period, they are generally of a set form, with slight
variations; but that which James Rogers dictated, to his son John,
was an evident expression of his religious faith couched in his own
words: “I do know and see that my name is written in the book
of life.”[58]
.fm rend=t
.fn 58
See #Part I, Chap. I:ch_1_1#. For full preamble, see “James Rogers and His Descendants,”
by J. S. Rogers, Boston.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
A noticeable feature of this will is the evidently anxious intention
.bn 162.png
.pn +1
of the testator that the court shall have as little as possible
to do with the settlement of his estate, and that his children shall
carefully avoid any litigation concerning it. (#Part I, Chap. I.:ch_1_1#)
Five years elapsed between the writing of the will and the decease
of the testator; and in the meantime a codicil was attached
to it.
[It is certainly very lamentable that even one of the children of
James Rogers considered it necessary to set aside the last request
of so loving and generous a father, by entering upon any suit at
law in regard to the settlement of his estate, and this after the
first so amicable agreement on the part of each to fully abide by
the terms of the will. But it is still more lamentable that, through
lack of careful examination into the facts of the case, those children
who positively refrained from the slightest action contrary to this
request of their father, should be included in the sweeping statement
of the New London historian (Miss Caulkins): “his children,
notwithstanding, engaged in long and acrimonious contention
regarding boundaries, in the course of which earthly judges
were often obliged to interfere and enforce settlement.”[59]
.fm rend=t
.fn 59
In point of fact, only one of the children made any complaint regarding
boundaries; but this complaint resulted in a suit that was carried through several
courts. Undoubtedly, by a cursory view of this frequently appearing suit and also
that of Samuel Beebe, on the records, Miss Caulkins judged that there was a general
“contention.” Rev. Mr. Blake, in his Church History—New London Congregational—in
adopting this error of Miss Caulkins, has rendered it that “the
children” of James Rogers “engaged in bitter controversies” over his estate.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
The including of all the children in this statement is not its
only error; “earthly judges” being in no way “obliged to interfere”
or “enforce,” otherwise than by carrying on in the usual
manner the business presented to the court.
Because of this erroneous statement, often quoted by other historians,
it will be necessary to burden this work with exact note of
every case in which any child of James Rogers has any connection
with court dealings regarding the settlement of this estate, which
settlement, on account of the longevity of the widow, extends over
a long period, evidently much longer than was anticipated by the
.bn 163.png
.pn +1
testator, she having been in an impaired condition for some time
prior to his decease. This impairment appears to have been more
of a mental than physical character, however, and of an intermittent
description, indicating whole or partial recovery at intervals.
When the intense strain upon mind and heart which this wife and
mother must have endured ever since 1674 is considered, one cannot
but suspect this to be the cause of an impairment of her mental
powers while she still retained so much recuperative vigor even to
unusual longevity.]
For some years previous to the date of his death, the home farm
of James Rogers was upon that beautiful portion of the shore lands
of the Great Neck called Goshen, and here his widow continues to
reside. His son Jonathan’s place is adjoining on the south. Captain
James lives in the same vicinity, and is now to have the Goshen
farm lands, under the will. Although Bathsheba has a farm in
this locality, received from her father, she appears to be living—with
her children—at her mother’s, and her brother John is there
also, with a life right in the house, under the will. Samuel Beebe
resides in the same neighborhood, and Joseph at his Bruen place,
near by, on Robin Hood’s Bay.
September 15, 1688, the widow executes a deed of trust (New
London Probate Records) giving to her son John and daughter
Bathsheba the oversight and management of the entire estate of
her husband (it having been left subject to her needs for her lifetime),
“even my whole interest,” fully agreeing to the complete execution
of her husband’s will, as relating to herself, by these two
children, according to the terms of the codicil, which gives the entire
estate into their hands during the lifetime of the widow. Her
son-in-law, Samuel Beebe, appears to be the justice on this occasion.
Two persons, not of the family, testify to her “being apparently
in her right mind,” and “speaking very reasonably.” All
the children have previously entered into an agreement to carry
out the plan of their father, as relates to settlement out of court,
by executorship of John and his guardianship, with Bathsheba, of
their mother.
.bn 164.png
.pn +1
In this year Peter Pratt, second husband of Elizabeth Griswold,
dies at Lyme, leaving her with a son who bears his name.
In this year also, Elizabeth, daughter of John Rogers, now seventeen
years of age, is married, at her father’s home, to a young
man named Stephen Prentis, the son of a principal planter of New
London.[60]
.fm rend=t
.fn 60
Stephen Prentis eventually became one of the prominent and wealthy citizens
of the place, a holder of local and colonial offices, captain of a train band,
attorney and also a farmer on a large scale. He was a member of the Congregational
church through life, as was also his wife. Their home farm was near what
is now Mill Stone Point.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
John Rogers, Jr., is permitted by his mother to attend the wedding
of his sister. He is now, for the first time, with his father
and his father’s family friends. It is an excellent opportunity for
the boy of fourteen to make the acquaintance and judge of the
characters of these relatives for himself. The result is that he
elects to remain with his father, and soon obtains his mother’s permission
to do so.[61] Thus ends the effort to keep the grandchildren
of Mr. Matthew Griswold from the contaminating influence of
John Rogers.
.fm rend=t
.fn 61
Miss Caulkins states that his mother afterwards attempted to secure his return
to her, but could not succeed in overcoming his determination to remain with his
father. The evidence of this has escaped our observation.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
Account of the year 1688 should not close without mention of
the appearance on this scene of a young dignitary well calculated
to rekindle any flickering embers on either side of this controversy.
Rev. Mr. Bradstreet having died, a new minister has been hired in
the person of Gurdon Saltonstall, a young man inheriting the aristocratic
and autocratic spirit of a family of rank and wealth without
the gentler and more liberal qualities that adorned the character
of his ancestor, Sir Richard Saltonstall. Although only twenty-two
years of age, he is already a rigid, uncompromising ecclesiastic,
holding the authority and prestige of the Congregational church
paramount, even beyond the ordinary acceptation of the time.
There is such general opposition to church taxation in the community
at this very time, that an attempt has recently been made
.bn 165.png
.pn +1
to raise funds for the Congregational church by subscription, but
the amount subscribed having proved very inadequate, the old
method is continued.—(Caulkins.) This shows that Congregationalism
in this town is, at the best, a yoke imposed upon a majority
by a powerful minority. The effort, as well as the failure,
to raise church money by subscription is ominous. Should such
popular indifference continue, what may not befall the true church,
with “hettridoxy” let loose in the land and Rhode Islandisms
further overrunning the Colony?
It cannot be long before John Rogers and the zealous young advocate
of Congregational rule are carefully observing and measuring
each other. Fifty years ago, Congregationalist (“Independent”)
leaders cropped their hair close to their heads and eschewed
fine clothing; now, forsooth, nothing is too good for them, and
their curling locks (wigs) are more conspicuous than those of the
Cavaliers with whom Cromwell’s Roundheads fought to the death.
This young man in fine ministerial garb, and with flowing wig,
whom they have called to New London to preach the unworldly
Gospel of Jesus Christ, is seemingly so immature that John Rogers,
the man of forty, can afford to hold his peace for a space, while
he goes his way, working upon the first day of the week and resting
and preaching upon the seventh. The young minister, being
on trial himself, awaiting ordination, cannot for some time to come
venture very conspicuously on the war-path.
1690.
In 1690, extensive improvements are made in the Congregational
church meeting-house. The interior is furnished with the
approved style of pews, which are, as usual, assigned to the inhabitants
of the town, those paying the highest rates having the highest
seats. Accordingly, John Rogers and his brothers, and all the other
Seventh Day people, have seats assigned them. In addition to the
minister’s rates, they are assessed for these church improvements,
which include a new bell, that all may be in good style for the ordination
of Mr. Saltonstall. Of course, John Rogers and his followers
.bn 166.png
.pn +1
do not pay these “rates”; but their cattle and other goods
are seized and sold at auction, none of the extra proceeds being
returned to them. As yet, however, there is no disturbance, although,
in addition to the new rates, the town magistrates are imposing
fines and inflicting punishments, from time to time, on the
seventh day observers, “at their discretion.” (The terms of imprisonment
of John Rogers aggregated over fifteen years, a very
much longer time than the total recorded on court records. This
indicates an extraordinary exercise of the delegated power accorded
to local officials in his case.[62])
.fm rend=t
.fn 62
His son states (see Part I) that his imprisonments amounted to one-third of
his life after his conversion, viz.: one-third of the period between 1674 and 1721.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
While the period of calm (upon the court records) since the last
(and second) entry into the meeting-house, in 1685, is still continuing,
and before the young ecclesiastic is in a position to begin
his attack, let us take a general glance at the Rogers family, and
first at the enterprising and wealthy Samuel Rogers, allied by marriage
to some of the most prominent Congregational church members
in the colony, yet himself appearing to cultivate no intimate
association with the New London church, the reason for which
may well be divined. He is now making active preparations for
leaving New London altogether, as soon as his son Samuel is old
enough to assume control of the bakery, having chosen for his future
home a large tract of land in the romantic wilds of Mohegan
(New London “North Parish,”—now Montville). He is a great
favorite with the Mohegan chief, Owaneco, son of Uncas. The
popularity of Samuel Rogers with the Indians is but one of many
indications of the amiable and conciliatory character of this man.
His simply standing aloof from the church against whose autocratic
dictum his father and brothers judged it their duty to so
strenuously rebel is characteristic of the man.
On the Great Neck, Jonathan Rogers and his wife, and those of
their particular persuasion, are quietly holding their meetings on
Saturday, paying their Congregational church rates with regularity,
however unwillingly, and working on the first day in no very noticeable
.bn 167.png
.pn +1
manner. There is frequent interchange of visits between
them and the many relatives and friends of Naomi in Newport
and Westerly.
Although Captain James and wife and Joseph and his wife seem
to be adhering faithfully to the radical party, there are growing up
in their family several young dissenters from the Seventh Day cause.
Samuel Beebe and his wife Elizabeth remain firm in the Sabbatarian
faith.
John Rogers, Jr., although brought up in the house of Mr.
Matthew Griswold and kept carefully from all Rogers contamination,
works on the days upon which his father works, rests on the
day when his father rests, and in all other ways follows his father’s
lead.
Bathsheba Smith ardently adheres to the religious departure instituted
by her father and her brothers. Her son, James Smith, is
fifteen years of age at this date. He and his cousin John, Jr., are
well agreed to follow on in the faith. Among the children of his
aunt Bathsheba there is one dearest of all to John, Jr.; this is
Bathsheba Smith the younger.
Others of the third generation of Rogerses are now old enough
to begin to observe, reason and choose for themselves. It is not
surprising if, by this time, quite a number of Rogers lads, of the
James and Joseph families, frequently enter the Congregational
church, with other young people, and sit in the pews assigned to
their fathers. The principles of John Rogers, Captain James and
others of their persuasion would prevent the issue of any command
tending to interfere with individual judgment and action in such
matters, whatever the anxious attempt to instill strictly scriptural
opinions and conduct, by precept and example.
1691.
Preparations for the ordination of the Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall
being completed, that event transpires, November, 1691. About a
month after this ceremony, occurs the first tilt on record between
John Rogers and the ecclesiastic. In this instance, the gauntlet is
.bn 168.png
.pn +1
thrown by the dissenter, in the shape of a wig, on the occasion of
a “Contribution to the Ministry.”[63]
.fm rend=t
.fn 63
Contributions of articles, even of clothing, for the poor, for the minister or
for church adornment, and other purposes, were common in those days; and for
such donations there was a large box, quite stationary, and usually near the pulpit.
This appears not to have been known to Miss Caulkins, who supposes a box to
have been passed around, as the box for money contributions of later times.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
John Rogers has, apparently, beheld the magisterial headgear
of the young minister as long as he feels called upon to do so without
some expression of dissent regarding such an unwarrantable
sign of Christian ostentation. The unwelcome gift is a peaceable
yet significant remonstrance from the leader of a sect determined
from the outset to fearlessly express disapproval of any assumption
of practices or doctrines in the name of the Christian religion
that are foreign to the teachings and example of Christ. One
would think that both minister and congregation might be thankful
that the additional “rates” (such as cattle and other goods beyond
all reason) forcibly taken from the dissenters to fit the Congregational
church edifice for its elegant, wigged minister had not
brought a delegation of Rogerenes to the meeting-house, to orally
complain of being forced to assist in this ordination.
That John Rogers so graciously makes the apology, which is
speedily demanded of him for this token of dissent, and assents to
its immortalization upon the town records, is explainable in no
other way than because it gives him an opportunity of publicly
emphasizing the gift and his reasons therefor. The covertly facetious
wording of this Apology, amounting in short to a full re-expression
of the donor’s sentiments in durable form, is a refreshing
relief amid all the tragedy of this man’s life.[64]
.fm rend=t
.fn 64
For Apology, see #Part I, Chap. I.:ch_1_1#
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
After the ordination of Mr. Saltonstall, his influence in this
community, as a clergyman of unusual learning and ability, is fully
established. He makes many friends both in and out of the colony,
as a staunch and talented advocate of Congregational church
rule, especially among the clergy, which is an element of great influence
.bn 169.png
.pn +1
in the General Court, and other courts as well. He will
soon be in a position to wreak upon John Rogers dire vengeance,
not only for the wig, but for that general nonconformity so likely
to disturb the ecclesiastical polity which it is his purpose to vigorously
and uncompromisingly maintain.
In this year “Elizabeth, daughter of Matthew Griswold,” marries
Matthew Beckwith of Lyme, a man much older than herself,
and eleven years the senior of her former husband, John Rogers.
.bn 170.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_4'
CHAPTER IV.
.sp 2
.h4
1691.
.sp 1
The children of James Rogers having petitioned the General
Court to divide their father’s estate according to his will,—which
was entered on record with their agreement thereto,—certain persons
are now appointed to make this division. At the same time,
the court “desire John Rogers and Bathsheba Smith doe take the
part doth belong to widow Rogers under their care and dispose that
a suitable maintainance for her, etc.”
1692.
In July, 1692, there is copied upon the land records a disposition
by the widow of James Rogers of certain alleged rights in her
husband’s estate, viz.: such rights as would have been hers by the
will had there been no codicil thereto. In this document she
claims a certain thirteen acres of land on the Great Neck[65] to dispose
of as she “sees fit,” also all “moveables” left by her husband,
with the exception of £10 willed therefrom to her daughter Elizabeth
Beebe. She states that she has already sold one-half of this
thirteen acres to her son-in-law, Samuel Beebe. By this singular
document, she not only completely ignores the codicil to her husband’s
will (already acknowledged by herself, by the other heirs
and by the probate court), but her recorded deed of trust, by which,
in 1688, she placed her entire life interest in the estate in charge
of John and Bathsheba, whose guardianship under the will had
also, by agreement of all the children, been confirmed by the
General Court.
.fm rend=t
.fn 65
This thirteen acres is called a “grant to Robert Hempstead” “in the first division.”
It is probably the lot belonging to the house she occupies, viz.: the home
lot of her husband. It is a part of the land willed to Captain James.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
In the month previous to this singular act of the widow, the
.bn 171.png
.pn +1
committee appointed by the court, to divide the estate according to
the will, announced their division, adding “when John and Bathsheba
shall pay out of the moveable estate[66] to Eliz. Beebe the
sum of £10,” “if the widow so order,” the remainder of the estate,
real and personal, shall “remain under the care and management of
John and Bathsheba during their mother’s life for her honorable
maintainance,” also that, after decease of the widow, the real
estate and what shall remain of the personal estate be disposed
of according to the will of the testator.
.fm rend=t
.fn 66
It afterwards appears that this movable estate included a number of young
slaves, commonly called “servants.”
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
There was a distinct blunder in the words “if the widow so
order” regarding the payment of the £10; since the will distinctly
says that the £10 are to be paid by the widow to Elizabeth (“out
of the moveables”) “if she sees good, with the advice of my son
John,” and the codicil makes no change in regard to this clause.
The report of the committee omits the advice of John in this matter,
which omission probably seemed not very important to any
one at the time. (It will later appear that serious results ensue
from this apparently slight and inadvertent court error. See Chapter
VII.)
About this time, the widow gives to Elizabeth Beebe (as afterwards
appears) the estimate of the £10, in the shape of a little
colored girl named Joan, who is classed in the movable estate, and
she does this without “the consent of my son John.” In so doing,
she not only ignores the will of her husband regarding the advice
of John, but also the erroneous wording of the committee’s report
that this £10 is to be paid by John and Bathsheba, at her
direction. Had she but permitted these guardians and executors
to pay the £10, Joan would not have figured in the transaction, it
being no part of the intention of John and Bathsheba (as will later
appear) that any of their father’s slaves should be sold or given
away to remain in lifelong bondage. The two executors and
guardians make no complaint to the court of these irregular actions
on the part of their mother, or of the wrong wording of the
.bn 172.png
.pn +1
recent report of the committee (nor shall we in any instance find
them deviating by a hair’s breadth from the request of their father
to make no appeal regarding his estate to earthly judges, although
such appeal at this early stage would have saved incalculable
trouble hereafter). However, Joan is not given over by them to
Elizabeth Beebe.[67]
.fm rend=t
.fn 67
It appears it was the intention of the widow that Joan should not be transferred
to Elizabeth until after her own decease; since we do not find Samuel Beebe claiming
and demanding her until some time after that event, although it appears evident
that this gift was designated by the widow at about this time, 1692.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
Another part of the erratic document of the widow is that after
her death all the “moveables” shall be divided between her son
Jonathan and her daughter Elizabeth, again totally ignoring the
codicil of the will, which speaks only of John, Bathsheba and Captain
James as being concerned in the division of “the moveables”
after her death, except that Elizabeth is to have “three
cows.”[68]
.fm rend=t
.fn 68
By the codicil John and Bathsheba are first to take what they wish of “the
things about the house,” the other movables “whatsoever” to be divided by John,
Bathsheba and James among themselves.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
Although the widow has evidently the encouragement and assistance
of Samuel Beebe in this proceeding, there is no appearance
of any complicity on the part of Jonathan, who exactly conforms
to the terms of the will and the executorship of John. Captain
James makes no complaint to the court of the fact that Samuel
Beebe is already claiming, under this procedure of the widow, a
piece of land which is a part of the farm given to himself by the
will, for which he is paying rent to his mother by order of the executor.
He quietly makes a temporary sale of the thirteen acres
to an attorney, of which sale Samuel Beebe complains (New London
Records), but evidently in vain.
This is but the beginning of annoyances which certain children
of James Rogers are to endure, on account of their determination
not to disobey their father’s request in regard to any appeal to
“earthly judges.” Little could the testator foresee that his attempt
to keep his estate out of the court would be the very means of litigation,
.bn 173.png
.pn +1
through the vagaries of his mentally diseased widow, unchecked
by appeal to the court on the one hand, and encouraged
by interested parties on the other.
1693.
Before the close of the year 1693, John Rogers is fined £4 for
entertaining two Quakers at his house “for a month or more.” He
has (by the testimony of his son, see Part I) no fellowship with
these men, except as regards his concurrence in the doctrine of
non-resistance and some few other particulars. For non-payment
of this fine; he is in prison (and remains there well into the next
year). This is but the beginning of more stringent measures than
have prevailed since the disturbance of the Congregational meeting
in 1685, which seems to have won a seven year’s respite from
severe persecution.
As yet, the ambitious young minister, Gurdon Saltonstall, appears
to have found no good opportunity for attempting to suppress
this intractable man. But if John Rogers is to be prevented
from continuing to scatter, broadcast, doctrines so subversive to a
state church, he should be checked without further delay. In
this lapse of severer and more public discipline on the part of the
authorities, he has been gathering more converts from the Congregational
fold, and has even grown so bold as to come into the very
heart of the town to preach his obnoxious doctrines. Prominent
citizens, who ought to be above countenancing him, are not only
among his hearers, but among his converts.
Samuel Fox, a member of the Congregational church and one of
the most prosperous business men of the place, has recently married
the widow Bathsheba Smith and adopted her faith. He may
be very influential in gaining more such followers, unless deterrent
measures are soon taken. How long could the Congregational
church be maintained, on its present footing, if such a new birth
as this man describes should be required before admission; aye, if
any conversion other than turning from, or avoidance of, immoral
practices be generally insisted upon? Moreover, this ranting
.bn 174.png
.pn +1
against “hireling ministers” is of itself calculated to weaken and
destroy a capable and orderly ministry, to say nothing of baptism
by immersion, administering the communion in the evening (after
the example of Christ), the nonsensical doctrine of non-resistance,
and the rest of this man’s fanatical notions, all of which, strange
to say, are attracting favorable attention in intelligent quarters.
There is Mr. Thomas Young, for instance, a man of the highest
respectability, and allied to some of the best families in the church
and the place; it is even understood that John Rogers is to be invited
to preach at his house.
But what shall be done with the man? Despite the regular fine
of £5, he goes right on with his baptisms and rebaptisms, sometimes
on the very day he is released from imprisonment on this
account. Fines and imprisonments for other offenses, also, hold
him in check only so long as he is in prison. Moreover, the grand
jurymen and other officials have become very indulgent regarding
his offenses; certain of them appear to connive in leaving him undisturbed
in his defiance of ecclesiastical laws. By what means
can he be kept in durance long enough to lose his singular and
growing popularity; or how can he be put out of sight and hearing
altogether?
At least one aspect is encouraging; some of the Rogers young
people are inclining towards the Congregational church, in spite
of their elders. James, Jr., (son of Captain James), is evidently not
in sympathy with the family departure. Let us make much of
this young man; he seems a right sensible fellow. Joseph’s sons,
with the exception of James (the eldest), appear to be well inclined
also. In fact, John Rogers himself is the only one of the original
dissenters who is causing any very serious disturbance nowadays.
Something of this kind is likely enough to be passing in the mind
of Mr. Saltonstall.
In this year, 1693, another difficulty occurs regarding the settlement
of the James Rogers estate. The persons appointed to divide
the land among the children according to the terms of the will have
given Jonathan a farm, “with house thereon,” which was included
.bn 175.png
.pn +1
in the lands given to Joseph by his father in 1666. Joseph (as has
been shown) resigned all of this gift of land to his father in 1670,
but the latter redeeded the most (or supposedly all) of it back to
him in 1683. Joseph appears to have understood that this farm
was included in the second deed of gift, and it is probable that his
father supposed it to have been thus included, by the terms of the
deed. Upon examination, however, the committee have decided
that this farm remains a part of the estate of the testator, and, by
the terms of the will regarding the division of the residue of land
between James and Jonathan, it falls to Jonathan. Naturally,‘_’
Jonathan has nothing to do but to take what is accorded to him
by the decision of those to whom the division has been intrusted,
who have divided it to the best of their knowledge and ability.
Although Joseph is in much the same position, acquiescence in his
case is far less easy. He does not find any fault with the will, but
simply claims this farm as his own by the deed of gift of his father,
and arbiters are appointed to decide the matter. These men appear
to labor under no small difficulty in concluding to which of
the two the farm should really belong, but finally decide in favor
of Jonathan. Joseph is unwilling to abide by this decision, asserting
that some of the evidence on the other side has not been of a
fair character.[69] Consequently the case is reopened, with considerable
favor shown, on the part of the court, to the representations
of Joseph. Jonathan’s part in the case is to present evidence in
favor of his right to the property awarded to him; so that he cannot
be said to have gone to law in the matter.
.fm rend=t
.fn 69
This may refer in part to his mother’s deposition, which figured in the evidence
before the arbiters to the effect that Joseph had “not just cause to molest
Jonathan.”
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
(This attempt of Joseph to regain a farm he had supposed to be
his own, is the sole “contention regarding boundaries,” which was
ascribed by Miss Caulkins to the “children.” It in no way concerns
the executor, who had no part whatever in designating the
boundaries or dividing the land. Joseph appears to have hesitated
at first to make any move in the matter; the opening protest
.bn 176.png
.pn +1
was made in 1692 by his wife, in regard to the deed by which her
husband returned to his father (in 1670) the first gift of land.[70])
.fm rend=t
.fn 70
This protest by Joseph’s wife is recorded on the New London land records,
under the deed of gift of 1670.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
.sp 1
.h4
1694.
The time is now come for the Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall to prove
what he can do, to stay the progress of this nonconformist movement
under the masterly leadership of John Rogers. It is not his
intention to confine his efforts to the ineffectual methods heretofore
employed, the most public of which have been presentation of
leading Rogerenes before the County Court, a procedure that, for
some reason (at this date quite obscure), is sure to provoke the
dreaded countermove, which has each time accomplished so much
for the nonconformists.
The brilliant plan finally matured by Mr. Saltonstall is to capture
John Rogers and imprison him at a distance from New London.
As in many another contest, the fall of the leader is the death
of the cause, or the longer he can be separated from his followers
the more will their cause be weakened and the greater the check
to his proselyting career, which is just now so alarmingly in the
ascendant. There are many dignitaries who share such sentiments
with Mr. Saltonstall. A satisfactory plan being matured,
it can readily be carried out. Such a plan (which is gradually disclosed
in the sequence of events) may be outlined as follows:
For the first part of the program, resort will be had to the old
apprehension for servile labor, with arraignment before the County
Court. It is presumable, according to precedent, that this will
be sufficient to bring out the countermove, which will result in a
large fine—with larger bond for good behavior—payment of
which being refused, as it undoubtedly will be, the bird will be
fully secured in its first cage.
The second part of the plan is, having caught John Rogers in
some expression of doctrine or sentiment that will furnish ground
for his arrest as a preacher of an unwarrantable sort, to secure his
.bn 177.png
.pn +1
trial before the Superior Court, with adverse verdict and imprisonment
in Hartford jail.
According to such a plan, John Rogers will receive a double
dose that may prove effectual. The two parts of this plan take
place as nearly together as possible, the first standing in abeyance
until evidence is secured for the second procedure. This evidence
is obtained late in the month of February, 1694, Saturday
the 24th.
Upon this date, John Rogers is holding a meeting in town, in
the house of Mr. Thomas Young,[71] a gentleman nearly allied, as
has been said, to some of the principal members of the Congregational
church, and among them to the Christophers family, several
of which family (notably Christopher and John) are very intimate
friends of Mr. Saltonstall, as well as prominent officials of New
London. The large number gathered to listen to this discourse
indicates the drawing power of the speaker. Some of his own
Society are present, including his son John. It need scarcely be
said that the having interested Mr. Thomas Young so seriously is
one of the offenses of which John Rogers is now conspicuously
guilty.[71] John Christophers, Daniel Wetherell (another New London
official and friend of Mr. Saltonstall) and Rev. Gurdon
Saltonstall enter this meeting for a sinister purpose.[72]
.fm rend=t
.fn 71
Mr. Thomas Young must have been an earnest seeker after truth, or he would
not have braved the opposition of his Congregational friends by opening his house
to a meeting of the Rogerenes. He appears to have been a son, or grandson, of
Rev. John Young, of Southold, L.I., a Puritan of so true a stamp that he was forbidden
to embark for America. Evidently New London did not prove a satisfactory
residence for Mr. Thomas Young, since he eventually removed to Southold,
where his friendship with John Rogers continued, as also after his later removal
to Oyster Bay, L.I.
.fn-
.fn 72
For record evidence, see Chapter V.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
The subject selected by John Rogers for his discourse on this
occasion is one particularly relating to Rogerene dissent; it is the
necessity of a new birth and the wonderful changes wrought in
body and soul by that divine miracle.[73] That only by such an operation
.bn 178.png
.pn +1
of the Holy Spirit can a man become in truth one with
Christ, is the burden of the theme. Not only has the speaker
wealth of scriptural foundation for this discourse, but by his own
conversion, so sudden and so powerful, he has internal evidence
of the mysterious change set forth in the New Testament. No
subject could better bring out the fervor and eloquence of the man.
He declares that the body of an unregenerate person is a body of
Satan, Satan having his abode therein, and that the body of a regenerate
person is a body of Christ, Christ dwelling in such a body.
(See account of his son, #Part I, Chapter II.:ch_1_2#)
.fm rend=t
.fn 73
Apparently the Scripture expounded on this occasion was Romans viii.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
It is (and is to be) a conspicuous feature of Mr. Saltonstall’s
ministry that no experience of this kind is to be considered necessary
to church membership; such a test as this would never allow
of that great ingathering to the state church which he desires to
see firmly established and maintained.
The Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall and his accomplices do not listen
to this discourse in concealment from the speaker, however they
may stand apart from the hearers that gather cordially about the
remarkable man in their midst. That these three men are his enemies,
none know better than the keen-eyed man who beholds them
there; but it may well be judged that their presence gives no tremor
to his heart or his voice, but, the rather, adds nerve and emphasis.
Mr. Saltonstall, watching his opportunity, and holding the attention
of his accomplices, inquires of the speaker:
“Will you say that your body is the body of Christ?”
The reply of John Rogers shows the quick wit of the man. He
evidently perceives the intention to entrap him, and is, moreover,
unwilling to allow the expression, which he has been using in a
general way, to bear this bald, personal application, with its intended
insinuation of irreverence.
“Yes, I do affirm that this human body (bringing his hand
against his breast) is Christ’s body; for Christ has purchased it
with His precious blood, and I am not my own, for I am bought
with a price.” (See account of his son, #Part I, Chapter II.:ch_1_2#)
Even thus ingeniously and reverently the speaker adheres to his
.bn 179.png
.pn +1
affirmation that the body of a man as well as his soul belongs after
regeneration to Christ and is animated by Him.
It was a reply that turned the edge of the enemy’s sarcasm and
left the speaker free to continue his discourse in no way disconcerted
by the trick. He now goes on to picture, with glowing face
and words, the brotherhood into which the regenerate man enters;
that of Christ, the firstborn of many brethren, and of the disciples
and apostles. The light upon his face as he speaks may well border
upon a smile, and his voice take on an exultant tone (to be
called on the court record “a laughing and a flouting way”). (See
Chapter V.)
From this perfectly Scriptural discourse, the spies now manage
to construct a charge of blasphemy, which, under good management
and by powerful influence, will aid in sending this man to
Hartford prison. Red tape, however, is necessary, before this action
can be brought. In the meantime, trial will be made of the
other portion of the plot, which will imprison him at once in New
London jail.
The very next day (Sunday, February 25, 1694), John Rogers
is arrested for “carting boards,” and Samuel Fox “for catching
eels on that holy day.” Both are arraigned before the County
Court now in session. It is the first arraignment of this kind since
1685. During till these nine years, John Rogers and all of his
Society have been working upon the first day of the week, as for
the ten years previous to 1685. If the countermove now takes
place, according to the plan indicated, John Rogers steps directly
into the trap that has been set for him. That he does step into
it is certain; that he does it without a clear understanding of the
situation is by no means to be inferred. While he may not have
counted upon so deeply laid a scheme as that which is shortly to
develop, yet he is evidently conscious of a situation which renders it
necessary that he, on his part, should act as promptly and boldly in
this crisis as it appears to be the intention of his enemies to act.
(We shall soon come upon proof that the town authorities, instigated
undoubtedly by the same leader and his friends, have been,
.bn 180.png
.pn +1
for some time past, attacking—“oppressing”—not only the
Rogerenes, but the regular Seventh Day Baptists, despite the quiet,
compromising attitude of the latter sect; a fact so uncommon
heretofore as to amount, in connection with the other appearances,
to proof positive that an unusual emergency is confronting all these
nonconformists at this time, and that John Rogers not only steps
forward to check the advances upon his own Society, but as the
champion of the Seventh Day cause at large. See “Remonstrance,”
Chapter V.)
Not having paid his fine, there is now nearly a week in which
John Rogers may meditate in prison before the next Sunday (March
4) arrives, which he appears to do to good purpose. In some way
he manages to communicate with his ever devoted and ready sister
Bathsheba, and also with his faithful Indian servant, William
Wright. Evidently the 20s. fine is sufficient to keep him in prison
over this Sunday, and the wait of a week longer would detract
from the full force of the countermove. This difficulty must be
overcome.
The next Sunday and meeting time arrives. Mr. Saltonstall’s
service proceeds, to which of its many heads is uncertain. Despite
the fact that his opponent is in prison, does every blast of the
March wind seem to rattle the meeting-house door ominously?
Some one ought surely, and at the earliest possible moment, to
make the olden move. The lot has fallen upon Bathsheba. She
enters the church with (apparently) womanly modesty, simply to
announce that she has been doing servile work upon this day and
has come purposely to declare it. (County Court Record.) She
is placed in the stocks. But the end is not yet.
John Rogers himself enters the meeting-house upon this veritable
Sunday, March 4. It is in the “afternoon” (County Court
Record), and, as shown by his copy of “Mittemus” (#Part I, Chapter II:ch_1_2#),
he has by some means escaped from prison for this
purpose.
When he appears, it is in a manner calculated to excite in the
preacher whose discourse is interrupted, something besides delight
.bn 181.png
.pn +1
at the success of the latter’s masterly scheme to entrap him. He
enters with a wheelbarrow load of merchandise,[74] which he wheels
directly to the front of the pulpit, before any in the assembly can
sufficiently recover from their astonishment to lay hands upon
him. From this commanding position he turns and offers his
goods for sale.[75] The scene that ensues before he is returned to
prison must be imagined.
.fm rend=t
.fn 74
Probably shoes of his own manufacture.
.fn-
.fm rend=t-
.fn 75
It is from the account of Mr. Bownas (conversation with John Rogers) we
gain knowledge that there were “goods” in the wheelbarrow, which were offered
for sale before the pulpit. The court record mentions only the wheelbarrow. Mr.
Bownas had evidently a mixed recollection of this portion of John Roger’s conversation
(relating to work, etc., upon the first day Sabbath), since he appears to
suppose this was a thing that might have happened more than once, whereas it was
an extraordinary measure suited to an extraordinary occasion, and one which would
surely receive court notice and record.
In his conversation with Mr. Bownas, John Rogers also said, in this connection,
“that the provocations he met with from the priests, who stirred up the people and
the mob against him, might sometimes urge him further than he was afterwards
easy with in opposing them, but that when he kept his place he had inexpressible
comfort and peace in what he did;” adding, “the wrath of man works not the
righteousness of God.”
.fn-
Upon this same Sunday, William Wright, “an Indian servant of
John Rogers,” makes a “disturbance,” “outside of the meeting
house,” “in time of worship.” Refusing to pay a fine for his misdemeanor,
he is whipped ten stripes on the naked body. (County
Court Record.)
Mr. Saltonstall has one consolation for this certainly unexpected
style of entrance. He can hardly, have reckoned upon such a stupendous
move to aid in securing the long incarceration of his
opponent. The “Proclamation”[76] which John Rogers soon hangs
out at his prison window, to keep before the public his steadfast
determination to oppose the doctrines and measures of the ruling
.bn 182.png
.pn +1
church, is still further ground for the intended removal to Hartford
and trial before that court, which is soon effected through the
“Mittemus.” (#Part I, Chapter II.:ch_1_2#)
.fn 76
“I John Rogers, a servant of Jesus Christ, here make an open declaration of
war against the great red dragon and against the beast to which he gives power;
and against the false church that rides upon the beast; and against the false
prophets who are established by the dragon and the beast; and also a proclamation
of derision against the sword of the devil’s spirit, which is prisons, stocks, whips,
fines and revilings, all of which is to defend the religion of devils.”
.fn-
On the part of John Rogers, his procedure, from beginning to
end, indicates his knowledge of an important crisis, as regards the
Seventh Day cause, and his judgment that the boldest move possible
on his part is the wisest at this time.
[For many a year to come, there will be found no presentment
at court of any of the Rogerenes for servile work upon the first
day of the week. Nevertheless they do not escape. When it becomes
doubtful if juries will punish them; the town authorities
may be instigated to the task.
The wheelbarrow episode was an extreme measure adopted at a
critical time, when, after so long a cessation of violent measures,
the battle was begun anew under the leadership of Mr. Saltonstall.]
.bn 183.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_5'
CHAPTER V.
.sp 2
.h4
1695.
In May, at a special session of the Superior Court, at Hartford,
John Rogers is tried upon the following charges:—
.pm start_quote
1. For that in New London, in Feb. last, thou didst lay thy hand
upon thy breast and say: This is the humane body of Christ, which words
are presumptuous, absurd and of a blasphemous nature.
2. For saying, concerning a wheelbarrow thou broughtest into the
meeting house about a week or fortnight before, that Christ drove the
wheelbarrow—an impious belying of Christ, accusing him to be the
author of sin and was on the Sabbath day.
3. Thou art presented for disturbing the congregation of N. London
on the Lord’s day, when they were in the public worship of God.
4. Also for saying in court that thou did’st nothing and had said nothing
but what thy Lord and Master sent thee to doe etc.[77] which expressions
were spoken in answer to the governor, who reproved thee for
disturbing God’s people in his day and worship.
.pm end_quote
.fn 77
The “&c.” is of the record.
.fn-
The evidence against the prisoner in regard to these matters is
given by Rev. Gurdon Saltonstall, Daniel Wetherell and John
Christophers, and by “an old man in New London prison,” who
testifies that he heard John Rogers say “that he was in Christ
and just and holy, and ministers would carry people to the devil.”
Stated in record that John Rogers owned to saying he was in
Christ, but denied the rest of the statement by the old man. He
also denied that he said Christ drove the wheelbarrow into the
church.
Messrs. Saltonstall, Christophers and Wetherell testify that
(“at Mr. Thomas Young’s”) they saw John Rogers lay his hand
on his breast, and heard him say: “This is the humane body of
.bn 184.png
.pn +1
Christ;” they also heard him say in a “laughing,” or “as they
thought in a flouting way,” “brother Jesus and brother Paul.”
Owned in court by John Rogers “that he said his body was
Christ’s” (note this exact agreement with his son’s statement, Part
I, Chapter II), also that he used the term brother in regard to
Christ and Paul.
The opinions of four ministers are taken as to the blasphemous
nature of said expressions. The names of these ministers are
“Samuel Stow, Moses Noyes, Timothy Woodbridge and Caleb
Watson.” They judge that the expression, “This is the humane
body of Christ,” has a high blasphemous reflection. The saying
“brother Jesus is also a presumptuous expression, in the manner
of his saying it” (viz., as rendered by Gurdon Saltonstall).
“The saying that Christ drove the wheelbarrow is an impious belying
of Christ” (regardless of the prisoner’s denial of having made
any such statement). “The reflections on our worship are a slanderous
charge against the generation of the righteous, and heretical
and impious.”[78] They also “apprehend that in every one of the
expressions evidenced against him there is a high and abominable
profanation of the name of Christ.”
.fn 78
Although the “Proclamation” put out at the prison window appears (by
absence on the court records) not to have figured in open court, it was evidently
in the minds of these priestly judges.
.fn-
Verdict, guilty. Sentence:—
.pm start_quote
To be led forth to the place of execution with a rope about his neck,
and there to stand upon a ladder leaning against the gallows, with the
rope about his neck, for a quarter of an hour. And for his evil speaking
against the ordinances of God to pay a fine of £5; for disturbing
the congregation to be kept in prison until he gives security to the value
of £50 for his peaceable behavior and non-disturbance of the people of
God for the future and until he pay to the keeper of the prison his just
fees and dues.
.pm end_quote
Here is set forth a term of imprisonment which can be ended
only by some change of policy on the part of the authorities; since
.bn 185.png
.pn +1
it is well known by those who have this matter in charge that John
Rogers never gives such security or bonds.
By this time, excitement and sympathy on the part of friends,
followers and relatives of the prisoner are undoubtedly at their
height, and it is probable that these people give somewhat free
expression to their indignation, especially regarding the charge of
blasphemy and the consequent ignominious punishment. Neither
they nor the prisoner expected other than severe measures regarding
the wheelbarrow affair, which was a very bold stroke of countermove
in an extraordinary emergency.
In June, close following the trial and punishment inflicted upon
John Rogers at Hartford, the New London meeting-house burns
to the ground.
But for the excitement among the dissenters, this disaster might
be attributed to some other cause; but under the circumstances it
is a convenient and plausible charge to lay at their door. About
the same time, also, Stonington meeting-house is desecrated by
“daubing it with filth.”
Bathsheba Fox, John Rogers, Jr., and William Wright (the Indian
servant before referred to) are arraigned before the Superior
Court at Hartford, on suspicion of being “concerned in” both of
the above occurrences. The only evidence against John, Jr., and his
aunt Bathsheba is of a circumstantial character, to the effect that
some conversation transpired previous to these occurrences which
it is considered may have instigated the burning and desecration
on the part of others, notably of William Wright. The latter is
convicted of defiling the Stonington meeting-house.[79]
.fn 79
After diligent search, no evidence has been found of enmity on the part of
the Rogerenes towards the Stonington church.
.fn-
It is probable that, in the height of their excitement over the
treatment John Rogers received at Hartford, Bathsheba, John, Jr.,
and others expressed great indignation against Mr. Saltonstall and
the New London church generally. Yet the burning of the meeting-house
was probably as much a surprise to them as to anyone, and
certainly as great a financial disaster; since upon them more than
.bn 186.png
.pn +1
upon others, by exorbitant seizure of property, must fall the expense
of a new edifice. This latter fact, as well as certainty that
suspicion and apprehension must surely fall in their quarter, would
naturally deter them from any such undertaking. Also, retaliatory
measures of this description are contrary to the principles of this sect.[80]
.fn 80
Miss Caulkins says regarding this burning of the meeting-house: “It was supposed
to be an act of incendiarism, and public fame attributed it to the followers
of John Rogers. Several of these people were arrested and tried for the crime,
but it could not be proved against them, and they may now without hesitation be
pronounced innocent. Public sympathy was enlisted on the other side, and had
they committed a deed which was then esteemed a high degree of sacrilege, it is
difficult to believe they could have escaped exposure and penalty.”
.fn-
At this same Superior Court session, John Rogers, Jr., and William
Wright are charged with having recently assisted in the escape
from the Hartford prison of a man, “Matthews,” who was condemned
to death.[81] William Wright is charged with assisting Matthews
to escape from prison, and John Rogers, Jr., is accused of
conveying him out of the colony. He appears to have been soon
recaptured, and is again in prison at the time these charges are
preferred. This is not the only instance in which John Rogers,
Jr., is found running great risk and displaying great courage in a
cause which he deems right before God, however criminal in the
judgment of men.
.fn 81
The capital crime with which he was charged appears not to have been well-proven,
for which reason the condemned prisoner petitioned that there might be
a fuller investigation. (See Book of Crimes and Misdemeanors, State Library.)
The fact that, although meriting severe punishment, this youth was not guilty to
the extent presumed by the penalty, is indicated by his after reprieve.
.fn-
For assisting in this escape, William Wright is to pay half the
charges incurred in recapturing Matthews. For “abusing” Stonington
meeting-house, for not acknowledging to have heard alleged
conversations among the Rogerses and their confederates in regard
to the burning of New London meeting-house, and for having
made his escape from justice (by which he appears to have recently
escaped from jail[82]), he is to be “sorely whipped” and returned to
Hartford prison.
.fn 82
Where he was doubtless confined for his “disturbance outside the meeting
house” in the recent countermove, the “ten stripes” being too mild a punishment.
.fn-
.bn 187.png
.pn +1
John Rogers, Jr., for being “conspicuously guilty of consuming
New London meeting house” (although no slightest evidence of
such guilt is recorded), “for having been in company with some
who held a discourse of burning said meeting house” (although
no such discourse has been proven), and “that he did encourage
the Indian to fly far enough” (this appears to refer to William
Wright’s “escape from justice”), and “for being active in conveying
Matthews out of the colony,” is placed under bond for trial.
It is shown that his uncle, Samuel Rogers, has appeared and given
bail for him. (There is no after record to show that such trial
ever took place, and no slightest mention of any further proceeding
in the matter.) This act of Samuel Rogers is one of the frequent
evidences of cordial friendship between John, Jr., and his
uncle.
Bathsheba, for “devising and promoting” the firing of the meeting-house,
and the “defiling” of that at Stonington, is to pay a
fine of £10 or be severely whipped. This fine is probably paid by
Samuel Rogers. It certainly would not be paid by her. The sole
evidence against John, Jr., and Bathsheba is in the character of
vague rumors of indignant discourse relating to the recent moves
against John Rogers, Sr. No proof of any complicity is
recorded.
John, Jr., and Bathsheba are freed, but William Wright remains
in Hartford jail with his master (and will continue there for three
years to come), not for burning the meeting-house, which is not
proven against him, nor for defiling that at Stonington (on suspicion
of which he has already been punished with the stripes);
not (save in part) for the charges incurred by the rescue of Matthews,
but (as will be evident three years later) for his averred determination
not to submit to the law regarding servile labor on
the first day of the week.
In the meantime, Mr. Saltonstall and his friends, who have recently
been congratulating themselves on the success of their
scheme for keeping John Rogers in Hartford jail, are gravely contemplating
the ashes of their meeting-house and the remnants of
.bn 188.png
.pn +1
its new bell, with still further uneasiness in regard to results like
enough to ensue from added distrainments of the nonconformists
towards the building of another edifice.
Nor is this all. There are prominent members of this very
church who have so long been witnesses of wrongs and provocations
on the part of the authorities towards the conscientious non-conformists,
and have seen these wrongs and provocations so increased
of late, that they are willing to join with representatives
of those people in an open remonstrance.
In October of this year, occurs the terrible and mysterious public
scourging of John Rogers at Hartford, which is best given in his
own words and those of his son (see #Part I, Chapters II:ch_1_2# and #III:ch_1_3#),
of which act, or cause for it, no slightest mention is to be found on
court records. All this is but the beginning of vengeance for his
continued refusal to bind himself to what the court terms “good
behavior.” Close following any such bonds, would be the institution
of such procedures against the Rogerenes as would tend to
annihilate their denomination. But so long as the dreaded countermove
is to be looked for, in times of extremity, some degree of
caution must be exercised, even by the rulers of Connecticut.
The “Remonstrance,” to which reference has been made, appears
in January of this year, and is issued by Capt. James Rogers,
Richard Steer, Samuel Beebe and Jonathan Rogers. Appended
to it are many names. Briefly stated, it is charged that the Congregational
church have been so accustomed to persecute those
that dissent from them “that they cannot forbear their old trade;”
that the design of the Act of Parliament for liberty to Presbyterians,
Independents, Quakers and Baptists, to worship according
to the dictates of conscience
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“is violently opposed by some whose narrow principles, fierce inclinations
and self interest have wedded to a spirit of persecution and an itch for
domineering over their neighbors. That the present actions of the authority
show that the king has nothing to do with this colony. That
the compelling them to pay towards the maintainance of a Congregational
Minister is contrary to law and therefore rapine and robbery. That
.bn 189.png
.pn +1
the rights of peaceable dissenters have been of late, by permission of
the authorities, violated, and that the authority has illegally oppressed
them.”
.pm end_quote
(Here is proof of recent unusual procedures by the town magistrates,
not only against the Rogerenes, but in regard to the quiet
dissenters on the Great Neck and elsewhere. This persecution has
been going on out of sight of the general public, by action of the
town authorities, since no County Court record appears. Undoubtedly
it was this revival of indignities that stirred John Rogers
to his bold move.)
The “emitters” of this paper are placed under bonds for appearance
at the County Court, where they are fined £5 each “for
defamation of their Majesties,” viz.: “the Gov. of Conn. and others
in authority,” as well as “breach of His Majesty’s peace and disquietude
of his liege people.”
The “emitters” appeal to the Superior Court, not because they
expect any favor from that quarter, but it keeps the cause before
that public in whose sense of justice is all their hope.
.sp 2
.h4
1697.
.sp 1
Before May of this year, and while another trial of the case regarding
the claim of Joseph to land awarded Jonathan is still in
progress, occurs the death of Joseph Rogers. It is not unlikely
that had both brothers lived they would have come to an amicable
adjustment of the difficulty; since the evident perplexity of those
charged with examination into the case, indicates reasonable arguments
upon either side, and thus a matter well fitted for compromise.
Our glimpses of Joseph Rogers are meagre. He and his wife
appear not to have joined the Newport church, but were evidently
members of the church of which John Rogers was pastor. (We
have seen the wife’s baptism, Chapter II.) Yet, of late years,
Joseph has been scarcely more noticeable than Jonathan, as regards
arraignment for labor on the first day of the week, which, as in
.bn 190.png
.pn +1
case of the latter, appears to prove that his labor was not of an
ostentatious character. That he was steady, thrifty, industrious
and enterprising is very evident. He added largely, by purchase,
to the lands given him by his father, and had become proprietor of
a saw-mill and corn-mill at Lyme. He died intestate, and his
widow, Sarah, administered on his estate. Sarah Rogers now carries
forward the suit in which her husband was engaged. The
court appears not unfavorable to her presentation of the case; but,
on account of a neglect on her part in regard to certain technicalities,
the trial comes to a pause, and, through lack of further
action on her part, the case is again decided in favor of
Jonathan.
In March, 1697, complaint is made to the Governor and Council
that John Rogers and William Wright, who were “to be kept close
prisoners,” are frequently permitted to walk at liberty, and the
complainants (names not stated) declare their extreme dissatisfaction
with the jailer and any that connive with him in this matter.
It is ordered that said persons be hereafter kept close prisoners,
and that the jailer or others who disobey this order be dealt with
according to law. Has John Rogers made such friends with the
prejudiced and cruel jailer of 1694? Even so (see #Part I., Chapter IV.:ch_1_4#,
for testimony of Thomas Hancox, and #Part I, Chapter II.:ch_1_2#, for
scourging of John Rogers at Hartford and part of same jailer in
this abuse).
In 1697, the General Court appoint a committee to revise the
laws of the colony and certain “reverent elders” to advise the persons
chosen in this affair,[83] and also “to advise this court in what
manner they ought to bear testimony against the irregular actions
of John Rogers in printing and publishing a book reputed scandalous
and heretical.”
.fn 83
A very distinct glimpse of the power given to ministers of the standing order
in state legislation.
.fn-
John Rogers, Jr., is now twenty-three years of age, a young man
of brilliant parts and daring courage. Since he is the printer and
circulator of this book, he is probably also its author. In this same
.bn 191.png
.pn +1
month of May, “John Rogers, Jr.,” is “bound in a bond of £40”
“to appear at court” (Superior) “to answer what may be objected
against him for bringing a printed book or pamphlet into this
colony which was not licensed by authority, and for selling the
same up and down the colony, as also for other misdemeanors”—the
nature of the latter not indicated. No complaint being presented
against him, he is dismissed.
[Could a copy of this pamphlet be found, great light might be
thrown upon this stormy period, by revelation of the full circumstances
leading up to the desperate entry of John Rogers into the
meeting-house in 1694, the plot of Mr. Saltonstall and the “Remonstrance
in Behalf of Peaceable Dissenters.”
That this book, sold “up and down the colony” by John Rogers,
Jr., was for the enlightenment of the people at large regarding the
cause, and lack of cause, for the long imprisonment and cruel
treatment of his father, with representation of the case for the nonconformists,
can scarcely be doubted. We can picture this talented
and manly youth going from place to place, eagerly seeking and
finding those who will listen to his eloquent appeal to buy and
read this tale of wrong and woe, in the almost single-handed struggle
for religious liberty in Connecticut.]
Does the little book create so much sympathy “up and down the
colony,” that it is no longer wise to keep John Rogers incarcerated,
or are his ecclesiastical enemies at last sated by his nearly four
years of close imprisonment in Hartford jail? However this may
be, at the October session of the Superior Court, 1697, John Rogers
is brought from prison and “set at liberty in open court,” “in expectation
that he will behave himself civilly and peaceably in the
future.” The promise of good behavior is not required of him, as
formerly, but in its place the “in expectation,” etc., which is not
their expectation at all, unless with the proviso that they themselves
observe due caution in the handling of him and his followers.
They are apparently mindful of public opinion and of the little book.
William Wright is also brought from prison to this court. He
stands here, in the presence of this master, who has just been set at
.bn 192.png
.pn +1
liberty, awaiting his own turn to be freed. For more than three
years, these men have been comrades in Hartford prison. They
dwelt together at the home of James Rogers, Sr., the Indian a
servant of the latter, and, since his death, servant of the executor,
John Rogers. The master has been kind and trustful, the servant
faithful to a remarkable extent. But for signal proof of heroic
allegiance to this nonconformist, he had not been in prison at all.
The master is waiting that his servant may go with him from
the court-room as a free man. But no! As the ceremony proceeds,
the Indian is offered his freedom only on condition that he
will promise to “behave himself civilly and peaceably in future,”
which would include refraining from servile work upon the first
day of the week. They are demanding promises of the despised
red man that they dare not exact of the white man, who has no
lack of money or of friends.
Well may the warm blood of this master spring crimson to cheek
and brow. But not alone the master, the servant himself. They
would compel him to desert his master! The blood of the Indian
is a match for that of the Saxon.
William Wright, standing in swarthy dignity before this worshipful
court, declines his freedom on terms not only unjust to himself,
but demanding infidelity to that master and that cause for which
he has been so ready to venture and to suffer. He declares before
this assembly that he will not submit to the law against servile
labor on the first day of the week, that said law “is a human invention,”
and that he will work upon the first day of the week so
long as he lives.
For this admirable fidelity to his religion and his friends, he is
sentenced to be returned to prison “until there shall be opportunity
to send him out of the colony on some vessel, as a dangerous disturber
of the peace,” and in case of his return he shall be whipped
and again transported.
The wonder is that John Rogers held his peace until the full
completion of this sentence. Had an outburst of indignation and
condemnation of this unjust sentence not been forthcoming, as this
.bn 193.png
.pn +1
faithful servant was being returned to the close imprisonment of
Hartford jail, then might it be said that John Rogers could, for
fear or favor, stand silent in the presence of injustice. For such
an outburst as this[84] John Rogers is immediately fined £5. This
“contempt of court” is briefly rendered on the records as
follows:—
.pm start_quote
“John Rogers upon the above sentence being passed upon William
Wright behaved himself disorderly, in speaking without leave and declaring
that he did protest against the said sentence.”
.pm end_quote
.fn 84
The words spoken do not appear on record.
.fn-
Since he never pays such fines (except through execution upon his
property) he is probably returned to prison with his faithful servant,
there to continue until this fine shall be cancelled.
Before the close of this year, Jonathan Rogers is accidentally
drowned in Long Island Sound. Our glimpses of this youngest
son of James Rogers have been slight and infrequent. That he
possessed firmness and independence, is shown by his resolution to
continue fully within the Newport church. The fact that this
made no break—other than upon religious points—with his
Rogerene relatives reveals both tact and an amiable and winning
personality. In his inventory are “cooper’s tools,” “carpenter’s
tools” and “smith’s tools,” indicating an enterprising man concerned
in several occupations, according to the fashion of his
time.
.sp 2
.h4
1698.
.sp 1
When John Rogers is finally released from prison, the rancor
with which he is still pursued by Mr. Saltonstall, with intent to
weaken his financial power to continue his bold stand, is proven
by the preposterous suit instituted against him almost immediately
(Superior Court) for alleged defamation, in saying that he (Saltonstall)
agreed to hold a public argument with him (Rogers) on certain
points of scripture, which agreement said Saltonstall failed to
.bn 194.png
.pn +1
fulfil.[85] (This case has been fully presented in #Part I., Chapter VI.:ch_1_6#)
.fn 85
It would be interesting to know exactly what doctrine or doctrines were involved.
By the occurrence of this suit so soon after John Roger’s release from an
imprisonment on charge of “Blasphemy,” it would seem not unlikely that the
Scripture expounded at the house of Thomas Young in 1694 (probably Romans
viii) might be that in question. Public “disputes” of this kind were then and
for many years after in vogue in Connecticut.
.fn-
(Motive for any such alleged statement, unless true, being lacking,
and a pamphlet being published not long after by John Rogers,
giving a detailed account of the whole cause and proceeding, by
which the exorbitant sum of £600 recovery for libel, with costs of
court, was levied upon him, it is presumable that enmity and court
influence were at the bottom of this suit, if not clearly on the surface.
Ecclesiastical power was dominant at this time in all the
courts. Ever back of Mr. Saltonstall stood this power, as intent
as himself upon the overthrow of this daring nonconformist.
Could a copy of the pamphlet by John Rogers,[86] giving details of
that remarkable suit, be found, much light would doubtless be
cast upon this period in the history of the Rogerenes.)
.fn 86
For full title, see publications of John Rogers, at end of Appendix.
.fn-
The death of Elizabeth, widow of James, has recently occurred.[87]
.fn 87
This fact is revealed by after procedures regarding settlement of the residue
of the estate, her death not being found on record.
.fn-
John Rogers has changed his home from the Great Neck to
Mamacock farm, North Parish. His sister Bathsheba has also
removed to the North Parish, to a place called Fox’s Mills, from
the mills owned and carried on by her husband, Samuel Fox.
.bn 195.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_6'
CHAPTER VI.
.sp 2
.h4
1698.
.sp 1
The long and close imprisonment of John Rogers in Hartford,
attended as it was with a bitter sense of wrong, would seem sufficient
to undermine the strongest constitution. To this was added
anxiety regarding home affairs, including charge of his father’s estate
and the care of his mother, which were devolving wholly
upon his sister Bathsheba. His mother’s death close following
his release, and business neglected during the past four
years, must have borne hard on his enfeebled system, to say nothing
of annoyance and difficulty on account of Mr. Saltonstall’s
recovery of the £600. Although he has gathered his family (son
and servants) about him, at Mamacock farm, and resumed the
leadership of his Society, he can scarcely as yet be the man he
was four years ago.
It must be sweet to breathe again the open air of freedom, and
such air as blows over Mamacock; purest breezes from river and
from sea, fragrant with the breath of piney woods, of pastures
filled with flowers and herbs, and of fields of new-mown hay,
mingled with the wholesome odor of seaweed cast by the tide upon
Mamacock shore.
Not far from the house, towards the river, in a broad hollow in
the greensward, bordered on the north by a wooded cliff and commanding
a view of the river and craggy Mamacock peninsula, is
a clear, running stream and pool of spring water. Here yet (1698)
the Indians come as of old, with free leave of the owner, to eat
clams, as also on Mamacock peninsula, at both of which places
the powdered white shells in the soil will verify the tradition for
more than two hundred years to come. In this river are fish to
.bn 196.png
.pn +1
tempt the palate of an epicure, and trout abound in the neighboring
streams. A strong-built, white-sailed boat is a part of this
lovely scene, and such a boat will still be found here for many
years to come. (See “Hempstead Diary” for mention of boat.)
1699.
If after the perilous trials, hardships and irritations of the past
four years, this man has a mind to enjoy life, as it comes to him
at Mamacock, it is not strange.
Nor is it strange that, among his house servants, he soon particularly
notices a young woman, lately arrived from the old country,
whose services he has bought for so long as will reimburse
him for payment of her passage. Perhaps the chief cause of his
interest is in the fact that she herself has taken a liking to the
half-saddened man who is her master. Surely he who could so
attach to himself a native Indian like William Wright, has traits to
win even the favor of a young woman. He is evidently genial and
indulgent with his servants, rather than haughty and censorious.
For twenty-five years he has been a widower, except that the
grave has not covered the wife of his youth. Through all these
years, the bitterest of his calumniators have not raised so much as
a whisper questioning his perfect fidelity to Elizabeth, who, since
the divorce, has been the wife of two other men and yet ever by
this man has been considered as rightfully his own. Such being
the case, well may his son wonder that he is becoming interested
in this young housemaid, Mary Ransford, even to showing some
marked attentions, which she receives with favor. She is a comely
young woman, no doubt, as well as lively and spirited. Her
master will not object to her having a mind of her own, especially
when she displays due indignation regarding the wholesale method
of gathering the minister’s and church rates. But when she goes
so far as to “threaten”[88] to pour scalding water on the head of
.bn 197.png
.pn +1
the collector of rates, as he appears at the front door upon that ever
fruitless errand, this master must give her a little lesson in the
doctrine of non-resistance, although his eyes may twinkle with
covert humor at her zeal. As for the rates, they must be taken
out of the pasture.
.fn 88
The County Court record says Mary was fined for “threatening” to pour
scalding water on the head of the collector. Miss Caulkins inadvertently says she
was fined for “pouring” the same.
.fn-
Evidently this attractive girl, Mary, is willing to assent to anything
this indulgent master believes to be right, taking as kindly
to his doctrines as to himself. A man of soundest constitution, as
proven from first to last, and of great recuperative energy, he is
not old at fifty-two, despite imprisonments, stripes and ceaseless
confiscations.
It soon becomes plain to John the younger that this is no ordinary
partiality for an attractive and devoted maid, but that his
father will ask this young woman to become his wife. For the
first time, there is a marked difference of opinion between father
and son. Mary is perfectly willing to pledge herself to this man,
even under the conditions desired. As for him, why should he
longer remain single, seeing there is no possible hope of reclaiming
the wife whom he still tenderly loves. There are arguments
enough upon the other side. John, Jr., presents them very forcibly,
and especially in regard to the inconsistency of putting any
woman in his mother’s place, so long as his father continues to
declare that Elizabeth is still, in reality, his wife.
To this latter and chief argument, the father replies that he
shall not put Mary in his first wife’s place, since that marriage
has never been annulled, by any law of God or of man. Did not
God, in the olden times, allow two kinds of wives, both truly wives,
yet one higher than the other? Under the singular circumstances
of this case, being still bound to Elizabeth by the law of God, yet
separated from her by the will of men, he will marry Mary, yet
not as he married Elizabeth Griswold. He will openly and honorably
marry her, yet put no woman in the place of his first wife.
To this Mary agrees.
It is but another outcome of this man’s character. He fears
God and God alone. He takes very little thought as to what
.bn 198.png
.pn +1
man may think or do concerning him. Yet not by a hair’s breadth
will he, if he knows it, transgress any scriptural law. (In his
after treatise “On Divorce,” how well can be read between the
lines the meditations and conclusions of this period, and chiefly
the fact that, in deciding upon a second marriage, he in no wise
admitted that Elizabeth Griswold was not still his wife, although
so held from him that he might lawfully take another, although
under the circumstances a lesser, wife.[89])
.fn 89
In this treatise “On Divorce,” he shows that the New Testament admits but
one cause for divorce, and does not admit adultery as a cause. Therefore (by inference),
although, by her after marriages, his first wife leads an adulterous life
(see statement of his son, #Part I., Chapter IV.:ch_1_4#), he does not consider that this
fact releases him from his marriage bond. But since, by the law of God
(“Mosaic” and still prevailing in the time of Christ), a man was allowed another
than his first and chiefest wife, in taking Mary Ransford for his wife under the
forced separation from his first wife, he breaks no law of God. Not that he so
much as mentions himself, Elizabeth or Mary in this treatise; but the above is
plainly inferable to those acquainted with his history at this period. Since, in
granting the divorce to Elizabeth, the court left him free to marry again, he broke
no civil law in taking another wife.
.fn-
Oppose this unpropitious plan as he may, the son, whose influence
has hitherto been paramount, cannot prevail to weaken his
father’s resolution. It is the old and frequent glamour that has
bound men and women in a spell from the beginning, making
them blind to what others see, and causing them to see that to
which others are blind, in the object of their choice. The fact
that Mary returns John, Jr.’s, pronounced opposition to the marriage
with consequent aversion to the spirited youth, does not
necessarily injure her standing with the father. There is but one
person for whom favoritism on her part is absolutely necessary.
As is usual in such cases, the matter goes on, despite all opposition.
He who has so often borne to his mother the tale of his
father’s unfaltering fidelity, must now acquaint her with this sudden
engagement. To the young, the new loves of older people are
foolishness. But, in this case, there is still another reason for
John, Jr.’s, opposition to this mid-life romance; it is sadly interfering
with a very natural intention of his own.
.bn 199.png
.pn +1
With his usual habit of unhesitatingly executing a plan as soon
as it is fully determined upon, John Rogers improves the opportunity
offered by the session of the County Court in New London,
to present himself with Mary before that assembly (June 6),
where they take each other, in the sight and hearing of all, as
husband and wife; he, furthermore, stating his reason for marrying
her outside the form prescribed by the colony, to which form
he declares he attaches no value, since it was not sufficient to secure
his first wife to him, although no valid cause was presented
for the annulment of that approved ceremony. To fully make
this a well-authenticated marriage, he gallantly escorts Mary to
the house of the Governor (Mr. Winthrop) and informs him that
he has taken this young woman for his wife. The governor politely
wishes him much joy.[90]
Much as this second marriage might be lamented, from several
points of view, and much trouble as it brought upon both Mary
and John, Jr., by their irreconcilable disagreement, to say nothing
of the perplexities and sorrows which it inflicted upon John Rogers
himself, it is scarcely to be regretted by his biographer; since it
brings into bold prominence a striking, and wonderfully rare,
characteristic of this remarkable man, viz.: the most reverent and
careful deference to every known law of God, combined with total
indifference to any law of man not perfectly agreeing with the
laws of God.[91] Evidently, what the most august assembly of men
that could be gathered, or the most lofty earthly potentate, might
think, say or do, would to him be lighter than a feather, if such
thought, speech or act did not accord with the divine laws.
.fn 90
It may be left to legal judgment to decide whether this marriage was not more
in accordance with the spirit and letter of the law than was the divorce granted
by the General Court of Connecticut, through no testimony save that of a wife,
bent on divorce, against her husband, regarding a matter which he had confided
to her in marital confidence; said divorce being granted in the very face of the
“we find not the bill” rendered by the grand jury in regard to the charge made by
the wife.
.fn-
.fn 91
Everything involved in the command to “render to Cæsar,” etc., being a law
of Christ, he held binding, as regarded ordinary civil legislation.
.fn-
.bn 200.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h4
1700.
.sp 1
By some agreement the house at Mamacock, cattle on the place,
and other farm property, are under the joint ownership of John,
Sr., and John, Jr.; the one has as much right to the house and the
farm stock as the other. It now appears that the junior partner
has himself been intending to furnish a mistress for the house at
Mamacock. In January, 1700, seven months after the marriage
of his father, he brings home his bride and is forced to place her
in the awkward position of one of two mistresses. The young
woman who now enters upon this highly romantic and gravely
dramatic scene is one with whom John Rogers, Sr., can find no
fault, being none other than his niece, Bathsheba, daughter of his
faithful and beloved sister of the same name.
In spite of the difficulties sure to ensue, John, Sr., cannot but
welcome this favorite niece to Mamacock. Not so with Mary.
Whatever estimable and attractive qualities the latter may possess,
here is a situation calculated to prove whether or not she is capable
of the amount of passion and jealousy that has so often transformed
a usually sensible and agreeable woman into the semblance
of a Jezebel. The birth of a son to Mary, at this trying period,
does not better the situation. Even so courageous a man as John
Rogers might well stand appalled at the probable consequences of
this venturesome marriage. When he brought Mary home and
directed his servants to obey her as their mistress,[92] he in no wise
calculated upon her being thus, even partially, set aside. He
stands manfully by her, as best he may, though with the evident
intention that she shall refrain from any abuse of his son’s rights
in the case.
.fn 92
Mary’s account in her petition to the General Court, 1703. See “Book of
Crimes and Misdemeanors,” Court Files.
.fn-
Although Mary is fined 40s. by the County Court in June, for
the birth of her child, it is not declared illegitimate by the usual
form, the authorities being nonplussed by the fact she and John
Rogers so publicly took each other as husband and wife. She is
.bn 201.png
.pn +1
not called upon to declare who is the child’s father, nor is the
latter charged with its maintenance, as in cases of illegitimacy.
Evidently, John Rogers did not expect any court action, in the case
of so public a ceremony. He declines to pay a fine so disgraceful
to his wife and child, and appeals to the Superior Court. The
court decides that, since the fine was not accompanied by other
due forms of law, it is invalid, but refers the matter to the future
consideration of the County Court, which results in no further
action in regard to this child.
Mary is also summoned before this same June court and fined
10s., “for her wicked and notorious language to John Rogers, Jr.,”
evidently on complaint of the latter. In this crisis, her husband
presents himself at the court, partly in her defense and partly in
that of his son. He calls attention to a mark upon her face, which
he says she declares to have been inflicted by the hand of his son
John, during his own absence from home, and that upon this account
“she has become so enraged as to threaten the life of somebody,
as she has done before from time to time,” and he is “fearful
that if God or man do not prevent it,”[93] serious consequences may
follow. John, Jr., is fined 10s. on this evidence of his father. Although
the injury to Mary, as indicated by the fine, is nothing
serious as a wound, yet it proves how far the young man lost self-control
in this instance. John Rogers, Sr., objects to the fine imposed
upon Mary under these circumstances, but his statement
before the court is evidently intended not only as a defense of his
son, but as a check upon herself.
.fn 93
The statements in this paragraph are from an affidavit still extant at New
London, in the handwriting of John Rogers.
.fn-
[There is the evidence of a no more partial witness than Peter
Pratt that John Rogers never complained, outside his own home,
of the domestic troubles resulting from this marriage.[94] In the
above instance, he was compelled, by the action of his son, to
testify, both in Mary’s defense and in excuse of his son. Upon
.bn 202.png
.pn +1
this court record and affidavit is founded Miss Caulkin’s statement
that appeal was made to the court to “quell domestic broils”
arising from this marriage. It is to the advantage of this history
that the family affairs of John Rogers were in this instance forced
before the public, since we may observe the manner in which the
father and husband endeavors to secure an impartial administration
of justice, and immunity of any one from harm.]
.fn 94
“Prey Taken from the Strong.”
.fn-
However this marriage and its consequences may figure upon
the printed page of a less primitive period, they appear not to
lessen respect for this remarkable man in the eyes of his followers,
although these followers are persons of the highest moral character.
His blameless life as a single man for the last twenty-five years, and
his avowed reasons for taking another wife in the manner he has,
are known to all. Moreover, they find no word of God in condemnation.
In this year, John Rogers publishes, in pamphlet form, an account
of the dispute agreed upon between himself and Mr. Saltonstall,
telling the particulars of that great extortion. (Would that a copy
of this might yet come to the light!)
1702.
In September, 1702, the County Court have a good opportunity
to exercise the “after consideration” recommended by the Superior
Court in 1700, which they improve by dealing with Mary, after
the birth of her second child, exactly as they are accustomed to
deal with an unmarried woman. Her presentment is in exactly
the same wording, a part of which calls upon her to declare under
oath, before the court, the name of the father of her child. To
prevent their carrying out this form, John Rogers is there in court,
with his six-months-old girl baby in his arms, to save it from this
disgrace. He has given Mary directions how to proceed, in order
to supplement his plan of breaking up the intended procedure. If
she refuse to take the oath and to declare John Rogers to be the
father of her child, the court will be baffled.[95]
.fn 95
See account of this court scene, by John Rogers, 2d. (#Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#).
.fn-
.bn 203.png
.pn +1
Being ordered to take the oath, she is silent, as her husband
has enjoined, while he declares to the court that this her child in
his arms is his own. The court knows, as well as the man before
them, that his first marriage has not been annulled for any legal
cause; that he had reason to refuse a repetition of the ceremony.
But while those who make and administer laws may be allowed to
ignore them with impunity, lesser people must abide by them;
least of all must this man escape, who has imperilled the ecclesiasticism
of the land. They threaten Mary with stripes, if she
her refusal to take the oath. She looks from the judge to
the man who stands, so earnest and anxious, with the babe in his
arms, bidding her not to take the oath, declaring that, if she obey
him, he will shield her from harm. She knows he will do all that
he can to protect her; but she has seen marks of the stripes upon
his own back; she knows how he has sat for hours in the stocks,
and been held for weary years in prison. Can he rescue her from
the stripes?
He sees her yielding and pleads with her, pleads that she will
save their child from this dishonor. The court sternly repeats the
threat. Again he promises to defend her, in case she will obey
him; but declares that, if she yield, branding his child as base-born,
herself as common, and himself a villain, he needs must hesitate,
hereafter, to own her as his wife.
She sees the court will not be trifled with. She knows that John
Rogers uses no idle words. Yet will it not be safer to brave his
displeasure than that of the court? She takes the oath, and declares
John Rogers to be the father of her child. The cloud grows
dark upon the father’s face. He folds his branded child against
his heart and goes his way. All this he risked to hold his first
love first, in seeming as in truth; has risked and lost.
The court proceeds as usual in cases of illegitimacy, pronouncing
John Rogers the father of the child, and ordering that he pay 2s.
6d. per week towards its maintenance, until it is four years of age.
Mary is allowed until the end of the following month to pay the
.bn 204.png
.pn +1
usual fine of 40s., in case of non-payment of which she shall receive
ten stripes on the naked body. In the meantime, she is to
be detained in prison. Will John Rogers own his child to be
illegitimate by paying this fine? By no means.
1703.
To now take Mary back (even if so allowed by the authorities)[96]
would be to brand any other children in the same manner. To
marry her by the prescribed form would be to acknowledge these
two children to be illegitimate. Yet there is one thing that can
be done, and must be done speedily. Mary must be rescued from
the prison and thus saved from the lash. There are but two in all
this region who will risk an attempt like that. They are John
Rogers and his son. Mary escapes to Block Island.
.fn 96
Miss Caulkins states that Mary was threatened by this court with heavy
penalties if she returned to John Rogers. Although the evidence of this has escaped
our notice, Miss Caulkins doubtless came across such evidence.
.fn-
After a safe period has elapsed, Mary is returned from Block
Island to New London. Her children are placed with her, somewhere
in the town, to give the more effect to her Petition to the
General Court, which is presented early in May. It is a long and
pathetic document (still to be seen in “Book of Crimes and Misdemeanors,”
in the State Library, at Hartford), narrating the manner
of her marriage to John Rogers; his taking her home and
“ordering his servants to be conformable and obedient” to her;
the trouble they had, “especially myself,” on account of the displeasure
of John, Jr., at the marriage; a description of her presentment
at court for her second child; her compliance with the
court’s importunity, although her husband stood there “with it in
his arms,” and how the result had made their children “base-born,”
by which her “husband” says he is “grossly abused;”
since “he took me in his heart and declared me so to be his wife
before the world, and so owned by all the neighbors.” She beseeches
that the sentence of the court be annulled; so that, “we
.bn 205.png
.pn +1
may live together as husband and wife lawful and orderly,” “that
the blessing of God be upon us, and your Honor, for making
peace and reconciliation between us, may have an everlasting
reward.” Dated in “New London, May 12, 1703.”
The court takes no notice of this appeal. Mary is returned to
Block Island and the children to Mamacock. Proof will appear,
however, that she is not forgotten nor neglected. Even after her
marriage to another man, and years after this hopeless separation,
she will say nothing but good of him who first called her his wife
and acted faithfully towards her a husband’s part.
[Miss Caulkins states that, some months before this period, John
Rogers “made an almost insane attempt” to regain his former
wife Elizabeth, wife of Matthew Beckwith. This statement is
founded upon a writ against John Rogers on complaint of Matthew
Beckwith (Jan. 1702-3), accusing John Rogers of laying hands on
Elizabeth, declaring her to be his wife and that he would have
her in spite of Matthew Beckwith. The historian should ever
look below the mere face of things. For more than twenty-five
years, John Rogers has known that Elizabeth, married or unmarried,
would not return to him, pledged as he was to his chosen
cause. He is, at this particular date, not yet fully separated from
Mary, but holding himself ready to take her back, in case a
petition to the General Court should by any possibility result
favorably. This and another complaint of Matthew Beckwith—the
latter in June, 1703—to the effect that he was “afraid of his
life of John Rogers”[97] indicate some dramatic meeting between John
Rogers and “Elizabeth, daughter of Matthew Griswold,” in the
presence of Matthew Beckwith, the incidents attendant upon which
have displeased the latter and led him to resolve that John Rogers
.bn 206.png
.pn +1
shall be publicly punished for assuming to express any ownership
in his, Matthew Beckwith’s, wife.
Any meeting between John Rogers and Elizabeth Griswold
could not fail of being dramatic. What exact circumstances were
here involved is unknown; what attitude was taken by the woman,
when these two men were at the same time in her presence, it is
impossible to determine. But it is in no way derogatory to the
character of John Rogers, that in meeting this wife of his youth,
he gives striking proof of his undying affection. Ignoring her marriage
to the man before him, forgetful, for the time being, even of
Mary, blind to all save the woman he loves above all, he lays his
hand upon Elizabeth, and says she is, and shall be, his. Under
such circumstances, Matthew Beckwith takes his revenge in legal
proceedings. When summoned before the court, John Rogers defends
his right to say that Matthew Beckwith’s wife—so-called—is
still his own, knowing full well the court will fine him for contempt,
which process follows (County Court Record).]
.fn 97
This “afraid of my life” is a common expression, and was especially so formerly,
by way of emphasis. Matthew Beckwith could not have been actually afraid
of his life in regard to a man whose principles did not allow of the slightest show
of physical force in dealing with an opponent. Although the court record says
that John Rogers “used threatening words against Matthew Beckwith,” on presentation
by Matthew Beckwith’s complaint, this does not prove any intention of
physical injury.
.fn-
John Rogers is fifty-five years of age at this date, and Matthew
Beckwith sixty-six. Elizabeth is about fifty.
In this year, a fine of 10s. is imposed upon Samuel Beebe (Seventh
Day Baptist) for ploughing on the first day of the week
(County Court Record). Without doubt the Rogerenes (Seventh
Day Baptists also) have done the same thing. At this period John
Rogers may do whatever he pleases of this sort on the first day of
the week.[98] Nearly four years of imprisonment in Hartford jail,
the little book “sold up and down” the colony, and many a tale
narrated of his bravery and sufferings in the cause of religious
liberty, have won for him such popular sympathy that those who
aid and abet ecclesiastical rule in the state councils, are not as
yet venturing to resume stringent proceedings against the Rogerenes.
The signal failure to secure a promise of “good behavior”
from the Rogerene leader is also a prominent factor in the situation.
.fn 98
This by his statement to Mr. Bownas at this date.
.fn-
Although there is no sign that Capt. James Rogers and his wife
.bn 207.png
.pn +1
have receded from their nonconformity, their son, James, Jr.,
has married a member of the Congregational church and taken
the half-way covenant. He is prominent in the community and
has political ambitions, the attainment of which would be impossible
for one of a nonconformist persuasion. To have won this
talented young man, must be counted a signal victory by Mr.
Saltonstall. Samuel, son of Samuel, has also married a member
of the Congregational church. He is continuing the bakery on its
old scale, has landed interests in the neighboring country, and is
surveyor for the town of New London.
Samuel, son of Joseph, now of Westerly, has become a member
of the Congregational church, while his older brother James, an
enterprising young man, is of the Baptist persuasion.
James Smith, son of Bathsheba, is a close follower of his uncle
John, although his sister Elizabeth (married to William Camp) is
a member of the Congregational church, in which her children are
baptized.
During the respite from graver cares, John Rogers has enough
to busy him at Mamacock, outside of his duties as preacher
and pastor, in caring for the place (in unison with John, Jr.) and
other business interests, making shoes, writing books, and attending
to the welfare and training of his two little children, to whom
he must be both father and mother. John and Bathsheba have
a third child now. So here are five little ones in the home at
Mamacock. And there is Mary at Block Island. She came
from across the sea, and is likely to have only the one friend in
America.
In this eventful year, John Rogers visits Samuel Bownas, a
Quaker who is detained in jail at Hempstead, L. I., on a false
accusation.
Through the whole of a long conversation with the Quaker
(narrated by the latter in his Journal), he makes no reference to
Mary, the prominent figure in this period of his history. It is not
his purpose to reveal to outsiders that, although he and Mary are
separated, he has not resigned her to her fate.
.bn 208.png
.pn +1
Mr. Bownas states that John Rogers is
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“chief elder of that Society called by other people Quaker Baptists, as
imagining (though falsely) that both in their principles and doctrines they
are one with us; whereas they differed from us in these material particulars,
viz.: about the seventh day Sabbath, in use of water in baptism
to grown persons, using the ceremony of bread and wine in communion,
and also of anointing the sick with oil; nor did they admit of the light of
truth or manifestation of the Spirit but only to believers, alleging Scripture
for the whole.”
.pm end_quote
Upon this latter point, Mr. Bownas and his visitor have a long
discussion. On any subject but the Quaker doctrines, Mr. Bownas
appears not particularly interested, for which reason he does not
furnish much information in regard to the part of the conversation
relating to John Roger’s sufferings for conscience’ sake, which he
avers to have been a portion of the converse, and which would
have been more edifying to many than the doctrinal views of the
Quakers so fully expounded to John Rogers, which are presented
to the reader through this account of their conversation.
John Rogers is quoted as describing the manner in which the
young people in his Society are trained in knowledge and study of
the Scriptures,[99] and stating that women “gifted by the Spirit” are
encouraged to take part in their meetings.
Of the Rogerenes, Mr. Bownas says: “They bore a noble testimony
against fighting, swearing, vain compliments and the superstitious
observation of days.”
Although John Rogers, in this narration, is represented as fluent
in speech, he is also shown capable of preserving complete
silence, allowing a person who is presenting views exactly the opposite
of his own to go on uninterrupted, rather than present counter
views to no purpose. He is also shown ready to concede much to
the Quaker, expresses no annoyance at the other’s very positive
stand, and even admits possible mistakes on his own part.
.fn 99
This shows us that at a date long prior to the time when we shall find a sturdy
band of Rogerene youth, of Rogers and of Bolles blood, on Quaker Hill, there was
no lack of young people in training to carry forward this cause.
.fn-
.bn 209.png
.pn +1
In short, the picture given of John Rogers by the Quaker, although
less particular than could be desired, is that of a genial,
friendly man, discussing questions with great fairness, and without
excitement. When he requests Mr. Bownas, if he ever sees
Edmund Edmundson, to convey to him his sincere sorrow for
having argued against his views that night at Hartford (see Chapter
I), the natural gentleman shows plainly in the man. Possibly,
his own opinions on the subject of that discussion may have
changed.
1705.
There is still a refreshing respite from persecution, beyond the
minister’s rates and minor prosecutions carried on by the town
magistrates (of which latter there is so seldom any clear view),
and no attempt to disturb any of the meetings of the Congregational
church.
In this year, John Rogers publishes his book entitled “An
Epistle to the Church called Quakers.” This work, while heartily
assenting to many of the Quaker doctrines, is an earnest and logical
appeal to these people against the setting aside of such express
commands of Christ as the ceremony of Baptism and the Lord’s
Supper. In this same year he issues “The Midnight Cry” from
the same press (William Bradford, New York).
At this time, as for some five years previous, a youth by the
name of Peter Pratt is a frequent inmate of the family at Mamacock.
This is none other than the son of Elizabeth Griswold by
her second husband. Elizabeth could not keep her son John from
fellowship with his father, and it appears that she cannot keep
from the same fellowship her son by Peter Pratt. This is not
wholly explainable by the fact that Peter admires and is fond of his
half-brother, John (see #Part I., Chapter IV.:ch_1_4#). Were not the senior
master at Mamacock genial and hospitable, Peter Pratt’s freedom
at this house could not be of the character described (by himself),
neither would he be likely (as is, by his own account, afterwards
the case) to espouse the cause of John Rogers, Sr., so heartily as
.bn 210.png
.pn +1
to receive baptism at his hands, and go so far in that following as
to be imprisoned with other Rogerenes.
According to his own statement, this young man was present at
the County Court in 1699, when John Rogers appeared there with
Mary Ransford and took her for his wife. He seems at that time
to have been studying law in New London, and making Mamacock
his headquarters. He had every opportunity to know and
judge regarding John Rogers at that exact period. To this young
man must also have been known the particulars which led to the
complaint of Matthew Beckwith, his step-father, concerning John
Rogers.[100] Had Peter Pratt disapproved of either of these occurrences
it would have prevented his affiliation with this man. Evidently,
nothing known or heard by him concerning John Rogers,
Sr., has availed to diminish his respect for him or prevent a
readiness to listen to his teachings. (He admits that at this period
he “knew no reason why John Rogers was not a good man.”)[101]
.fn 100
He makes no mention of this occurrence in his book.
.fn-
.fn 101
“Prey Taken from the Strong.”
.fn-
We have seen proof, by statement of Mr. Bownas, that in 1703
John Rogers was still a faithful observer of the Seventh Day Sabbath.
But in the Introduction to his Epistle to the Seventh Day
Baptists, written, according to date of publication, about 1705, he
states that by continual study of the New Testament, he has become
convinced that Christ Himself is the Sabbath of His church,
having nailed to His cross all the former ordinances (Col. xi, 14),
that, therefore, adherence to the Jewish Sabbath, or any so-called
sacred day, is out of keeping with the new dispensation. “Let
no man, therefore, judge you in meat or drink, or in respect of an
holy-day, or of the new moon, or of the Sabbath.”—(Col. xi, 16.)
He also states that as soon as he came to this conclusion he gave
up the Seventh Day Sabbath and wrote this Epistle to his former
brethren of that church.
After the above conclusion on the part of John Rogers and his
Society, the Rogerenes begin to hold their meetings on the first
day of the week, in conformity with the common custom. Yet,
.bn 211.png
.pn +1
much as they might enjoy making this a day of entire rest, were
there not an “idolatrous” law declaring that sacred which was not
so declared in the Scriptures, they still consider it their duty to
bear sufficient witness against the assumption of its sanctity.
While the Rogerenes were preaching New Testament doctrines
antagonistic to the state church, on Saturday, when the rest of the
world were busy with secular affairs, not many outsiders would be
likely to attend their meetings; but now that these doctrines are
preached and taught on Sunday, in public meetings of the Rogerenes,[102]
many more are likely to attend these services, and so become
interested in this departure, despite the fine that might be risked
by such attendance.
Yet there are no indications that any new measures have been
adopted, on account of this change on the part of the Rogerenes.
They are at least ceasing labor for that portion of the day devoted
to religious services, which may possibly appear a hopeful indication,
to the view of the ecclesiastical party. At all events, by the
silence of the court records and the testimony of John Bolles, the
Rogerenes are not now being persecuted as formerly, and we shall
find these peaceful conditions existing for some years to come.
.fn 102
Their services for preaching and expounding were always public; their (evening)
meetings for prayer and praise were for believers, after the manner of the
early church.
.fn-
.bn 212.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_7'
CHAPTER VII.
.sp 4
.h4
1707.
.sp 2
June 4, of this year, a complaint is made by Samuel Beebe
against John Rogers, as executor of his father’s estate, for detaining
from Samuel Beebe three cows, which, by the codicil of the
will, were to be given to his wife Elizabeth after the death of her
mother. The cows are evidently given up to him, since nothing
further concerning them appears on the court records.
The peculiarity about this complaint is that, while claiming what
is given to his wife under the codicil, he is still (as will be seen)
firmly adhering to the irregular proceeding of the widow in 1692,
which ignores the codicil to the extent of attempting a distribution
of the movables—and also a portion of the residue of land—in
a manner entirely different from that directed by the testator in
this codicil.
The determination of Samuel Beebe to, if possible, prevent the
executor from carrying out the full intent of the testator is sufficient
to account not only for the detention of the cows, but for the
much longer delay made by the executors, John and Bathsheba, in
attempting to make the final division indicated by the codicil, a
preliminary to which division would be their taking for themselves
all of the household goods.[103]
.fn 103
“Things about the house John and Bathsheba must take them first before the
others be divided.”—Codicil.
.fn-
No complaint against the Rogerenes has appeared on the court
records during the nine years previous to this date. While this
does not imply entire cessation of hostilities on the part of the town
authorities, it shows that none of these have been of such a character
as to call forth the countermove, which is punishable by the
County Court.
John Rogers has recently attracted to his following one of the
.bn 213.png
.pn +1
most intelligent and upright men in the community, who has been
a member of the Congregational church. This is John Bolles, a
young, married man, only son of Mr. Thomas Bolles, one of the
wealthiest and most exemplary of the early settlers of this place,
himself oldest son of Joseph Bolles (of an ancient family of the
English gentry—Nottinghamshire), who emigrated to Maine previous
to 1640, and by the death of his two elder brothers became
heir to the family estates in England.[104]
.fn 104
The pedigree of John Bolles in the male line is traceable to time of the
Conqueror. The name is on the Roll of Battle Abbey.
.fn-
Mr. Thomas Bolles settled in New London at the earnest solicitation
of Governor Winthrop.[105]
.fn 105
The Thomas Bolles place is now the Lyman Allyn farm on the Norwich road.
Just south of the Allyn house is the site of an old well. By this well stood the house
of Thomas Bolles, where occurred the murder of his wife and two children, leaving
only the babe, John. (For particulars, see “Bolles Genealogy.”)
.fn-
The wife of John Bolles is daughter of Mr. John Edgecomb, another
prominent planter of New London, also of gentle blood of
Old England. (Edgecombs of Mount Edgecomb.)
As his father’s sole heir and by right of his wife in her father’s
estate, as well as through his own prudence and enterprise, this
young man is destined to be one of the richest men in New London.
On account of a remarkable escape from death while an infant
in arms, John Bolles was led, while still a youth, to pledge himself
to the service of God. Now, after careful examination into the
doctrines of John Rogers, he devotes himself, in obedience to his
youthful pledge, reverently and enthusiastically to that cause. (See
#Part I., Chapter VI.:ch_1_6#)
The home farm of John Bolles is half a mile south of that of
John Rogers, on the same (Norwich) road, on a height of land
known as Foxen’s Hill (later Bolles Hill), directly overlooking the
town of New London, with a further view of Long Island Sound.[106]
He has lived for years in the near neighborhood of John Rogers,
and has been one of his personal acquaintances and friends. If
.bn 214.png
.pn +1
this extremely conscientious young man knew of any cause to distrust
the character of this reformer, even in the days when most
maligned on account of his independent marriage to Mary Ransford,
he would not (in this year) have been baptized by him and
entered upon the unpopular and perilous career of one of his followers.
.fn 106
His house stood just south of present house of Mr. Calvert. His father’s home
farm was about one-fourth of a mile south of this point.
.fn-
John Bolles states in his “True Liberty of Conscience” that
although the Rogerenes had not been molested of late, yet directly
after his leaving the Congregational church for that of the Rogerenes
(1707) serious persecutions were reinstituted, directed against
the performance of labor upon the first day of the week.[107] Evidently
something must be done, to prevent an influence that can still
reach within the precincts of the Congregational church, to draw
forth to this heretical following some of its brightest and its best.
.fn 107
John Bolles further says in regard to the persecution he suffered upon joining
the Rogerenes: “God gave me such a cheerful spirit in this warfare, that when I
had not the knowledge that the grand-jury man saw me at work on said day, I
would inform against myself before witness, till they gave out and let me plow and
cart and do whatsoever I have occasion on that day.”
Here will be recognized an imitation of the early policy of the Rogerenes in time
of persecution, a policy likely to have been recommended to all their followers;
viz.: to give their opponents so much more trouble when molesting them than when
letting them alone that the institution of a season of severe measures will be the less
liable to occur. This is the policy recognizable in the countermove, so sure to take
place in time of severe persecution.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1708.
.sp 1
In this year Mr. Saltonstall, so popular among the clergy and
other leading men of Connecticut, as a staunch and able advocate
of Congregational church supremacy, is elected governor, and
is succeeded in the ministry at New London by Rev. Eliphalet
Adams.
Dissenters of several kinds are now so numerous that it is impossible
to disregard their combined outcry against ecclesiastical
tyranny. Accordingly, in this year we find the General Court enacting
a law allowing those “who soberly dissent” to worship in
their own way, “without any let, hindrance or molestation whatever,”
.bn 215.png
.pn +1
provided it be well understood that none are excused from
paying their full share towards the maintenance of the Congregational
and Presbyterian ministry, and that those who desire the
liberty of worshipping in other than the Congregational or Presbyterian
way, shall “qualify themselves at the County Court, according
to an Act, made in the first year of the late King William
and Mary, granting liberty of worshipping God in a way separate
from that by law established.”
The Rogerenes do not derive any benefit from this law; John
Rogers and his followers being resolved never to countenance, by
their obedience, any civil law whatever which dictates in regard
to the worship of God.[108] Baptists, Episcopalians and Seventh
Day Baptists build meeting-houses,[109] qualify themselves under this
law and hold their services in peace; but meetings of the Rogerenes
are still held without legal sanction and so without legal protection.
.fn 108
It will be seen that as late as 1716 (see Chapter IX.), so prominent a Rogerene
as John Bolles was even declared to be “ignorant of this law.” That he ignored
it, with all other ecclesiastical laws, is more likely to have been the case.
.fn-
.fn 109
A Baptist church springs up at Groton and one on the Great Neck. The
Baptist edifice on the Great Neck (“Pepper Box”) is used in an admirably liberal
and pacific manner by both the regular Baptists and the Seventh Day Baptists.
The leading members of these two friendly societies are largely of Rogers descent;—descendants
of Captain James and of Joseph being of the first-day persuasion,
and those of Jonathan of the seventh day, as a rule. Since the history of these
societies on the Great Neck has been given by Miss Caulkins more largely than
would be possible in this work, the reader is referred to the “History of New
London” for particulars regarding them.
.fn-
In this year, the Saybrook Platform, conceived by Mr. Saltonstall
and his ecclesiastic friends, becomes a law. By this device,
church and state are firmly welded together. Although certain
dissenters may secure leave to worship in their own way in their
own churches (provided they will pay for both their own and
the Congregational ministry), the indifferent or irreligious masses
are still subject to the dominant church, as regards compulsory
Congregational church attendance and money tribute. All yield
except the Rogerenes, who heroically go their way, regardless of
.bn 216.png
.pn +1
menace or punishment. They see their cattle and other property
sold at outcrys to satisfy extortion, yet hold their peace, unless
some action threatening the continuance of their following of New
Testament teachings necessitates an extraordinary show of nonconformity,
by way of unusual Sunday labor, or perhaps even
brings out the countermove, that last but most efficient means of
defense.
1709.
In this year, James Rogers, Jr., is admitted to the bar, and soon
becomes a prominent lawyer of this vicinity.
An attempt is made at this time to stop the preaching and proselyting
of John Rogers. Among his followers at this period is
Peter Pratt, son of Elizabeth Griswold (see Chapter VI.). This
young man now experiences the great necessity for courage and
endurance on the part of anyone who would faithfully adhere to
Rogerene principles; since he is imprisoned with other Rogerenes.[110]
.fn 110
For what cause or by what pretense this imprisonment occurs does not appear.
It is revealed by a statement made by Peter Pratt himself. (“Prey Taken from
the Strong.”) In referring to his being imprisoned with other Rogerenes, he speaks
of his wife as a bride at that time. He was married in 1709.
.fn-
Judging from past indications, the fact of their having gained
a new convert from a prominent family of the Congregational
persuasion is at any time a sufficient cause for the institution of
severer measures against this sect.
But other annoyances are now at hand for John Rogers. There
is the still unsettled residue of the estate, so difficult of adjustment
on account of the claims of Samuel Beebe, (under the widow’s
“deed” of 1692. See Chapter III.), which will be put forward as
soon as any move is made by the executor to divide the residue of
the estate according to the codicil. These claims include certain
young slaves, coming under the head of “moveables” belonging
to the estate of James Rogers, of which movables, by the widow’s
deed, one-half was to be given, after her decease, to her daughter
Elizabeth Beebe, and one-half to her son Jonathan.
During his executorship, John Rogers has freed a number of his
.bn 217.png
.pn +1
father’s slaves. Two of these slaves (called “servants”) are mentioned
in the inventory of the estate, in 1688, where it is stated
that they are to be free in three years. The bond-children owned
by James Rogers, as yet of no value, were not mentioned in the will
or inventory, but they appear to have been classed with that residue
of the estate (“moveables”) which, by the terms of the codicil,
was to be divided between John, Bathsheba and James.
[There are indications that not only had John Rogers come to
regard the keeping of slaves in life bondage as contrary to the
teachings of the New Testament, in the line of the Golden Rule;
but that his father had come to the same conclusion, and had
made plans for freeing all his slaves. His charge to his children—John,
Bathsheba and James—in the codicil to his will, to “remember
Adam,” one of his two able-bodied negro slaves, appears
to have been understood by them as referring equally to the
children of this slave; since one of the young slaves freed by the
executor is proven—by “Hempstead Diary”—to be Adam, son
of this Adam (each being called “Adam Rogers”). It is probable
that others of the young slaves were Adam’s children, while some
of them were children of the negro woman, Hager, who, as stated
in inventory, was to be freed in three years.]
By various documents on record, it is evident that the administration
of the estate by John has gone on in a very methodical manner
and strictly according to the tenor of the will. The order of
the committee (1693) was that, after the death of the widow, the
remainder of the estate should be “disposed of according to the
terms of the will,” of which the codicil was the part that referred
to this residue. The codicil, however, does not contain explicit
directions regarding the movable estate, but simply says that John
and Bathsheba are to “take” the things about the house, “before
the others be divided,” and that—after the cows have been
given to Elizabeth—the remainder of the movable estate “whatsoever”
be divided by John, Bathsheba and James among themselves.
The residue of land legacies is clearly defined. The
whole estate having been placed under the executorship of John
.bn 218.png
.pn +1
and Bathsheba, presumes their continuance in that office until
the final settlement. This is evidently the expectation of the
court and of those concerned, as they continue to be called
executors.
No fault has hitherto been found with the executorship, save in
the demand of Samuel Beebe for the cows. Yet the executor is
well aware of the irregular claims pending, and by his father’s
request will be held from making appeal to the court against any
unjust action which Samuel Beebe may take in this matter.
At this crisis, Captain James comes to the rescue, evidently by
aid and advice of his son James, the young lawyer. A method is
devised by which the irregular claims may be thwarted and, at the
same time, the testator’s request in regard to legal proceedings on
the part of any of his children be respected.
The first indication of the above intention is found in June of
this year, when Captain James makes over to his son James all
interest which he himself has in “all the moveable estate” left by
his father.
The next step is for James, Jr., to enter complaint (July 13) at
the Probate Court that the settlement of the residue (“moveables”)
of his grandfather’s estate—after the death of the widow—has
not been attended to by “the formality of the law.” Being himself
interested in the estate, he desires that “such methods may be
taken as the law directs.” The court, upon consideration of this
enigma, finds that the estate was to be settled not by legal form,
but by agreement among the children to John’s executorship, as
approved by the General Court. The Probate Court, therefore,
declines to meddle in the matter.
James, Jr., now enters complaint, at the Superior Court, that
John Rogers and Bathsheba Fox, administrators on the estate of
James Rogers,
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“have not administered thereon according to the order of the law, and
have not ever yet made and exhibited in the Court of Probates, and recorded
there, any inventory of said estate; but dispose thereof at their
own will and pleasure without giving account.”
.pm end_quote
.bn 219.png
.pn +1
The manner of administration of John and Bathsheba regarding
the movables and lack of exhibition of any inventory of same
to the court, have been in entire accordance with the direction of
the testator. Moreover, had James Rogers, Jr., held to the mode
of division directed in the codicil, his share would be much larger
than by the method now being sought. An ulterior motive is
evident from the start. The court undoubtedly understands the
full meaning of this outwardly peculiar procedure on the part of
James, Jr.
The Superior Court directs the Probate Court to issue a writ
summoning John and Bathsheba to render an inventory, etc.,
“according to law,” and if they do not appear, then the Court of
Probate shall grant letters of administration to James, Jr., “or
some other person,” “to the end that a just division be made.”
John and Bathsheba not complying with a demand so contrary
to the directions given them by their father, James, Jr., is appointed
executor, to complete the settlement, viz.: the division of
the movable estate. He now presents an inventory, which inventory
is dated as having been taken in 1788; just after the
death of James Rogers. The movables, of which he claims that
John Rogers should render an account, figure at £100 value. Although
the original inventory presented mentions an Indian and
his negro wife and a mulatto man, each having about three years
to serve, also a negro woman “deaf and dumb,” no mention is
made of these or of any other slaves by the new executor, and no
complaint is made regarding the fact that they and their children
have been freed by the former executor.
While this is going on, John and Bathsheba appear in court in
regard to Hager, a former slave of John Rogers (the negro wife
mentioned in the inventory), who has lost the written discharge
from bondage that was given to her years before by the executors.
John and Bathsheba testify that, shortly before his decease, their
father agreed with William Wright to sell him his negro slave,
Hager, for a certain term of service on the part of William Wright,
and at the time of this agreement gave her to him for his wife,
.bn 220.png
.pn +1
providing for the couple “a wedding dinner.” They also say that
long before this agreement with William Wright, their father and
mother had promised Hager her freedom at the age of thirty-six
years.
“William Wright having been banished before his term of
service had expired, we, being intrusted by our deceased father
with his whole estate, seeing the support of the woman and her
children was more than her service, gave her a written discharge,
upon condition she should support her younger children” (her
eldest son to be free at the age of twenty-one), “which said writing
she hath lost.” She is herewith again discharged, with all her
children except the above, “by these presents.”
The next move by James, Jr., is to attach property belonging
to the late executor to the amount of the value of the aforesaid
“moveables.” Thus, with no appeal to court on the part of any
of the children of James Rogers, and with no breach of trust on
the part of John and Bathsheba, the residue of the estate passes
fully into the hands of the new executor, and is clearly minus any
of the “negroes” which the irregular claimants were prepared to
demand.
By this time, Samuel Beebe sees that the young lawyer contemplates
nothing short of preventing every irregular claim which he
may venture to make. Samuel Beebe is no more in need of servants,
lands or goods than are the other heirs, having a good estate
from his own father and another by gifts to his wife from her father.
He is now living at Plumb Island, and in so showy a way that he
is called “King Beebe.”—(Caulkins.) It is apparently, on his
part, a game played mainly for the zest of it; as Samuel Beebe
might sail a boat of his own against one of Captain James or that
at Mamacock. But alas! a young wife and mother is to become
a victim of this game.
For about four years now, a young negro woman named Joan,
who was born of a slave of James Rogers, Sr., has been the wife
of a free colored man named John Jackson, a servant of John
Rogers, living in a house on the Mamacock farm. Joan has, by
.bn 221.png
.pn +1
Jackson, one child, a son, about two years old, and is expecting
another. While yet a child, Joan was given by the widow of James
Rogers to Elizabeth Beebe, in payment of the legacy of £10, which
latter was to be paid to said Elizabeth Beebe (according to the
terms of the will), by said widow, “with consent of my son John.”
Said executor not seeing fit to transfer Joan to a man who kept
slaves in life bondage, and not doubting that the arrangements
for settlement of the estate according to the will and codicil would
fully sustain him in not allowing this claim of Samuel Beebe by
the unwarranted and unsanctioned act of his mother, freed Joan
in due course of time, as he did the rest of the young slaves.
.sp 2
.h4
1710.
.sp
About October 1, 1710, Samuel Beebe, in some manner not indicated
by the court records, succeeds in securing Joan Jackson
and her boy and detaining them at Plumb Island.
Unfortunately, and apparently very carelessly (as shown in Chapter
IV.), the committee, in their decision of 1693, instead of using
the wording of the will in regard to the payment of the £10 by the
widow, viz.: “with consent of my son John,” rendered it that the
£10 be paid to Elizabeth “by John and Bathsheba, when the widow
so order.”
September 19, 1710, James, Jr., enters complaint at the County
Court that Samuel Beebe is illegally detaining from him, present
executor of his grandfather’s estate, a negro woman, named Joan,
who was the property of James Rogers at the time of his death.
The defendant claims that the woman was part of the legacy of
£10 given his wife.
The court decides in favor of Samuel Beebe, its decision being
grounded on the blunder of the committee of division, in 1693.
James, Jr., appeals to the Superior Court. The latter court decides
that if the settlement of the committee in 1693, in accordance
with the terms of the will,
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“were in point of law a sufficient conveyance of the negro woman to
Eliz. Beebe, without John Roger’s consent to said conveyance by his
.bn 222.png
.pn +1
mother, then the jury find the case for Samuel Beebe; but if the consent
of John Rogers was, in point of law, under said settlement by said
committee, necessary to such a conveyance, then they find the woman
for John Rogers.”
.pm end_quote
This calls for the decision of Judge Gurdon Saltonstall, the archenemy
of John Rogers, who, naturally, ignores the blunder of the
committee and adjudges Joan and her child to Samuel Beebe, as
slaves for life.
Two months later, a second child is born to Joan, at Plumb
Island, a babe its father may neither claim nor behold. Nearly
six months more drag slowly by, in great and grave suspense.
.sp 2
.h4
1711.
.sp 1
As for Joan herself, she is not likely to settle down at once, if
ever, in meek submission to her fate. Woman-like, her first
thought would be to escape, if possible, to her husband and the kind
masters at Mamacock, being sure that if she is once upon that
shore, they will not willingly return her to Plumb Island. She
cannot be supposed to consider, in so dire a strait, the peril they
would incur by harboring a runaway slave, such as she now is, by
the decision of the Superior Court.
In the latter part of May, 1711, John Rogers, Sr., is in the vicinity
of Long Island, and also on the mainland of New York.
Southold, L.I., is a common stopping-place for boats from New
London. His friend, Mr. Thomas Young, is now of that place.
If John Rogers landed at Southold, Joan might learn of this fact
and act upon it. But by nightfall the man for whose assistance
she may have hoped is at his objective point on the mainland. She
finds conveyance of some kind, however; for, this same night, she
escapes from Plumb Island with her two children. Upon his return
to Mamacock, the next day, John Rogers finds them there
and is accused of so poor a trick as the bringing them to his own
home. He may have had in view some scheme for their escape;
but if so, his plans have been thwarted by Joan’s imprudence,
through her eagerness to reach her friends in New London.
.bn 223.png
.pn +1
At the New London County Court, June 5, Christopher Christophers,
one of the chief enemies of John Rogers, being one of the
judges, Samuel Beebe enters complaint against John Rogers and
John Jackson, “on suspicion that they stole Joan and her two children
out of his house the night of May 29th last.” The accused
men, being now before the court, plead not guilty to the charge of
taking Joan from Plumb Island; but acknowledge that, after her
arrival at Mamacock, they conveyed her into Rhode Island.
Samuel Beebe owns that the woman and her children have since
been returned to him by the governor of Rhode Island, and that
he has them now.
Upon no further evidence of theft than the fact of the presence
of Joan and her children at Mamacock and their conveyance into
Rhode Island by John Rogers and John Jackson, and having given
the accused parties but a few days to secure testimony, also without
regard to the fact that the alleged theft occurred in another
colony, or that it is a capital offense, on the law book, this court,
without a jury, adjudges John Rogers and John Jackson guilty of
stealing Joan and her children, and sentence them to pay twice the
amount of the worth of said slaves (£40) and costs of prosecution.
In case John Jackson be not able to pay his part, he shall serve
Samuel Beebe or his assignee at the rate of £5 per year until the
whole amount is cancelled. So that Samuel Beebe not only has the
negroes fast, but £40 reward for his complaint against John Rogers.
The record further states that
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“John Rogers, upon hearing the above sentence, did, in open court, declare
the said sentence to be rebellion against her Majesty, and that it
was injustice, and declared that this court are rebels against her Majesty,”
.pm end_quote
.ti 0
for which contempt, said court
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“order said Rogers to give bond of £200 for his appearance at the Superior
Court, in Oct. next, to answer for his offense and for keeping her
Majesty’s peace and being in good behavior in the meantime, and for
want of sureties, to be committed to prison until he shall be released by
due form of law.”
.pm end_quote
.bn 224.png
.pn +1
Two of the justices on this occasion are bitter enemies of John
Rogers, while the Superior Court that is to try him for contempt
has Governor Saltonstall for its judge.
Thus, of the two men not proven to have committed this offense,
one departs from the court-room to a long imprisonment, to say
nothing of an execution upon his property, and the other to four
years of slavery, under dictation of the man who has stolen his
wife and children, unless he be able to pay the large sum of £20
for his freedom.
In this dilemma, John Rogers makes an effort for justice. He
presents a Petition to the court, in which he objects to a trial in
the County Court of New London for a crime alleged to have been
committed within the jurisdiction of Long Island. He asks for a
trial in the latter jurisdiction, where he can produce evidence to
clear himself from any such charge. No attention is paid to this
Petition. (See John Roger’s account of this affair, #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#)
On no account will John Rogers go back of this charge of man-stealing,
to enter suit regarding Samuel Beebe’s seizure of this
freed woman; that would be bringing before the court something
relating to the estate of his father. Evidently, for the same reason,
he who fears not at his peril to denounce an unjust decision in any
court of the land, has made no complaint in regard to the so plainly
prejudiced award of Joan to Samuel Beebe, by the judge of the
Superior Court. Even thus can this man hold his peace, when he
will.
The next move, as revealed by the records, is the sale (June 13,
1711) of Joan and her children “for their natural life” to John
Livingston (a prominent attorney); one of the children “a boy of
three years named John,” the other “a girl of six months,” to all
of whom Samuel Beebe says he “has full right by judgment of
court, viz., for the woman and one negro she had with her when
she came” (that is, when, in some way, he secured her) “and the
youngest born since.”
Captain James Rogers appears to be as much opposed as his
.bn 225.png
.pn +1
brother John to keeping persons in lifelong bondage.[111] James, Jr.,
will take any legal action yet possible to rescue Joan and her
children.
.fn 111
In his own large inventory is no mention of any slaves.
.fn-
Among other things, outspoken dissent to certain state church
doctrines and usages will be far less prominent with John Rogers
behind the bars. Popular opinion appears to have proven unfavorable
to continued persecution on religious grounds, ever since
John, Jr., went “up and down the colony” selling that little book.
The case regarding Joan has been a fortunate happening for Governor
Saltonstall and his friends.
Although, by the sentence, the trial for contempt was to be before
the Superior Court at New Haven in October, we find it taking
place at a session of this court in New London, September 25,
in the meeting-house.[112]
.fn 112
In lieu of other suitable accommodation in New London this edifice continued
to be used, for some time, for sessions of this court.—(For John Roger’s account of
this trial, see #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#)
.fn-
John Rogers asks to be tried by a jury, choosing the one then
sitting, but Judge Saltonstall denies him trial by jury,—John
Rogers has too many friends in these parts. There must be no
means of escape for the opponent he has so often bled before, and
would fain bleed to the death. He pronounces judgment in a fine
of £20 and costs of prosecution, and a bond of £100 “for good
behavior” until the March session of the same court, with imprisonment
at prisoner’s expense,—unless he give surety for the bond,
which Gurdon Saltonstall well knows he will not do, thereby to
acknowledge that he has been “misbehaving” himself. All this
is (by the court record) because John Rogers “falsely and slanderously
declared in court that the sentence of said court against himself
and John Jackson was ‘rebellion against her Majesty.’”
They examine the deeds to find suitable land to take in execution
for this fine of £20, and discovering such land, by Upper Alewife
Cove, that was sold to “John Rogers,” they proceed to claim
it for the Colony of Connecticut. John, Jr., in vain assures them
.bn 226.png
.pn +1
that he himself bought this land, with his own money, and it is
also in vain that he presents the original deed, in the copying of
which, upon the town records, the clerk omitted the word Jr. Nor
will his father’s after affirmation in court that he himself made out
this deed, and wrote the Jr. therein, secure its release. Moreover,
as John Rogers himself declares (#Part I., Chapter VI.:ch_1_6#), they kept
the original deed presented in proof, and, after John, Jr., had paid
them their price for the redemption of this land, viz., £20—as
proven by court record—they took this very land again for another
fine of £20.[113] Here are indications of the bitterest venom on the
part of those in power, at this period, yet no complaint on the records
regarding “servile labor, etc.,” or baptisms, or “blasphemy,”
or any other nonconformity.
By these signs it may be judged that never was the influence of
John Rogers more feared than at this very period, yet never also
were the authorities more cautious regarding complaints and actions
against him on avowedly ecclesiastical grounds.
.fn 113
Why seizures at this time are confined to this piece of land, can only be conjectured.
At this date, the Mamacock land still lay under the attachment of the
new executor, James, Jr., and so was safe from this sort of seizure. The attachment
by James, Jr., was evidently a mere blind, and it served a double purpose.
.fn-
.bn 227.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_8'
CHAPTER VIII.
.sp 2
.h4
1711.
.sp 1
We left John Rogers on his way back to prison, there to remain
until the March term of the Superior Court, because he would not
promise “good behavior” (“as if I had misbehaved myself.”
#Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#).
Against tyranny in high places, there is ever at hand the one
highest appeal, that to the public at large, where is always in reserve
a good measure of sympathy and sense of justice. Not only
is our hero stirred through and through by this personal and
ecclesiastical thrust, under guise of righteous administration of
law, on the part of an official who has for so many years occupied
the position of a reverend preacher of the gospel of Jesus Christ;
but he knows well of this last appeal, which has heretofore stood
him in good stead against the bitter edicts of these half—if not
wholly—ecclesiastical courts. Though as yet there are no newspapers,
there are eyes to see, ears to hear, and tongues to carry fast
and far.
What recks this Samson of their paltry “goal”? Somehow,
without show of physical force (the least sign of which would
surely have been entered on the court record), he makes the sheriff
quail. The lightning in his eyes, perchance, the deep tones
of a voice that never breathes an oath, even to swear by in
a court; uttering ominous words to some such effect as that he
“will seal his quarrel with his blood.” Should he attempt escape
from the sheriff his death could be accomplished, then and
there.
The sheriff returns to the court-room (meeting-house) and reports
to the court that John Rogers is conducting himself in a
“furious” manner, “threatening that the jail shall not hold him
and that he will seal his quarrel with his blood”; the sheriff “fears
.bn 228.png
.pn +1
he will break out of jail and do mischief to some of her Majesty’s
subjects.” What subject but himself, through punishment which
can be inflicted upon him for breaking away from an officer,
which is a capital crime on the law book.
The quickly forthcoming order of the court (Judge Saltonstall)
that John Rogers shall be placed in irons at need, “for preventing
mischief,” is but the beginning of the plot now in contemplation.
By further order of the judge and governor (one and the same)
John Rogers is to be conducted from the ordinary prison to the
“inner” prison.[114] The latter is not yet finished, and is half a mile
from the house of the jailer. It has as yet no underpinning, but
stands above the ground on blocks. The green planks of which
the floor was made are much shrunken, leaving large cracks for
the entrance of the wind, and there is “an open window towards
the northwest.” There is no fireplace, nor any means for making
a fire; moreover, by the orders, no fire is to be allowed this prisoner.[114]
It is October and unusually cold and stormy for this time
of year.
.fn 114
For John Roger’s description of this prison and his imprisonment, see #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#
.fn-
How does John Rogers, Jr., manage to communicate with his
father in this place? He must scale the high fence surrounding
the prison yard, to make his way to the “open window” of the
prison, whose grates will not admit the passage of any fuel, even
if a place could be found within in which to make a fire. This
son comes, under cover of the darkness, to give such aid and comfort
as he may, and especially in the cold nights, which indicates
that he contrives to furnish some slight means of warmth.
Until November 16 of this unusually inclement season, John
Rogers, at the age of sixty-three, is a solitary prisoner in this inner
prison, with such apology for a fire as his son can provide, by
coming two miles after dark to the prison window.
Governor Saltonstall, sitting beside his beaming hearth, already
furnished with its huge back-log, gives no pitiful thought to the
.bn 229.png
.pn +1
man whom he has denied an honest trial, and now forbids so
much as a fire to keep him from death’s door.
On the bitter cold night of November 16, John, Jr., coming the
long two miles over the rough Mohegan road, and making his way,
by scaling the prison fence, to the grated, open window, finds his
father incapable of the usual intelligent response. Over the fence
again he hurries, and out into the streets of the sleeping town,
calling loudly at the sheriff’s house: “You have murdered my
father in prison to-night!!!” “The Authority has murdered my
father!!!” (County Court Record.) Not only are the sheriff, his
instigators and their sympathizers aroused by this loud and ringing
cry of alarm in the dead of night, but also some of the many
who are friendly to the prisoner. These latter spring with alacrity
from their beds, at the news that John Rogers is dead, or dying,
on this wild night, in the distant and fireless inner prison, through
which the bitter winds are whistling.
Mr. Adams, the minister, a man of a kind heart, despite ecclesiastical
fidelity, cannot turn a deaf ear to this report concerning
the imprisoned dissenter. He and his wife show their humanity
by sending a bottle of wine and a bottle of cordial to the sufferer.
At the popular demand, the captive, almost senseless with cold
and the malady resulting therefrom, is conveyed to the warm
house of the sheriff,[115] where he at length revives.
.fn 115
This house is a tavern, and has in it the ordinary prison. It is near the Mill
Cove.
.fn-
John Rogers, Jr., is brought before the County Court in New
London a fortnight later, on charge of making a disturbance in
the night, and fined £3. He is granted a review at the court to
be held in June, and required to give bonds for “good behavior,”
until his trial before the said court shall occur. Refusing to acknowledge,
by giving the required bond, that he has done anything
wrong, he is consigned to jail until session of the June court.
At this same November court, we find several other cases relating
to this history. Samuel Beebe again demands of Capt. James
Rogers the land made over to himself by the irregular “deed” of
.bn 230.png
.pn +1
the widow. He and John Keeney and wife (formerly wife of Jonathan
Rogers) make claim to all the “moveables” by the same
document. These cases go against the plaintiffs. Samuel Beebe
appeals to the Superior Court.
At this court, also, James, Jr., makes another effort for poor
Joan. The case having already been settled on one presentment,
he bases his complaint upon different grounds. He says that, in
the preceding June, Samuel Beebe brought a suit against John
and Bathsheba, previous administrators, for possession of Joan,
on plea that she was given to Elizabeth Beebe by the widow as
part payment of the legacy of £10; but that for Samuel Beebe to
make claim of John and Bathsheba at that date—he himself
being at said date executor of the estate in place of John Rogers—or
for John and Bathsheba to appear on a court summons to answer
such complaint of Samuel Beebe was irregular procedure.
He states that, at the time Samuel Beebe declares this disposal of
Joan by the widow to have been made, the latter was incapable
of managing any business, or even of taking care of herself, and
was under the guardianship of John and Bathsheba, according to
the intent of the testator; also, by order of the court, they were her
guardians and the managers of the estate; so that she had no right
to dispose of Joan, neither had any possession of her at the time.
He avers that by John and Bathsheba illegally joining a false
issue with Samuel Beebe, in not reminding the court that they
were no longer executors,[116] Joan had been adjudged to Samuel
Beebe and taken by execution. He demands Joan with damages.
It is a good case, but of course it fails. The court is not willing to
reverse its former decision. James, Jr., appeals to the Superior
Court. But it will be useless to ask the judge of that court to
alter a decision by means of which he has been able to incarcerate
his opponent. (The case is not brought before the Superior Court,
but apparently dropped as a useless endeavor.)
.fn 116
They could not so remind the court, it being contrary to the will for them to
give up their executorship, or to have anything to do with the court.
.fn-
Late in this month of November, occurs the death of Bathsheba
.bn 231.png
.pn +1
(Rogers) Fox.[117] She has been heroically faithful to the departure
instituted in 1674, only, at the last, to see this beloved brother again
in the iron clutches of ecclesiastical hatred, he who would have
been among the first to hasten to her bedside. How bitter to him,
in those last days of his devoted sister, must have been the cruel
bonds that held him at a distance, while she went down to death.
.fn 117
The esteem and affection in which Bathsheba was held by her husband, Samuel
Fox, may be estimated by the fact that he not only gave valuable lands to her sons
by Richard Smith in her lifetime, but, although he had married again, left by will,
sixteen years after her death, to her sons by the name of Smith, yet living (James
and John), £40 each, and to her three daughters by Richard Smith, £10 each.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1712.
.sp 1
Under date of March 7th of this year, we find a deed of gift[118] of
some land (adjoining Mamacock farm) from John, Sr., to John,
Jr., with the statement therein that this gift is to make up to his
son for the land that had been taken from the latter for a fine of
£20 imposed upon himself (#Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#), also for a choice
cow and a considerable number of sheep that had been taken from
his son to satisfy like claims against himself. He states that this
gift is also to stand as a testimony of his appreciation of the fact
that this son who
.pm start_quote
“was taken from me in his infancy, upon the account of my differing in
judgment, and ordered by the Authority to be brought up in their principles,
incensing him against me his own father, and thus kept from me
till he came to a young man’s estate; yet, notwithstanding, last winter
now past, hath been an instrument in the hands of God, to preserve
my life in an unfinished prison, with an open window facing towards
the northwest, I being fined and imprisoned by two several courts without
any trial of law by a jury.”
.pm end_quote
.fn 118
This deed must have been written in prison. It is recorded among New London
land deeds.
.fn-
It will be remembered that John Rogers is still in prison,
awaiting the sitting of the March session of the Superior Court
.bn 232.png
.pn +1
in New London. This now opens, March 25, at the meeting-house.
At the opening of the court, the sheriff announces that he has
kept John Rogers safely until now and has him still in custody.
The court orders the sheriff to set said prisoner at large.
Samuel Beebe fails to follow up his claim on land of Capt. James
at this court, but renews the suit regarding alleged gifts of the
widow to his wife, viz., “moveables,” including certain young
slaves belonging to the estate of James Rogers. He enters suit,
by his attorney, Colonel Livingston, against Samuel Fox (husband
of Bathsheba) for two negroes with £5 damages, and against John
Rogers, Jr., for three negroes; all five being free negroes in employ
of said persons. The verdict goes against him. John Keeney
and wife also lose a similar suit for similar alleged gifts on the part
of the widow.
On this same day, James Rogers, Jr., having presented his accounts,
etc., to the Probate Court, as executor, said court orders
distribution to be made of the residue of the estate (movables),
according to regular form of law when a person dies intestate; a
double portion to Samuel, as oldest son, the remainder to be
equally divided between the other children. This gives James
Rogers one-eighth of the movables, instead of the much larger
share accorded by the codicil. Evidently self-interest had no part
in the move made by James, Jr. Now comes the part of Samuel
Rogers in this final issue. He states to the court, “in writing,”
that he has already, and before his mother’s decease, received, by
the terms of agreement among the heirs, according to his father’s
will, all that was due[119] to him from his father’s estate, to his full
satisfaction, and absolutely quits claim to anything further. Joshua
Hempstead is ordered to make distribution.
.fn 119
This due to him was £200 secured by note, and paid to him by the executor.
.fn-
(N.B. There has now been placed before the reader the sum
and substance of all the litigation in regard to the estate of James
Rogers, upon which Miss Caulkins founded her statement regarding
“contention” among his children.)
.bn 233.png
.pn +1
The very next day,[120] March 26 (by Superior Court record),
while the court is still in session, John Rogers is taking a convert
to the Mill Cove for baptism. In doing so, he passes near the
house of the sheriff, where he has so recently been a prisoner.
Accompanying him are a number of his Society, among them John
Bolles, John Rogers, Jr., and James Smith, son of Bathsheba.
Time and again, since that notable day in 1677, has John Rogers
baptized persons in this Mill Cove, directly under the windows of
Governor Saltonstall, so to speak, whose house stands near by on
a hillside rising from the cove. Certain lands bordering this cove
remain in Rogerene ownership.
.fn 120
What follows (as far as December, 1713), is derived from statements of John
Rogers (see #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#), from records of Superior Court in New London
March 26, and from record of County Court of New London, before which court
were arraigned those who prevented the seizure of John Rogers without a warrant.
.fn-
If the sheriff and his chief have judged that the heroic treatment
of the past eleven months has cooled the ardor of the dissenters,
here is unmistakable proof to the contrary. If the sheriff can nip
this bold little act in the bud, formally or informally, he may be
sure of the governor’s co-operation and hearty commendation. On
plea of wishing to speak with John Rogers, he persuades him to
enter his house (which, as before said, contains the prison). He
then endeavors to force him to enter a door leading into the prison.
The friends of John Rogers, who have followed him into the house,
Upon seeing the latter purpose on the part of the sheriff, surround
their leader, to prevent hands being laid upon him, and others in
the tavern join them in declaring that no arrest can legally be
made without a warrant. The sheriff leaves, with the avowed
purpose of going to the court-room (meeting-house) for a “mittimus.”
Here, within this brief period of time, are two outrages
upon the law; first, an attempt to take a prisoner without a warrant;
second, to seek warrant for an arrest not authorized by law;
the only penalty concerning such baptism being a fine after the
occurrence of said baptism; imprisonment following only in event
of non-payment of the fine. Well may the victim turn and follow
the sheriff to the court-room.
.bn 234.png
.pn +1
The sheriff, being somewhat ahead, has already made out a
case, so far as the judge is concerned; nothing more having been
necessary than to state the attempted baptism. Taking into account
all that he has suffered of late from unjust and despotic
procedures on the part of the courts, John Rogers enters the court-room
(meeting-house) fully prepared to denounce this latest outrage.[121]
.fn 121
This entrance is thus described on the court records:—
.pm start_quote
“John Rogers coming into her Majesty’s Superior Court and behaving himself
in a furious, raving manner with mighty crying and tumultuous noise, and it
being certified to this court that ye said Rogers had gotten some and was endeavoring
to gather a greater number of idle, vagrant persons by a like raving management
of himself, and designed and engaged to dip them in ye water and said
that he would baptise one of them.”
When we remember that the “idle, vagrant persons” accompanying him were
no less substantial citizens than John Rogers, Jr., John Bolles and men of that
stamp, this record assumes the character of a misrepresentation throughout. Also
the contradiction in the record that John Rogers “designed to dip” an indefinite
number “in the water,” with statement that he said he would baptise “one,” is
significant. No court record regarding John Rogers but must have been penned
with careful reference to the appearance of his offense before the public, by precaution
of those in charge, who were his enemies.
.pm end_quote
.fn-
Vain against the power and determination of Governor Saltonstall
are the ringing tones in which this departure from the written
law of the land is condemned. But well has John Rogers calculated
that, in the presence of all these witnesses, the judge will not
venture to issue the illegal warrant for his arrest. The judge goes
on, however, to sign a warrant (“mittimus”). Although he dare
not arrest John Rogers because of the attempted baptism, he has
now a better excuse and more personal determination also; since
John Rogers has dared to enter the court-room to again publicly
denounce official procedures. He signs a warrant for the arrest
of John Rogers, on the charge of Madness!
Well might all the proceedings of the past year, capped by this,
make mad the sanest man, in both senses of the word. The
sheriff claims his prisoner and leads him from the court-room.
A crowd follows sheriff and prisoner to the jail. An uproar ensues
when the window of the prison is darkened by a plank, and
.bn 235.png
.pn +1
that same plank is broken down by the mob. The appeal of John
Rogers, in the court-room, for the rights of the citizen, has not been
made in vain. All praise to that English lieutenant, who goes to
the Superior Court, still in session, to ask for an adequate examination
of this prisoner, that it may be seen he is under no distraction.
The assurance is returned that the prisoner shall be brought
before the governor in the evening (when danger from the mob
may be avoided) for a private examination regarding his sanity,
by the very man who has invented this charge of lunacy! Of the
absurdity of the promised examination, the lieutenant probably
knows little or nothing; but others understand. This evening interview
will make the friends of the governor laugh in their sleeves,
while friends of John Rogers discern a new insult and injury, under
this so transparent cloak of fairness.
Even after dark, the prisoner’s convoy to the house of the governor
is beset with indignant sympathizers, who follow into the
very yard of the governor, where, after the prisoner’s entrance to
the house, they have to be dispersed.
These two men, under these circumstances, stand face to face,
behind closed doors, the one knowing as well as the other that the
only fault or distraction of which John Rogers is guilty is the old
crime of nonconformity. (Would that this remarkable scene and
conversation had been revealed for the benefit of future history.)
After this “examination,” the prisoner is returned to the sheriff,
to be taken to his “house.” With such friendly demonstrations
among the people, John Rogers cannot be confined as a common
malefactor or madman, in the prison at said “house”; he is even
allowed the freedom of the yard during the sheriff’s continued attendance
upon the court, which is sufficiently significant of the
known falsity of the charge of insanity.
Two days after, the sheriff is instructed that, after adjournment
of the court, he is to convey John Rogers to the Hartford prison
and see that he is shut up in a dark room, where a certain French
doctor will “shave his head and give him purges,” to cure him of
his madness. Such treatment, added to all the memories of past
.bn 236.png
.pn +1
wrongs, would seem enough to give the sanest man the temporary
appearance of a maniac. The more he can be made to appear
like a maniac, the more plausible will be the excuse for consigning
him to a worse than prison cell.
Had it remained for Gurdon Saltonstall to carry out this inhuman
purpose, the statement that John Rogers died in Hartford
prison, or in a madhouse, would probably have ended this man’s
history.
Some person, to whom the sheriff confided the inhuman plot,
being friendly to the prisoner, John Rogers is informed of the
doom prepared for him. He goes directly to the sheriff, to inquire
into the truth of the statement, and asks to see the warrant for
this new procedure, which the sheriff shows him. He there recognizes
the handwriting of Gurdon Saltonstall.
Few men could be readier in resources than the man in custody.
A person is quickly found to carry word, this very (Saturday)
evening, to John Rogers, Jr., at Mamacock, of the impending
peril. The hurried message quite suffices. With all possible
speed, before the night is far advanced, John, Jr., is at hand, with
a staunch boat, near by, well manned, to convey his father to Long
Island. He has also money for his use, and, finding him in need
of a suitable shirt, takes off his own and gives him. The boat was
easily moored not far from the prison, which is by the Mill Cove,
and also not far from the Thames River, into which the cove leads.
This boat, propelled by hands well skilled, pulls out from shore,
in cover of the night, and goes to brave the winds and waves of
March across Long Island Sound. John, Jr., returns to Mamacock,
with thrilling tale of this, so far, successful rescue. Many a
follower besides John Bolles anxiously awaits the tidings. Eagerly,
no doubt, they gather in the big front room at the Mamacock
“mansion house,” to talk the matter over and speculate regarding
the result, noting the weather betimes and praying for a bon voyage.
Before dawn, John Rogers is landed at Southold, and makes
his way to the tavern. It will be seen how much he conducts
.bn 237.png
.pn +1
himself either like a malefactor or a madman. While it is still
early morning, he presents himself before a justice, to inform him
of his escape from the New London sheriff, and the circumstances
of the case. A guard is placed over him until the next day (Monday),
when he is taken before the justices and the law is read to
him stating it to be felony to break out of a constable’s hands.
In return, he places before them a copy of the warrant issued by
Governor Saltonstall for his arrest on the ground of insanity. The
intelligent, self-possessed appearance of the man, as opposed to
this singular declaration of lunacy, occasions these officials no
little perplexity. They withdraw for a private conference. All
agreeing that he is a sane man, they discharge him from custody.
He now informs them of his intention of appealing to the Governor
of New York for protection, and asks them to stop, if possible,
the “Hue and Cry” that will be sent after him, which they kindly
promise to do. The remainder of this story is best told in his own
words (#Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#).
In June of this year, while the refugee is still in New York, a
session of the County Court is being held in New London. The
case of John Rogers, Jr., for the disturbance at night (November
16, 1711), by which he saved the life of his father, now comes up
for review. He desires to be tried by jury; but the present jury
is dismissed and a special jury impaneled for this case. The
fine of £3 and costs of the previous court is made to stand good
against him, and three of the best cows on Mamacock farm are
taken for this fine (see Chapter IV., last part). Although he was
sentenced to imprisonment until this court for not giving the required
bonds, we have seen him free at the time of his father’s
escape to Long Island. The bonds were doubtless given by a
friend, as frequently happens with the Rogerenes.
At this June court, John Rogers, Jr., John Bolles, and James
Smith (son of Bathsheba) are complained of for preventing the
sheriff from arresting and imprisoning John Rogers on March 26.
The charge is that these persons “opposed, resisted and abused”
the sheriff “by threatening words, pushing, hunching, and laying
.bn 238.png
.pn +1
hands on John Rogers,” as said sheriff and the constable were
apprehending him. A jury having been demanded and by good
fortune accorded, a verdict of “not guilty” is rendered, and they
are discharged. This shows the method of defence used by the
Rogerenes on this occasion. They surrounded their leader, forming
a human wall about him, and kept this position in spite of the
efforts of sheriff and constable to lay hands upon him.
Although no reply is returned to the message which the authorities
of New York have sent to the authorities at New London, in
behalf of John Rogers, this proof of friendliness on the part of
New York dignitaries towards the refugee from Connecticut, and
their evident knowledge that this refugee had been imprisoned on
false pretences, has so salutary an effect, that when, after a stay of
three months in New York, the nonconformist boldly returns to
New London, no attempt is made at reimprisonment.
This indomitable man immediately makes a move to prosecute
the judge and justices of the County Court who, in June of the
preceding year, not only tried in New London a case of “man-stealing,”
pretended to have been committed within the jurisdiction
of Long Island, but tried a case of this serious nature—even
capital upon the law book—without a jury. He must be
well aware that such protest on his part is not only likely to be
very expensive but wholly ineffectual. Back of this judge and
these justices, stands Governor Saltonstall; moreover, any blame
attaching to them would attach equally to the governor from having
so signally punished the man who had declared against the illegal
proceedings of the court at the time. Yet he makes the appeal
manfully. Those who have heard the previous circumstances will
hear also of the vain effort for justice, and this itself may help to
weaken the despotic rule of an ecclesiastical clique.
1713.
In May of this year, at the session of the General Court, the
judge and justices of the County Court appear, to answer to the
above charges; John Rogers having, by repeated efforts, secured
.bn 239.png
.pn +1
this much of attention. (See his account, #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#)
The defendants stand mainly upon objections regarding time and
form of the Petition, on the part of the plaintiff. They say there
was nothing in John Roger’s petition that showed any appearance
of maladministration, and that, had there been any ground for
his complaint, it did not come within the time limited by law.
This shifting from the main ground to technical points, with denial
of any importance to be attached to the significant charges
(lack of jury and wrong jurisdiction), call for legal knowledge and
adroit argument regarding minor points of the law, by way of
evading the question of vital importance. In short, the case is, by
legal device, taken away from the plaintiff at the start. As a show
of justice, the court offers the plaintiff legal counsel; not to decide
whether this case should have been tried where, and as, it was
tried, but mainly whether the plaintiff’s petition was within the
time specified by law. Every difficulty possible had been placed
in his way to retard the case, doubtless with this very end in view.
The plaintiff refuses to make any reply, since he can reply to nothing
but legal evasions. It being proven to the satisfaction of this
court that John Rogers has nothing to complain of, he is ordered
to pay the expenses of the judge and justices for their attendance
on the court.
This man has ever in such cases a last resort, to be used at
whatever peril. Then and there, before this assembly, he again
charges the County Court held in New London, with “felony,
rapine and injustice,” and moreover declares the daring truth that
the Governor of this Colony, here present, is an abettor of the
same. The court, having considered his offense and high misdemeanor,
resolve that he shall pay a fine of £20 to the public
treasury, and execution upon his property is to be granted by the
Secretary.
In November of this year, Capt. James Rogers passes away.
To the last, he has been a busy man on land and sea. July 1st
he returned from one of his voyages to the Barbadoes (“Hempstead
Diary”). He owned and operated a tannery and cooper’s
.bn 240.png
.pn +1
establishment at Goshen. He left a large estate, and followed his
father’s example in desiring his children to settle the same out of
court. This settlement proceeded in a perfectly orderly and harmonious
manner. Despite the fact that his sons, James and
Richard, had become connected with the Congregational church,
he and his wife evidently continued in their nonconformist faith,
as particularly proven by the remonstrance of 1695.[122]
.fn 122
That Capt. James, like his brother John, gave up the seventh-day sabbath,
adopting the first day for religious services, is indicated by the fact that those of his
children that remained Baptists were first-day Baptists. The same is true of the
family of Joseph Rogers, many of whose descendants were (and are) Baptists of
the regular persuasion.
Nothing has been found to disprove the supposition that Capt. James Rogers
and his wife and Joseph Rogers and his wife continued in the Rogerene faith to
the end. John Rogers had many followers, while the names of only a few of those
more conspicuous in leadership are revealed to us by the court records. The fact
that certain sons of Capt. James and of Joseph inclined to, and finally united
with, the Congregational church readily accounts for the less prominent stand of
their parents.
.fn-
In December of this year, occurs the death of Samuel Rogers
in his 73d year. Although this evidently superior man, by his
distaste for controversy and public proceedings, as well as by his
busy life in developing the new lands of Mohegan (whereby his
name is written all over the early books of New London land
records), has succeeded in hiding himself largely from the view
of future generations; yet when compelled to present himself to
such view, he has always been found acting the manly part.
Throughout the early period of persecution, he was plainly in
sympathy with his father and brothers, and proofs of continued
sympathy with the Rogerene cause are evident to the last. He
kept quietly but firmly aloof from the church that persecuted his
relatives, despite counter-influences in his own family. For some
twenty years of his early manhood, he conducted the bakery business
on the former large scale and handed it to his son unimpaired.
Besides the enterprises of his pioneer life, he was a shipowner
and business man at large. Although possessed of great
wealth for his time, he so managed to distribute his property in
.bn 241.png
.pn +1
his lifetime that little more than cattle and movables remained to
be disposed of after his death, which personal estate was left to
his wife Joanna, the executrix. In his will is the following clause:
“one cow and six sheep to be delivered unto John Rogers, son of
brother John Rogers, to be disposed of as I have ordered him.”
Also the executrix is to act with the advice of above said John Rogers
and Samuel Fox, “oldest son of my brother Samuel Fox” (husband
of Bathsheba). At the writing of this will, February 13, 1713,
the testator states that he is in “perfect health.”
1714.
Mary, the second wife of John Rogers, was, a number of years
since, married to Robert Jones of Block Island.[123] It is now fifteen
years since John Rogers took her for his wife and twelve years
since their enforced separation. He has recently become attached
to an estimable widow, by the name of Sarah Cole, of Oyster
Bay, L.I., a member of the Quaker Society of that locality. Although
favorable to his suit, she is yet inclined to hesitate, on
account of rumors that have been circulated in regard to his separation
from Mary. In his prompt, straightforward way, he desires
her to accompany him to Block Island, to learn from Mary
herself if she has anything to say against him. This request is so
reassuring, that the publication of their marriage intentions takes
place at New London, July 4, 1714 (“Hempstead Diary”), after
which they visit Mary at her home on Block Island. Mary gives
Mrs. Cole so favorable an account of John Rogers and the treatment
she herself received from him, that the ceremony is performed
by Justice Wright before they leave the island.
.fn 123
See John Rogers, 2d, #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#
.fn-
[There is evidence, from the court records and testimony of
Peter Pratt,[124] that this wife, Sarah, was of attractive personality,
also that she was a zealous religious co-worker with her husband,
and that they lived happily together at Mamacock, with John, Jr.,
and his family and the two children of Mary.]
.fn 124
“Prey Taken from the Strong.”
.fn-
.bn 242.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_9'
CHAPTER IX.
.sp 2
.h4
1716.
.sp 1
One of the spasmodic attempts to secure more strict enforcement
of ecclesiastical laws is instituted about this period. Edicts
have been issued by the General Court charging the various officials
to observe greater stringency in the execution of all these
laws. That this sudden and severe pull on the rein does not occasion
a general and continued uprising on the part of the Rogerenes,
is only explainable on the supposition that the first attempt
to lay hands on them anew having brought forth the countermove,
the authorities have thought best to desist from further
serious molestation. The particulars of this countermove are as
follows:—
April 22, 1716, there is an entry into the Congregational meetinghouse
by John Rogers and his wife Sarah, John Bolles and his wife
Sarah, John Culver and his wife Sarah, and several others, names
not given. The cause of the disturbance is, as usual in affairs of
this kind, studiously ignored on the court records; but evidently—as
afterwards indicated—this entry, with scriptural testimony
not revealed, was occasioned by the breaking up of Rogerene meetings
by the town authorities, with the accompanying feature, a
church-party mob. As has been seen, the Rogerene meetings, not
being among those allowed by law, can at any time be broken up
at the pleasure or caprice of the authorities, and their continued
existence has depended, not upon the willing forbearance of the
ecclesiastical rulers, nor, to any really saving extent, upon the public
sympathy enlisted in their favor; but chiefly upon that formidable
reserve power—the entrance into the meeting-house, with
scriptural testimony.
Proof of the exact date of this countermove and that the before-mentioned
.bn 243.png
.pn +1
persons were concerned in it, is contained in the
“Hempstead Diary” and a record of the General Court in the
following month (May). By the latter record, Governor Saltonstall,
referring in this assembly to the offense committed by the
said persons, states that they are now in New London jail.[125] The
governor also states that he learns, from “relatives” of the prisoners,
that they were ignorant of the provisions, under the law of
1708 (see Chapter VII.), relating to those who soberly dissent.
Probably said relatives have been far more ignorant of this law than
have any of the Rogerenes, who are naturally watching all ecclesiastical
regulations with lynx-like vigilance and are particularly
aware that there is no relief for their Society in this law, as allowed
in the Colony of Connecticut. The governor knows just what the
Rogerenes know in this regard. But he goes on to order that the
said prisoners be released—ostensibly on the ground of this ignorance
declared by their friends—and says, in case they behave
themselves orderly and rest contented with the liberty of worship
given them under said law, they shall not be prosecuted.
.fn 125
In fact, the wife of John Rogers was discharged the day after the occurrence.
She, being a regular Quaker, came under different laws from the Rogerenes and
appears to have been treated with some leniency. Her coming from the State of
New York and from a prominent Quaker community in that State may have had
something to do with this leniency.
.fn-
All this on the part of the governor doubtless sounds very plausible
and very indulgent, to the uninitiated. He is evidently very
glad of some excuse to release the prisoners. So much of a hornet’s
nest has been aroused, about this time, that not even the disturbance
of the Congregational meeting, less than two weeks before,
is considered sufficient ground for detaining them longer in
prison or imposing any more serious fine than payment of their
prison fees.
By the joint testimony of Peter Pratt and John Rogers, 2d, it is
shown that the governor distinctly stated before the Assembly at
this time that the Rogerenes should be allowed to worship God
according to their consciences, if they would refrain from disturbing
Congregational worship, and that he would punish any who
.bn 244.png
.pn +1
should disturb their worship.[126] Here is something tangible, as opposed
to the ambiguity of the court record; it not only indicates
that the April countermove was a direct result of interference with
Rogerene meetings, but that said countermove had been productive
of a decisive advantage. In short, interference with their
meetings had caused the countermove, the countermove had forced
the governor to himself promise them immunity from further interference
of this sort, on condition that they would not exercise
their reserve power.
.fn 126
“And first I grant that the governor did actually make this promise, viz., that,
to persuade us to forbear, if we would be quiet and worship God in our own way
according to our consciences, he would punish any of their people that should disturb
our worship,—and that it was in a Public Court before a multitude of
hearers.”—John Rogers, 2d.
We find after intimation by John, 2d, that this promise of the governor was not
kept.
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1719.
.sp 1
Three years have now passed, with no record of any disturbance
of the Congregational meetings, and of nothing, in fact, to show
how matters are progressing that concern Rogerene history, unless
it be the total lack of court notice. It is at least a season of patient
endurance and forbearance on the part of the Rogerenes, so far as
the ordinary distrainments are concerned. About this time, there
is talk of a proposed rebuilding, or enlargement, of the Congregational
meeting-house, which will occasion a new levy on the Rogerenes,
with the usual wholesale seizure of property. But something
more serious than this now occurs, the exact nature of which
is hidden from our view. The disturbing move is made by the
town authorities, under some one of the Sunday laws, and the victim
is Sarah, wife of John Bolles, her infringement of this Sunday
law being “a matter of conscience” on her part.
It must be borne in mind that under the ecclesiastical laws, to
whose unscriptural character it is the mission of this sect to bear
testimony at all hazards, punishments far beyond the letter of said
laws are frequently being inflicted upon the Rogerenes. The following
from John Bolles throws light upon this subject:—
.bn 245.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
When a poor man hath had but one milch cow for his family’s support,
it hath been taken away; or when he hath had only a small beast to kill
for his family, it hath been taken from him, to answer a fine for going
to a meeting of his own Society, or to defray the charges of a cruel whipping
for going to such a meeting, or things of this nature. Yea, twelve
or fourteen pounds worth of estate hath been taken to defray the charges
of one such cruel whipping, without making any return as the law directs.
Yea, fourscore and odd sheep have been taken from a man, being
all his flock; a team taken from the plow, with all its furniture and led
away. But I am not now giving a particular account, for it would contain
a book of a large volume to relate all that hath been taken from us,
and as unreasonable and boundless as these; besides the cruelties inflicted
on our bodies and many long imprisonments....
.pm end_quote
Here we see something of those things which never appear upon
the court records and of whose “boundless”ness we only now and
then catch a glimpse, by some side-light like this or by a Rogerene
entrance into the meeting-house, the latter effect always pointing
to some unbearable wrong as its cause. To continue with this
statement of John Bolles:—
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“and many long imprisonments, of which I shall mention one woman,
when she was condemned by a judge in a case of conscience; because
she stopped her ears and would not hearken to his sentence, as not belonging
to him to judge in such cases, but with a cheerful spirit sang praises
to God, and then turned to the judge and said that if he went on persecuting
God’s people God’s judgments would come upon him and his.”
.pm end_quote
There are among the Rogerenes many sweet singers, who sing
hymns and psalms in certain meetings of their Society. It appears
(by aid of above statement) that Sarah, wife of John Bolles, is one
of these; for, by a Superior Court record of September 22, 1719, it
is shown that Sarah Bolles is summoned from prison before that
court
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“to answer for reflecting upon the proceedings of a court held in
New London,[127] in saying to one of the judges thereof, viz.: Rich. Christophers,
.bn 246.png
.pn +1
Esq.: Now look to yourself for God’s judgments will surely come
upon you, for your unjust judgments for persecuting God’s people—Said
Sarah, being asked whether she was guilty or not guilty of the crime
for which she was committed, refused to make any plea. Whereupon
said Sarah Bolles shall suffer two month’s imprisonment” (in addition
to the four already endured) “and pay the charges of her prosecution
and stand committed till the said charge be paid, viz.: £1 19s.”
.pm end_quote
.fn 127
About four months before and evidently a town court and the one referred to
by John Bolles.
.fn-
So this heroic woman, who has ten children at home, five of
whom are under ten years of age, is returned to prison, not only
for the two months, but until she pay the charges of her prosecution,
which the court, as well as her own people, have good reason
to believe she will never pay, thus to encourage the authorities in
their unchristian persecution of the Rogerenes. John Bolles
goes on to say, regarding this woman, whose name he does not
reveal:—
.pm start_quote
Whereupon said judge condemned her to prison, where after further
determination, [viz.: above Superior Court sentence] she was required to
remain till she should pay the charge of her prosecution, so called, and
there continued six months, till God made way by moving the hearts
of the people with compassion for her deliverence, by seeing her affliction;
she being not only locked up in prison but also a high boarded
fence round the prison, locked also,[128] and the prison keeper living near
half a mile from the prison, it being an extreme cold winter, and in the
height of it she miscarried, being without any help nor could call for any,
her husband living about a mile and a half from the prison and was not
suffered to come to her; as if God suffered such things to be done to
lay conviction before all faces. But after her release she was carried
home on her bed in a cart and after some time she was, thro’ God’s goodness,
restored to health again.
.pm end_quote
.fn 128
Here is recognizable the “inner prison” described by John Rogers.
.fn-
About two weeks previous to this appearance of Sarah Bolles
before the Superior Court, there occurred a Rogerene countermove
which is directly traceable to her imprisonment. This countermove
took place September 6, after Sarah had been nearly four
.bn 247.png
.pn +1
months in prison. It must have been known to the Rogerenes,
and to the authorities as well, that she was with child, which, together
with the fact that the youngest of the ten children needing
her at home is but two years of age,[129] made this long imprisonment
in “a matter of conscience,” with the impending appearance before
the Superior Court on charge of contempt, especially aggravating.
The circumstances called for some imperative action on
the part of her friends, the more so, because no mercy could be expected
from the judge of the Superior Court.
.fn 129
This child was Joshua Bolles, grandfather of Mr. John R. Bolles.
.fn-
The persons accused of entering the meeting-house on this 6th
of September, are John Rogers and his wife, Sarah, wife of John
Culver, John Bolles, John Rogers, Jr., Andrew Davis and Esther
Culver. The records relative to this countermove are in the minutes
of the November session of the County Court in New London.
First, that on September 6, while Mr. Adams was at public prayer,
John Rogers, Sr., entered the meeting-house and interrupted the
service in a loud voice.[130] (No slightest clew is given to the words
spoken.) He pleads “not guilty” and is fined £20 and charges,
£3. The record states that, upon this (November) trial, he “behaved
himself contemptuously, coming into court in a violent
manner and raving voice, saying, ‘What have you to say to me,
etc.’ (would we might have the words in place of the ‘etc.’) and
when the indictment (not revealed) was read, he cried out That’s
a ly, and upon that part of the indictment (part not revealed) when
read he again cried out, ‘That’s a devilish ly,’ and by abusing one
of the members of the court in saying to him, upon said justice’s
affirmation, several times that’s a ly, and for several other abusive
demeanors” in the court-room (unfortunately not described), he is
sentenced to pay 20s.—he who so often for no more contempt than
this has been fined £20. (Moreover, as late as May 25, of the
following year, it is on record that “execution” for this 20s. was
.bn 248.png
.pn +1
“returned with nothing acted upon it.” In this insignificant fine
is visible the sympathy of a jury, and in the lack of “execution”
the fact that no collector is willing to collect this fine, although he
may be himself fined for the omission.) The record continues:—“John
Rogers demands a present appeal to the King’s bench.”
“Court consider that no such appeal lies.”
.fn 130
The following is from the “Hempstead Diary:”—“1719, Sept. 6, Sun. Jno.
Rogers and his crew made a disturbance—the midst of prayer time They came in
a horse cart. Committed to prison at night.”
.fn-
Sarah, wife of John Rogers, is also presented at this November
court for having come into the meeting-house, on the same occasion
(September 6), and “interrupted Mr. Adams by speaking
several words in a loud voice.” The court having considered the
evidence in this case and that said Sarah has “behaved herself
competently well before the court and also pleading ignorance of
the laws and methods of this government, and considering her also
under covert and that she has been committed to prison until this
court,” sentence her to pay a fine of 10s. and prison fees, £3.
Sarah, wife of John Culver, for same offense on same occasion,
same fine and fee. John Bolles “for breach of Sabbath” on same
day (form of breach not stated), same fine and charge as the
women. Andrew Davis, Esther Culver and John Rogers, Jr.,
same charge and fines as John Bolles.
For the two months previous to this November court, John
Rogers and his wife, Sarah Culver, John Bolles and the others have
been confined in prison. All these people know, at the date of
this November court, that Sarah Bolles has not only lost her child,
but is lying at the point of death in the “inner prison.” Well
might the leader of the Society in whose cause she has so suffered
and endured, when he at length escaped from prison and had an
opportunity to speak in public, employ such scathing words as befitted
the occasion.
(From this court scene as described by Peter Pratt,—see Chapter
XIV.,—are derived the statements that John Rogers and his followers
were accustomed to accuse dignitaries of lying.)
After all the verdicts in this case have been rendered, Sarah,
wife of John Culver, knowing so much more of this season of persecution
and the legal (and illegal) proceedings than is possible to
.bn 249.png
.pn +1
outsiders, indignantly exclaims in court: “You are an adulterous
generation and I hope God will find you out” (by Court Record),
for which the court sentences her to receive fifteen stripes on the
naked body and to pay charges for the same.
Nor is this the end of the matter. Sarah Bolles, despite all protest,
still lies at the point of death in the cold and dismal “inner
prison.” What can yet be done by this non-resistant people? They
may not, by their principles, even waylay the jailer, seize his keys,
hold him for a time in durance, and so rescue Sarah Bolles. But,
upheld by the public sympathy now enlisted, they can head a resolved
company of men and women, break down the gate of the
prison fence, and, aided by the Rogerenes within the jail, force
open the prison doors and bring out the helpless captive. This
is exactly what takes place.
Before this same November court is at an end, complaint is made
to said court by the keeper of the prison, that “John Culver, John
Culver, Jr., Bathsheba, wife of John Rogers, Jr., and Mary Rogers,
daughter of John Rogers, Sr., did, on the 26th and 27th of this Nov.”
(viz., at midnight) “stave down part of the prison yard.” A significant
ending of this record is that for this misdemeanor John
Culver and his son are to pay only 10s. and charges, and Bathsheba
and Mary to pay only the charges of their prosecution, also
that John Rogers and the others still in prison are not brought before
this court at all. All this shows the extent of public sympathy
at the time, especially in regard to those concerned in the September
countermove.
The court record does not inform us that Sarah Bolles was rescued
from the prison by this raid and carried home in a cart;
neither does it inform us that the company headed by the persons
tried for this daring deed contained others besides Rogerenes,
whose approbation was enlisted by the danger of a second murder
being committed in that prison, through cruel neglect. Only by
the public sympathy exhibited on this occasion can the facts be
accounted for that no action is taken by the court regarding the
escaped prisoner and no record of her escape made.
.bn 250.png
.pn +1
John Rogers had been returned to prison on account of non-payment
of the £23, for disturbance of meeting. John, Jr., John
Bolles and the others were in prison also for non-payment of
smaller fines, for the same offense. Thus the attack from outside
the prison lacked the usual leadership; yet that these prisoners
were concerned in the rescue, from a position within the prison, is
shown by a record of the General Court of November 30, to the
effect that, at a special meeting of the Governor and Council, of
that date, “it is ordered that the fines and penalties incurred by
John Rogers etc.” (“etc.” doubtless including the others tried
with John Rogers for the September countermove) “on account of
recent tumultuous and riotous proceedings of which said prisoners
have been guilty, be applied—upon collection of same—to the
extraordinary charge which they have occasioned the county by
said proceedings.” This “charge” evidently refers to repairs of the
prison which was broken into three days before in behalf of Sarah
Bolles. Why the Culvers and Mary and Bathsheba were brought
before the County Court (where they were so lightly fined) and
“John Rogers, Sr. etc.” dealt with by a special court can only be
conjectured. It is not unlikely that this raid upon the jail resulted
also in the rescue of Sarah Culver from the stripes. The fact that
her husband and son acted with the women indicates such a possibility.
As has been seen, the arrest of Sarah Bolles was for some so-called
“breach of Sabbath.”[131] Certainly she could not have been
ploughing or carting. Had she been spinning at the door of her
home, or had she ventured to walk some distance over the Norwich
road to visit one of her friends? In either case, this would be no
more than she had been doing ever since 1707; yet either of these
acts would have furnished legal ground for her arrest. The only
way to account for the proceedings against her is by supposition
of another of the spasmodic attempts to intimidate and repress
Rogerene leadership. That Sarah Bolles deserves the name of a
leader in this Society is evident.
.fn 131
See Appendix for “Request of John Rogers from New London Prison, November
17, 1719,” which seems to be connected with this charge against Sarah Bolles.
.fn-
.bn 251.png
.pn +1
One of the most serious grievances of the Rogerenes, since they
began to hold their services on Sunday, is that, although the Congregationalists
are allowed to go long distances to Congregational
meetings, the Rogerenes are arrested for travelling any considerable
distance to meetings of their own persuasion. From the fact
that they hold their meetings in private houses, such services are
sometimes at one house and sometimes at another, and, as they are
widely scattered (outside the nucleus at Quaker Hill), some of the
members are always liable to travel some distance.
On Sunday, December 13, two weeks after the November trial
just described, a young Rogerene, by the name of John Waterhouse,
has the audacity to appear at the door of the Congregational meeting-house,
and, “standing within the ground sill, in sermon time,”
to exclaim: “I am come to enter complaint that I am stopped on
the King’s highway.”[132] He has availed himself of the one efficient
mode of defense, the Rogerene countermove.
.fn 132
The following, from Reply of John Rogers, 2d, to Justice Backus, appears
to indicate the usual manner of this interference, although referring, in this particular
case, to the church at Norwich.—“And several times since, when we have
passed by their meeting-house along the road towards our own meeting, their constable
has prest a considerable number of men out of their meeting house, who
with horses have followed hard after us with ungoverned zeal, and have stopped us
and made prisoners of us for the sake of our religion.”
.fn-
.sp 2
.h4
1720.
.sp 1
The proof of this courageous stand of John Waterhouse, while
the leading Rogerenes are in prison, is from records of the County
Court, June, 1720. By these records it is also shown that some
three months after the above offense (and apparently while out on
bail, pending trial in June) this same young man “blew a horn or
shell near the meeting-house, while the congregation were singing,”
and, refusing to give bond for appearance at the County Court in
June, “with good behavior in meantime,” is arrested and imprisoned.
At this same June court, the offender is brought from prison,
and being charged with the first offense, of December 13, refuses
.bn 252.png
.pn +1
to reply to the question “guilty or not guilty.”[133] The court now
proceeds to give judgment, “on a nihil dicit,” of £20 fine, with
charges of prosecution, and if he do not immediately pay or give
surety he “shall be let out,” until the same is paid. The same
judgment, upon a nihil dicit, is pronounced in regard to the blowing
of the horn, viz.: fine of £20, which if not paid he is to be let
out, etc.
.fn 133
It was the Rogerene custom when arraigned for countermove offenses, either
to make no reply to this court query or to reply “not guilty,” in the sense of having
done nothing wrong. We occasionally find John Bolles replying that he will
“be judged by God and not by man.”
.fn-
Yet this very act of blowing a horn on Sunday near a meeting-house,
in time of service, is among the offenses enumerated upon
the law book as finable by only 40s., which is all the young man
had reason to expect. Here are more than £40 for this young
man to pay, or go to common servitude for a long period.
Nor is this all that is charged against John Waterhouse at this
June court. He is examined on suspicion of being concerned in
a most astonishing performance, in the month previous (May 4),
viz.: the “opening and carrying away of the doors of the prison” to
which the clarion blast had consigned him, and in which he had
been confined something over a month. At date of this June
court, said doors have “not yet been found.” It is also stated
that, during this imprisonment, he had made his escape from the
prison several times—and, of course, he had escaped again at the
time of the opening of the doors. He pleads “not guilty” regarding
the doors, probably, as do other Rogerenes in such cases, admitting
no guilt in doing that which they consider right, however
contrary it may be to the law. Fortunately for the romance, he
does not satisfy the court that he had no hand in said damage and
disappearance. The jailer is to recover from him the value of the
prison doors “as they were, with the locks on them,” which is £5.
With charge of prosecution and another fine of £20 for this offense,
added to his previous fines, more than £70 are required of this
young man at this June court. £70 represents a snug little fortune
.bn 253.png
.pn +1
(at this date), enough to buy a good farm “with mansion house
thereon.” This is the more preparing him for life-long opposition
to ecclesiastical government, an opposition which is to be transmitted
undiminished to his descendants. (For this young man is
to be the founder of the Quakertown community, that “remnant”
which, in the words of Rev. Abel McEwen, “exists in a neighboring
town.”)
Since John Waterhouse is to be so potent a factor in Rogerene
history, let us scrutinize him as closely as the scanty glimpses permit.
Is he not some young scapegrace, allied to the Rogerenes
for love of their so venturesome and exciting life? So he might be
judged, but for the preamble of one old deed of gift on the New
London records, despite the fact that he is a son of Jacob Waterhouse
and grandson of Mr. Robert Douglass,[134] two of the most substantial
citizens of New London and members of the Congregational
church. Jacob Waterhouse, in 1717, singled out this son
John to receive, by deed of gift, the family homestead, “my father’s
habitation,[135] near the mill bridge,” as well as a valuable tract of
land at “Foxen’s Hill” on the river; not because he was his oldest
son, but “for love and appreciation of his dutiful behavior.” It is,
then, the dutiful son of a wealthy and honorable citizen of New
London who was arraigned as above at the June court in 1720.
Surely it would not be wise to omit visiting upon this renegade
youth dire punishment for his bold espousal of Rogerene faith
and Rogerene methods, lest other promising young men of the
Congregational fold should dare to venture upon a like career.
.fn 134
Jacob Waterhouse married Ann Douglass (daughter of Mr. Robert Douglass
and Mary Hempstead, daughter of Robert Hempstead). John was their oldest
child, born, 1690.
.fn-
.fn 135
Viz., homestead of Jacob Waterhouse, 1st, one of the planters of New London.
.fn-
But we are not yet through with this interesting June court.
John Bolles is here arraigned, on a like suspicion of being concerned
in opening and carrying away those prison doors “that
have not yet been found.” For declining, at the time of their disappearance,
“to give any reply to inquiries made of him concerning
.bn 254.png
.pn +1
that matter” he has been imprisoned until now. He now
pleads “not guilty,” which of itself might mean that he acknowledges
no guilt in the matter; but his wife is present to testify that
he was at home upon the night of this romantic occurrence, also
Esther Waterhouse,[136] “who lodged at John Bolle’s that night,”
testifies to the same effect; upon which John Bolles is to be discharged,
on payment of costs of prosecution and prison fees.
One can but marvel that John Bolles did not in the first place avail
himself of this so convenient testimony, and thus escape imprisonment
and expense. Also, why were not those noted prison breakers,
John Rogers, Sr. and Jr., arraigned, on suspicion of complicity
in this matter? Had they no hand in this achievement, or
were their tracks so well covered that no slightest clew could be
discovered by the authorities? Did John Bolles, knowing he had
evidence to clear himself at sitting of the June court, allow himself
to be imprisoned on this suspicion, in order to draw attention
from the true culprits?
.fn 136
Daughter of John Culver and recently married to John Waterhouse.
.fn-
Sometime in this year is printed, in Boston, “The Book of the
Revelation of Jesus Christ,” by John Rogers, Sr.[137]
.fn 137
Here it may be well to refer to the mode of distribution of the works of this
author. He appears to have himself carried many of them about New England,
going long journeys on horseback, the books in his portmanteau. This not only
gave him opportunity to circulate his writings more extensively, but to discourse
with people at a distance, and also to preach in various places. He must in such,
as well as in other more evident ways, have been extensively known and famous
in his day. This accounts for his dedication of the above-mentioned volume “To
the Flock Scattered Throughout New England.” John Bolles circulated many of
his own books in like manner.
.fn-
.bn 255.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_10'
CHAPTER X.
.sp 2
.h4
1721.
.pm start_quote
1721. Feb. 26, Sunday.—The Quakers at Meeting made a great
disturbance; especially Sarah Bolles.—Hempstead Diary.
.pm end_quote
Mr. Hempstead, in his usual brief style of chronicle, gives no
further light upon this matter. By the records of the County
Court, in the following June, it is shown that the Quakers referred
to in the Diary were John Bolles, his wife Sarah and John Waterhouse,
and that the impelling reason for this countermove was
because John Waterhouse had been seized and maltreated for
baptizing Joseph Bolles, eldest son of John and Sarah, now twenty
years of age, who, on entering upon a religious life, had, with the
approval of his father and mother and the rest of the Society to
which his whole family belonged, selected this young leader to
baptize him.
Had any Rogerene been selected to perform this baptism other
than the “dutiful” son who had recently left the Congregational
church to join the nonconformists, it is probable there would
have been no such unusual interference; since such baptisms have
been constantly taking place for years, and there is no record of
any other disturbance of this character.
Extensive improvements have now been completed in the Congregational
meeting-house, almost equivalent to a rebuilding of
that edifice. From the Rogerenes has been taken the usual unreasonable
amount of property on this account; in the case of John
Rogers, three of his best fat cattle together with shoes that, sold
cheap at an “outcry,” brought 30s. It seems high time, after so
many years of exorbitant tribute to a ministry of which these
people have no approbation, that some more effectual effort should
be made than the simple refusal to pay such taxes, which has
.bn 256.png
.pn +1
practically greatly increased their loss, by leaving them utterly at
the mercy of the collectors.
A plan is now devised to fit this emergency, yet one much less
aggressive than the ordinary countermove and indicative of a
spirit of compromise on the part of the Rogerenes, despite the fact
that one of their recent baptisms has been so seriously interfered
with and their friends concerned therein are to be tried at the next
sitting of the County Court. A representative number of them
will appear at noontime in the meeting-house, which they have
been forced to assist in rebuilding, and endeavor to hold a meeting
of their own between the regular services. Undoubtedly, they expect
to be prevented from entering the church at all; but the appeal
for their rights in the premises will be made none the less
evident and eloquent by such prevention. If they do succeed in
entering, the familiar riot will ensue, occasioned by putting them
out in a violent manner, carrying them to prison, etc. In that
case, they will be fined “for making a riot,” and tried and sentenced
for the same; but their cause will be all the better advertised,
at home and abroad.
.pm start_quote
April 23, 1721, Sacrament Day.—John Rogers came into the meeting-house
and preached between meetings, his crew with him.—Hempstead
Diary.
.pm end_quote
By this, it is shown that the first attempt at this new style of
countermove was on the above day, and, by the absence of any
court record regarding this occurrence, it further appears that,
either because it was “sacrament day,” or because the governor
was out of town, or from both causes, no resistance was made to
this noon entry or to the preaching by John Rogers that followed,
each of the Rogerenes occupying his or her own seat as set off in
the meeting-house.
Upon the next Sunday, they appear in like manner,[138] just as the
.bn 257.png
.pn +1
Congregational service is breaking up. As Mr. Adams and the
others come out, they politely state their purpose of holding another
meeting of their own between the Congregational services.
No objection being made, they enter and take their places in the
seats assigned them. The governor is surely at hand on this occasion,
and none can be more expectant of dire consequences to
the offenders than are the heroic band themselves. But even
Governor Saltonstall cannot well proceed without the issue of a
warrant, which he must hasten to procure. In these critical circumstances,
the dauntless leader proceeds to expound certain
Scriptures to his little audience of twelve Rogerenes, with, doubtless,
some curious spectators also.
.fn 138
“John Rogers and several of his Society (having as good a right to the New
London meeting-house as any in the town) did propose to hold our meeting there
at noon-time, between the meeting of the other congregation, so as not to disturb
them in either of their meetings. And, accordingly, we met there, and finding their
meeting not ended, we stood without the door until their forenoon meeting was
ended and the people came out, and then John Rogers told them our design was to
make no disturbance, but to hold our meeting while they were at dinner, and when
they were ready for the afternoon meeting we would desist and go away. Whereupon
I heard no person manifest any dislike of our proceedings. Whereupon,
John Rogers went into the seat which the town officers seated him in after the
meeting house was built” (viz., rebuilt) “and proceeded to expound a chapter in the
Bible. But in the time of our meeting, the constable was sent with a warrant to
break up our meeting, and was attended with a rude company of men, who began
to haul men and women out of meeting, committing some to prison, as did Paul in
his unconverted state. And when Sarah Bolles saw the constable and his attendant
carrying her husband to prison by his arms and legs, with his belly downward, in a
very cruel manner, she and Josiah Gates, another of our Society, went to the Governor
minding him of his late promise to defend us in our meetings from any that
should disturb us and desired him that her husband might not be so abused, but
all the relief they had, Josiah Gates received a box on the ear from the governor’s
own hand, and they were both turned out of doors by the governor, and the next day
the governor sat judge himself of the matter and bound over J. Rogers to the County
Court, charging him with a riot, though all he did was to expound a chapter as
aforesaid, and all that his people did was to attend to his exposition, in as quiet a
manner as was ever in any meeting in the king’s dominions, till the constable with
his rude attendants made the disturbance. However, the court fined John Rogers
10 shillings and the charges. Execution was given out, and the sheriff first took ten
sheep and then a milch cow”—“And I do further add that I know of no protection
that we have met with from the authority, relating to our worship but what
has been of the same nature.”—Reply of John Rogers, 2d, to Peter Pratt.
For account of the same by John Rogers, Sr., see #Part I., Chapter V.:ch_1_5#
.fn-
A constable soon appears upon the scene, and the excitable and
riotous portion of the church party are now at liberty to make an
.bn 258.png
.pn +1
uproar and assist in the seizure and abuse. John Bolles is carried
out and to jail by the arms and legs, face downward. His wife
Sarah and one of the Rogerene men, Josiah Gates, hasten to the
house of the governor, near by, where they remind him of his public
promise (Chapter IX.) not to break up their meetings provided
they do not disturb the Congregational church services, and Mrs.
Bolles begs that her husband may not be thus abused.
Considering the towering rage of the governor over this strategic
move on the part of the nonconformists, and the plea of the petitioners
regarding non-disturbance of Congregational services, the
box on the ear which Josiah Gates receives from the hand of the
governor and the summary turning of the two petitioners out of
doors is a natural sequence.
The next day, the governor binds John Rogers and John Bolles
over to the June court.
By the records of the County Court in June, we find John
Rogers and John Bolles called to answer “for unlawful and riotous
entrance into the meeting-house on April 30, with other persons to
the number of twelve.” They plead “not guilty” (viz.: to any
riotous entering or to any guilt in entering). The court finds both
guilty; John Bolles is to pay a fine of £5, and cost of prosecution
£3. John Rogers, having taken the precaution to demand trial
by jury, is to pay a fine of only 10s., and cost of prosecution £1
18s., which gives us the popular verdict in the case. Yet for this
fine the sheriff took ten sheep and a milch cow. In this way, the
executives got the better of a sympathetic jury.
At this June court, John Bolles and his wife are arraigned for
having disturbed the congregation “in February last” (upon occasion
of the Congregational interference with the baptism of their
son Joseph by John Waterhouse). The court, “having heard
what each has to offer and the evidence against them, adjudge each
to pay a fine of £20 and costs of prosecution £1.”
As for John Waterhouse, he is first tried for having disturbed
the Congregational meeting (after the church interference with
said baptism, February 26) and is to pay same fine and charges
.bn 259.png
.pn +1
as John Bolles and wife for this offense. Accordingly the cost of
Joseph’s baptism reaches £65. No wonder that Joseph Bolles is
to become a leader among the Rogerenes and eventually prominent
in a great countermove that is to shake the Congregational
church of New London.
John Waterhouse is also tried for “assuming a pretended administration
of the ordinance of baptism to one Joseph Bolles of
New London” and “that in time thereof he made use of these
words: ‘I baptize thee into the name of the Lord Jesus Christ.’”
“The matter of fact against him being fully proven” and “he having
been imprisoned” (apparently until the sitting of this court), he
is now sentenced to be whipped ten stripes on the naked body for
having performed this baptism.
It is well for the Rogerene Society that so courageous and talented
a man as John Waterhouse has given himself to the Christian
service in this contest for religious liberty. The days of their
great leader are now numbered, although he is still, at seventy-three
years of age, in full health and vigor, despite his fifteen years
of imprisonment during the last forty-six years, and many other
trials and sufferings induced by merciless punishments.
Prominent among the noticeable facts in this man’s history is
his faithful Christian ministry, a ministry copied closely from New
Testament precept and example. Here is a pastor who in obedience
to the command to visit the sick has been ever ready to hasten
fearlessly to the bedsides of victims of the most dreaded contagion,
to render aid temporal or spiritual; although not himself an immune,
unless God so decree. He could be called upon in any
circumstance of misfortune, wherever a friend was needed, to serve,
to comfort, or advise. He has assisted the poor from the earnings
of his own hands. He has visited the widows and the fatherless
and those in prison. He has been at all the charges of his own
ministry, by the fruits of his own industry. Since it has been
claimed by him and his followers, on Scriptural authority, that
faith and prayer are more efficacious in the healing of the sick
than are the advice and prescriptions of earthly physicians, how
often for this purpose must his prayers have been required.
.bn 260.png
.pn +1
A few months later than the events narrated in previous portions
of this chapter, occurs the great smallpox pestilence in Boston.
At this time, John Rogers is having published in that city
his book entitled “A Midnight Cry,” and also his “Answer to R.
Wadsworth.” If he has need to go to Boston, on business connected
with these publications, it is certain, by the character of
the man, that he will not hesitate, but rather hasten, that he may,
in the general panic there, render some assistance. Even if he
has no business occasion for such a visit, it will not matter, provided
he judges the Master’s command to visit the sick calls him
to Boston. Since his conversion in 1674, he has made a practice
of visiting those afflicted with this contagion so shunned
by others, yet has never been attacked by the disease. He believes
the promise that God will preserve His faithful children to the
full age of threescore years and ten unless called to offer up their
lives in martyrdom, and that when, at last, in His good pleasure,
He shall call them, it matters not by what disease or what accident
He takes them hence. Surely death could come in no better way
than in some especial obedience to His command.[139]
.fn 139
In the first place, he (J. Backus) asserts that our infallible spirit deceived us
as it did john Rogers, who pretended from the inspiration that he was proof against
all infection of body etc. Now I am fully persuaded that John Rogers never spake
those words, but that J. Backus is highly guilty of slandering him in his grave
concerning this matter. He also adds that to put the matter upon trial he daringly
ventured into Boston in the time of the small pox, but received the infection and
died of it, with several of his family.
Now how presumptuous and censorious a judgment it is for him to assert that
his going to Boston was daringly to put the matter upon trial, when it was well
known that it had been his practice for more than forty years past to visit all sick
persons as often as he had opportunity, and particularly those who had the small
pox; when in the height of their distemper he has sat on their bedside several hours
at a time, discoursing of the things of God; so that his going to Boston the last
time, was no other than his constant practice had been ever since he made a profession
of religion. Now it is certain that John Rogers in his lifetime, and all his
Society to this day, do firmly believe, from the testimony of the Scriptures, that
God’s protection is with his faithful children through the course of this life, to
continue them to old age (notwithstanding the calamities that he sends on the
earth), except when He calls them to lay down their lives for his truth by way of
martyrdom, as may be seen abundantly in Scripture, Job 5, 26. Thou shalt
come to thy grave in a full age, like as a shock of corn cometh in his season. Psalm
91, 16, With long life will I satisfy him etc. Now the age of man is set forth in
Scripture to be seventy years, as is to be seen Psal. 90, 10.
Now although we have the Scripture plentifully to confirm us in this principle
of God’s protecting his faithful children to old age etc., yet we know it is appointed
for all men once to die, according to what is written Heb. 9, 27, and by what manner
of death it may please God to take them to himself, after he hath preserved them
to old age, he has not revealed, and therefore neither J. Rogers in his lifetime, nor
any of his Society since his death, has undertaken to decide the matter; judging it
to be one of those secret things which God hath not revealed to us, and therefore
is not our business to meddle with, according to what is written, Deut. 28, 29.
The secret things belong unto the Lord our God; but those things that are revealed
belong unto us &c.
Now let every unprejudiced reader take notice how little cause J. Backus
has to reflect John Roger’s manner of death upon him, who lived to the age of
seventy-three years, and then died in his own house on his own bed, having his reason
continued to the last, and manifesting his peace with God and perfect assurance
of a better life. He had also a very easy death, without any struggling or
striving as is common to many people.—Answer of John Rogers, 2d, to J. Backus.
.fn-
.bn 261.png
.pn +1
If after an immunity of more than forty years, not only to himself
but to his household, he takes cheery leave of family and
friends, ere mounting his horse for the long journey, it is no wonder,
nor if they take a like cheerful view of his departure. The
Lord may bring him safely back, as so often before, even though
his seventieth year is past. Yet—it may be that this call of the
Master is to prove his faithfulness unto death.
His horse stands saddled by the roadside, with portmanteau
packed for a brave and kindly stay, God willing, with the suffering
and the forsaken. He is ready even to his jackboots, and his
faithful watch tells him it is time for the start.[140] We look for no
tremor here, even when he speaks the last farewell, but for the
cheery word, the tender glance, the fervent grasp of the hand, the
committal to God of those he holds dearest on earth, the agile
spring to the saddle, and a still erect and manly figure vanishing
at the turn of the road. It is not unlikely that a cavalcade of
brethren accompany him some miles on his way.
.fn 140
In Inventory, watch, portmanteau and jackboots, also besides saddle, etc., a
“male pillion,” indicating a frequent companion in his journeyings.
.fn-
On and on, from the health-giving breezes of Mamacock, towards
.bn 262.png
.pn +1
the plague-stricken city. Once there,—would we might follow
him in his ministrations, even to that day when he remounts his
horse for the homeward journey. Has the contagion so abated by
the middle of October that he is no longer needed, or can he indeed
be aware that he himself is attacked by the disease? Would
it be possible for a man, after he had become sensible that the
malady was upon him, to take the journey on horseback from
Boston to New London? All that is known for a certainty is that
after he reaches home the disease has developed. It seems probable
that he was permitted to complete his mission in Boston and
to leave there unconscious of the insidious attack awaiting him.
Why was he stricken down at the close of this faithful effort to
obey the command of the Master in the face of scorn and peril?
One important result is to ensue. The unfaltering trust of the
Rogerenes in an all-powerful and all-loving God is to be shown
remaining as firm as though John Rogers had returned to them
unscathed, and this unswerving trust in God’s promises, under circumstances
calculated to shake such a trust to the uttermost, is to
be attested over and over by the records of Connecticut.
Fast and far is spread the alarm that John Rogers, just returned
from his foolhardy visit to Boston, is prostrated at Mamacock
with the dread contagion. There are in the house, including
himself, thirteen persons. Adding the servants who live in separate
houses on the place, it is easy to swell the number to “upwards
of twenty.” The large farm, spreading upon both sides
of the road, is itself a place of isolation. On the east is a broad
river, separating it from the uninhabited Groton bank. On the
north is wooded, uninhabited, Scotch Cap.[141] There is possibly a
dwelling within half a mile at the northwest. A half-mile to the
south is the house of John Bolles. What few other neighbors
there may be, are well removed, and there are dwellings enough
on the farm to shelter all not required for nursing the sick. To
.bn 263.png
.pn +1
what degree the family might take the usual precautions, if left
to themselves, or how efficacious might be their scriptural methods,
can never be known; since the authorities take the matter in
hand at the start.
.fn 141
The only house built at Scotch Cap before the present century was built
about 1740, by Capt. Benj. Greene. Until within a few years, the cellar of that
house remained and also the chimney. It was called “the chimney lot.”
.fn-
Had this illness occurred in the very heart of a crowded city,
greater alarm or more stringent measures could not have ensued.
There is a special meeting of Governor and Council at New
Haven, October 14, on receipt of the news that John Rogers is ill
at Mamacock with the smallpox, and that “on account of the
size of the family, upwards of twenty persons, and the great danger
of many persons going thither and other managements” (doubtless
referring to scriptural methods of restoration and precaution)
“there is great liability of the spread of the infection in that neighborhood.”
It is enacted that “effectual care be taken to prevent
any intercourse between members of the family and other persons,
also that three or four persons be impressed to care for the
sick.”
There are a number of meetings of the Governor and Council
over this matter (for full accounts of which see the published records
of the General Court of Connecticut). Were it not for the
court records, coming generations would be at loss to know whether
the members of the family themselves, also John Bolles, John
Waterhouse, John Culver and their wives, and others of the Rogerenes
held firmly to their principles in this crisis, or whether they
stood willingly and fearfully aloof, not daring to put their faith
and theory to so dangerous and unpopular a test. Fortunately for
Rogerene history, the testimony furnished by records of the special
sittings of the Governor and Council on this occasion, fully establishes
not only the fidelity of the Rogerenes to New Testament
teachings, but also their attachment and loyalty to their leader.
Three days after the official order that every relative and friend
be banished from his bedside, and so with no one near him but
the immunes pressed into the service, John Rogers yields up his life
unto Him whom he has faithfully striven to obey, fearing not what
man or any earthly chance might do to him. Thus dies John, the
.bn 264.png
.pn +1
beloved and trusted son of James Rogers, and the last of that
family.
John Rogers departed this life October 17th, the anniversary
day of his marriage to Elizabeth Griswold. She cannot fail to
note that fact, when the news reaches her. She is less than
woman if, in the hour of that discovery, she does not go aside to
weep.
The day after this death, at another special meeting of Governor
and Council, it is enacted that “constant watch be kept about
the house, to seize and imprison all persons who may attempt to
hold any intercourse with the quarantined family.” Little do
those who have been forced to take charge at Mamacock and to
punish all friendly “intruders about the premises” appreciate the
deep sorrow and sympathy of these long-time neighbors and friends,
who desire to hear the particulars, to show respect for the departed
and to render aid to the family. Rudely rebuked, no doubt, are
the most reasonable efforts on the part of these friends, to prove
their love and fellowship in grief, although as yet no one else has
the contagion and all thoughts are centred on this one great
bereavement.
When shortly Bathsheba, wife of John Rogers (now 2d) and
their eldest son, John, are stricken, the dark shadows deepen over
Mamacock, and friends of the family would fain show some sign
of fearless fidelity, not only to those afflicted, but to the teachings
of the New Testament and the Old, in regard to the power and
good will of God to hold even the direst pestilence in His hand.
Much of the endeavor on the part of these friends appears to be
to provide the family with such necessaries for their comfort as
have not yet been supplied by the authorities.
John Waterhouse and John Culver come over from Groton to
secure news regarding the sick and bring something likely to be
needed in the quarantine. The slightest attempt at such friendly
aid excites indignation and terror on the part of the authorities.
At one of the special meetings of Governor and Council (October
31)
.bn 265.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“action is taken regarding the fact that several of the followers of John
Rogers have, contrary to express orders to the contrary, presumed to
go into the company of some that live in the Rogers house, and further
express orders are issued to these obdurate persons, particularly John
Culver and wife, John Waterhouse and wife of Groton, Josiah Gates
and wife of Colchester and John Bolles and wife.”
.pm end_quote
That friends of the family have endeavored to supply them with
necessaries, on account of very tardy red tape regarding such provision
by the authorities, is strongly suggested by an order accompanying
the above, commencing: “Whereas it appears that a meeting
of the selectmen is necessary in order to their taking care of
the sick family,” it is hereby ordered “that notice shall be given
the selectmen to meet and consider what is fit to be done for such
as are confined in said families.” Yet it is not until the next special
meeting, over three weeks later (November 24), that it is ordered
that two suitable persons shall be constantly in attendance “to
lodge at the house of Jonas Hamilton or John Bolles” and “by
relieving each other, watch and ward night and day to understand
the state of the sick there and give information of what is needed.”
After this order, although other meetings are held by the Governor
and Council on the same account, there is no mention of any
further endeavors on the part of friends of the family to hold
communication with them.
Two more of the family die of the disease, Bathsheba, wife of
John Rogers, 2d, and John, their son. When all is over, John
Rogers, 2d, is called upon to pay the expenses of official nurses,
guards, provisions and medicines, a large bill, on which he is allowed
no reduction.
John Rogers having died intestate, his son John is appointed
administrator. The only heirs allowed by the court are the
widow, John Rogers, 2d, and Elizabeth Prentice, “only son” and
“only daughter,” among whom the estate is divided by due course
of law. When this form is ended, John Rogers, 2d, ignoring the
fact that he, as only son under the law, has “a double portion,”
and Gershom and Mary, the two children by Mary, are awarded
.bn 266.png
.pn +1
nothing of this estate, pays to each of these a liberal sum out of
his own portion for “share in” their “father’s estate” (as is still
to be seen on the town records). Well may Mary, if living, forgive
this honorable man for some things that displeased her in
the past. He claims her children as his father’s before the world;
he claims them as brother and sister of his own. He afterwards
buys of them land at Mamacock, which was given them by their
father, Gershom’s land “having a house thereon.”
To the ecclesiastic view, John Rogers has fallen, as to that
view he has lived, a fanatic, striving for such an impracticable
end as to resurrect the first Christian era into the seventeenth and
eighteenth centuries. But the friends and followers of this leader
are sure that a Christian hero has passed from their midst, in no
ignoble way.
Here was a man who, had he chosen to fight worldly battles, in
forum or in field, might well have made a mark that all men had
acknowledged; but who, for the truth that is in the Gospel of
Jesus Christ, elected to lead through life a forlorn hope, humanly
speaking, as of one against a thousand or a score against a host.
It matters not that he but voiced the sentiments of a large number
of his own day (and a multitude of ours); it is a silent minority,
that dare not even to applaud a man who speaks their views,
while the popular leadership and power are on the other side.
Mamacock farm has been much enlarged since, by that name;
it was the old Blinman farm, and as such given to Elizabeth
Griswold; it has taken in lands to the north, south and west (across
the Norwich road). In a southeast corner of its present (1721)
boundaries, close by the river bank, are three graves that mark
the earthly loss to family and friends of that fearless visit to Boston.
The sentiments of the Rogerenes who view those mounds
are: “The Lord hath given and the Lord hath taken away, blessed
be the name of the Lord.” They gather closer to fill this great
vacancy in their ranks and press on under the same banner. If
John Rogers, 2d, be not the next leader-in-chief (as perchance he
is) that banner will never falter in his hands. John Waterhouse,
.bn 267.png
.pn +1
as a preacher of rare eloquence and power, wears the mantle
well. John Bolles is in the prime of life, being but forty-four years
of age at the time of the death of his chief. He will labor in this
cause for many a year to come, with ready voice and pen. Under
his training and that of his wife Sarah, a bevy of bright and
energetic boys are growing up strong in the faith, to join hands
with the sons of John Rogers, 2d. Young Joseph Bolles is soon
to come to the front. Shortly another elder and preacher rises,
in the person of Andrew Davis. Here are enough to hold the
present band together and labor for its enlargement. The authorities
cannot take much encouragement, after the fall of the great
leader. He has builded for time to come.
In 1722 is passed an act directing dissenters to qualify under
the law of 1708, and such persons as neglect the public worship
of God in some lawful congregation, and form themselves into
separate companies in private houses, are to forfeit the sum of 40s.
A fine of £10 and a whipping to any person not a minister who
shall dare to administer the sacraments.
However this may be aimed at the Rogerenes, it evidently does
not reach them. If the authorities should endeavor to strictly
enforce this law in New London, there would undoubtedly be
court records in plenty regarding countermoves, and an overflowing
prison, as will be seen during a later attempt (1764-6) to
enforce arbitrary laws of this kind. For more than forty years
previous to 1722 the Rogerenes have ignored similar laws, and
will continue the same course to the end.
.bn 268.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_11'
CHAPTER XI. | YEARS OF TRUCE.
.sp 2
For some years after the death of John Rogers, no serious interference
with the customs of the Rogerenes is recorded. The
countermoves directly preceding that death should, by all precedents,
be sufficient to secure them from molestation for a considerable
time to come.
September, 1724, occurs the sudden death of Governor Saltonstall,
by apoplexy. His family continue to reside in New London
and to form an important part of the leading membership of the
Congregational church.
Under the ministry of Mr. Saltonstall the half-way covenant was
in full force,[142] and under his administration as governor this policy
was applied to the colony at large.
.fn 142
“Although the practice of it” (half-way covenant) “did not begin here” (New
London) “until Mr. Saltonstall’s pastorate, yet it was in the air, was practiced by
most of the leading churches in the Colony. But when the pastorate of Mr. Saltonstall
began, we find that the new way had gained a foothold. It was known as the
Presbyterian way. It was the system of all national churches, ... all persons of
good moral character living within the parochial bounds were to have, as in England
and Scotland, the privilege of baptism for their children and access to the Lord’s
table. (Ecc. His. of Conn., pp. 28, 29.) It is to be understood that this refers to
persons who laid no claims to regenerate character. There was no awakening in
this church” (New London Congregational) “nor indeed in N. Eng. worth mentioning
before 1748—effect on this church may be seen in the fact that during the
first half century of its existence not over 200 members were received and a full century
of its life passed without a religious awakening.”—From History of First
Congregational Church of New London, by Rev. Mr. Blake.
.fn-
For forty years after the death of Governor Saltonstall, nothing
regarding the Rogerenes appears on the records of either of the
three courts. Yet there is abundant evidence that these people are
steadfastly continuing in the faith and practices of their sect, holding
their own meetings, in New London, Groton and elsewhere,
.bn 269.png
.pn +1
preaching their purely scriptural doctrines, and publishing books
in defense of their principles. Although not presented before the
County Court in this period, they are (as shown by the writings of
John Rogers, 2d, and John Bolles) frequently disturbed by the
town magistrates, who deal with them “at their own discretion.”
That entrance into the meeting-house was a last resort is shown by
its extreme infrequency as compared with the more or less constant
and severe aggravations to which they are subjected. The only
evidence of virulent measures in this period is the pitiless scourging
inflicted by Norwich authorities (1725) upon the Sunday party
on their way to Lebanon. (See Part I., Chapter #I.:ch_1_1#) The officers
and others concerned in this proceeding appear to have been members
of the Norwich church, from which, as has been seen, were
wont to issue pursuers of the Rogerenes.[143]
.fn 143
This may account for the traditions credited by Miss Caulkins of some sort of
entrance into that church. (“History of Norwich.”) It is possible that attacks
from this church were only to be held in check by some significant warning; but
that there was any disturbance of meeting seems disproven by absence of any court
record to that effect. The law regarding disturbance of meeting is very explicit,
calling for presentation before the County Court.
If any person shall come to any church or congregation, either established or
allowed by the laws of this colony, and disquiet and disturb the same, such person
or persons upon proof thereof before any assistant or justice of the peace, by two
sufficient witnesses, shall be bound in £50 for appearance at next County Court,
and in default of same to be committed to prison to remain until sitting of said
court, and upon conviction of said offence shall suffer the penalty of £20.
.fn-
The following from the “Hempstead Diary” shows an imprisonment
of one or more Rogerenes at this period, and, in consequence,
a Rogerene attendance in Congregational church. The speaking
appears to have been so timid as not to disturb the services.
.pm start_quote
1725. Sunday, Oct. 31.—Walter and John Waterus spake aloud att
ye Same Instant and said you Blaspheme the name of Christ or to that
effect. Jno. Rogers and Bolles and his wife sd Nothing till meeting was
over and yn complained much of the french barber striking over one of
their crew at the prison and brot the stick wch he sd he Struck him with.
.pm end_quote
The offenses for which the Rogerenes are most liable to magisterial
punishment at this time appear to be travelling upon Sunday,
.bn 270.png
.pn +1
when they have occasion to attend a distant meeting, and
performing sufficient observable labor upon that day to assure
their opponents that they continue to deny its sanctity; although
they take a suitable portion of it for religious services. From them
are regularly collected fines for not training. These fines being
demanded by Cæsar (the purely civil government) are probably
paid without protest.[144] The church rates they never pay, no matter
how many fold more than the amount due is collected by execution
on their property, and still, as heretofore, they never appeal
to the court on account of the surplus retained.
.fn 144
No proof of refusal to pay these fines appears until a much later date.
.fn-
A considerable number of Rogerenes are located in the northeastern
part of Groton, among whom John Waterhouse and John
Culver are leaders. This is a sparsely populated district, where the
nonconformists are less exposed to such molestation and extortions
as assail those of New London. These Groton Rogerenes
have Baptists for their nearest neighbors, a sect agreeing with
them in certain particulars, but equally with the ruling order holding
to the observance of a “holy Sabbath.” It is certain that the
Groton Rogerenes have, sooner or later, some grievance against
these Baptists, evidently in connection with the question of Sunday
sanctity.
In 1728, John Bolles issues his “Application to the General
Court of Connecticut,” “in all the honor and submissive obedience
that God requires me to show to you,”—in which he states that
he discovers in the “Confession of Faith” which this court has established,
“principles that seem not to be proven by the Scriptures
there quoted,” and that he has drawn up some objections thereto
which he desires to be considered and “reply to be returned,” also
that he has “taken a journey for no other end but to deliver these
objections to one of the elders in each county in the colony.” As
he afterwards expresses it, “they disregarded my request.” In
this pamphlet he mentions various instances of cruel persecution
to which he and his friends have been subjected, and ends with
these words:—
.bn 271.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
But we, on our parts, have had the witness of a good conscience
towards God in all our sufferings and loss of all these things, and do
make it our care to live inoffensively towards all men, except in the case
of Daniel, Chap. 6, Verse 5.[145] And whether this be not oppressing and
afflicting them that have no power to help themselves for conscience’s
sake,[146] let God be judge. Pray peruse what is above written, and let it
have a due sense upon your minds; and so act and do in all the particulars
above mentioned, as you may have confidence and boldness to hold
up your heads before the great and terrible and righteous judge of all the
earth, when He shall come with his mighty angels in flaming fire, taking
vengeance on them that know not God and obey not the Gospel of our
Lord Jesus Christ.
.pm end_quote
.fn 145
Then said these men; We shall not find any occasion against this Daniel, except
we find it against him concerning the law of his God.—Daniel 6, 5.
.fn-
.fn 146
Viz.: by their principles of non-resistance.
.fn-
That the religious standard of some of the principal members
of the Congregational church has not advanced since the time
of Governor Saltonstall is indicated by the following, from the
“Hempstead Diary”:—
.pm start_quote
1734. Sunday, Sept. 29. The late Gov. Saltonstall’s Pew stove down
the Door and 2 Pannels, it seems to be the effects of a Contention
between the two Brothers wives which of ye females shall have the
upper hand.[147]
.pm end_quote
.fn 147
This refers to the pew built for the Governor near the pulpit. Miss Caulkins
(“History New London”) mentions a similar contention between prominent members
of this church, under a somewhat earlier date, in which the case was carried to
court for final decision.
Two of the three sons of Governor Saltonstall, Nathaniel and Gurdon, remained
in New London. Rosewell, the eldest, settled in Blanford and died in 1738. Of
him Mr. Hempstead says in his Diary:—“he was an Incomparable, well Disposed
Gentleman, a good Christian in his Living orderly and good in every
Relation.
Gurdon, 2d, was a leading man in New London and held numerous important
offices. Mr. Hempstead calls him “Col. Saltonstall” as early as 1740. He lived
in the Saltonstall homestead and marshalled his fourteen children in the family
procession for church every Sunday, after the example of his father, the governor.
(“History of New London.”) His eldest child, Gurdon, 3d, was born in 1734,
and his second, Dudley, in 1736.
.fn-
.bn 272.png
.pn +1
It is not surprising that an aristocracy so autocratic as to contend
with near relatives for supremacy of this kind should be bitterly
antagonistic to the Rogerenes, who not only shun worldly
position for themselves but refuse to be subject to its rule in all
matters pertaining to the Christian religion. Youth of the Congregational
church, who are to grow up under influences of the
above description, are destined, thirty years from this date, to be
church members themselves and to take part with their elders, as
advocates of a “holy Sabbath,” in a movement against the Rogerenes
which is to result in the great countermove of 1764-66, and the
retaliatory measures adopted in that contest.
We find in the “Hempstead Diary”:—“July 17, 1743, Hannah
Plumb,[148] a young woman, was baptized in ye river at ye town beach
by Samuel son of John Rogers.” This not only shows Samuel
Rogers (son of John, 2d) to be a leading Rogerene, but is one of
the proofs that some of the Plumb family, the elder members of
which are prominent in the town and Congregational church, are
of Rogerene persuasion; also that the Rogerenes have got beyond
the Mill Cove for baptisms.
.fn 148
It is shown by Hempstead’s Diary that Hannah Plumb was daughter of John
Plumb and baptized, as an infant, in the Congregational church, December, 1723,
also that her father was a nephew of Mr. Hempstead, and her mother a daughter of
Mr. Peter Harris. A son of her uncle, Peter Plumb, married a granddaughter of
John Bolles.
.fn-
About 1735, John Culver and wife, with their sons and families,
together with other Rogerenes of Groton, emigrated to New Jersey,
where they founded a Rogerene settlement. (The cause of
this removal is unknown. The theory that it was to escape persecution
is weakened, not only by proof that the Culvers had proven
themselves of heroic mould in this struggle, but by the fact that
there was a cessation of virulent persecution at this time.) In the
course of a few years, they are found, with quite a following, at
Waretown[149] (in the southern part of what is now Ocean County),
.bn 273.png
.pn +1
holding their meetings in a schoolhouse. A man by the name of
Weair, the founder of Waretown, is one of their Society; an enterprising
business man, who is described as a most worthy Christian.[150]
.fn 149
They first settled in Morris County, N.J.—Schooley’s Mountain—but soon
moved south to above location. About eleven years later, they seem to have returned
to Schooley’s Mountain. In the latter part of the eighteenth century, many
of these New Jersey Rogerenes are said to have removed to the “red stone country,”
supposed to be Virginia. Most of them had names indicative of Groton origin,
as Waterhouse, Mann, Lamb, etc., showing that other Groton people either accompanied
the Culvers to New Jersey or joined them there. It would be interesting
to know more of the New Jersey Rogerenes than has been discovered. Very
naturally, various fabrications regarding the New London Rogerenes have become
attached to them also, simply because they were of the same sect.
.fn-
.fn 150
Upon his gravestone is inscribed:—“In memory of Abraham Weair. Died
March 24, 1768, aged 85 years. Whose innocent life adorned true light.”
.fn-
The location of this little Rogerene community is about one hundred
and forty miles from Ephrata, Pa., where is a Society of
Dunkers, among whom are certain brethren who dwell apart from
the secular portion of the community, in a cloister. This Society
observe the seventh day as a Sabbath, and hold closely to New
Testament teaching and example, not discarding healing by faith
and prayer and the anointing with oil. The brethren of the cloister
appear to believe in direct enlightenment being accorded to such
as lead devout lives. They have acquired the name and fame of
“holy men.” John Culver has visited these brethren of the cloister,
and a mutual friendship and interest have resulted.
In 1744, a number of these Ephrata brethren, being on a pilgrimage
in the vicinity of the New Jersey Rogerenes, pay them a
visit. The reputation of these “holy men,” in regard to healing
by prayer, and also the fidelity of the Rogerenes to this scriptural
mode, is shown by the fact, recorded by the Pilgrims, that the New
Jersey Rogerenes brought their sick to them, in the hope that they
might be restored to health.[151]
.fn 151
The following brief but explicit counsel to his followers by John Rogers, Sr.,
contained in one of his books, under the heading here given, is all that has been
found in Rogerene writings regarding the doctrine of divine healing:—
.ce
CONCERNING GOD’S MINISTRATION BY SICKNESS.
In Time of Sickness, Ake or Pain, we are to examine our own Hearts, to see and
find out the cause of God’s Chastisement, and to look up to Him who wounds, and
whose Hands alone make whole, who is the same Yesterday, Today and forever;
and to attend the Apostle Jame’s Direction. James 5, 13 etc. If any Man among
you be afflicted, let him pray; is any merry, let him sing Psalms; is any sick among
you, let him call for the Elders of the Church, and let them pray over him, anointing
him with Oyl in the Name of the Lord; and the Prayer of Faith shall save the
sick, and the Lord shall raise him up; and if he have committed Sins, they shall be
forgiven him. Confess your Faults one to another, and pray one for another, that
ye may be healed. The effectual fervent prayer of a Righteous Man availeth
much.—J. R.
.fn-
.bn 274.png
.pn +1
The Culvers urge the Pilgrims to visit the Rogerenes of New
London, and with such effect that the brethren embark for Connecticut.
They land at Blackpoint, where they are received by a
Rogerene of that vicinity, who later escorts them to Bolles Hill,
where they make their headquarters at the house of John Bolles.
They speak, in their journal, of the Rogerenes as leading “a quiet
life apart,” in the country, and state that they had with them a
“most peaceful visit.” From the country they are escorted into
the town, where they are entertained at the house of Ebenezer
Bolles (son of John), whom they describe in their journal as “a
blessed virtuous man.” They advise him not to marry, not knowing
that he is engaged to Mary, the seventeen-year-old daughter
of John Rogers, 2d, and has made his house ready for the bride
who is very shortly to occupy it.
Notwithstanding the fact that the town, by description of the
tourists, is in a state of agitation and excitement, on account of
rumors of war with Spain and the religious differences and public
disputes occasioned by the presence and preaching of the New
Light evangelists, the citizens vie with the Rogerenes in kindly and
interested attentions to the strangers, who speak highly of the hospitality
of the people and describe New London as “a fruitful
garden of God.” When the day for their departure arrives, the
Rogerenes provide passage for them to New York, to which “gifts”
of some kind are added, by reason of which the Pilgrims state that
they took away with them more than they brought. There is
mention of these strangers in the “Hempstead Diary,” under date
of October 10, 1744, where they are described as men with beards
eight or nine inches long, without hats and dressed in white. By
.bn 275.png
.pn +1
their own description, a crowd followed them in New London
wherever they went.
No mention is made by the Pilgrims of any unpleasantness between
the Rogerenes and their neighbors, unless the “quiet life
apart” of the former can be thus construed. That the Rogerenes
sympathize with the New Lights to a considerable degree is more
than probable; yet they seem to go their own way, undisturbed
and unexcited by the surrounding ferment.[152]
.fn 152
The “History of the German Sectaries” (Philadelphia, 1899) by Julius F.
Sachse, gives an account of this New London visit derived from the Journal
of the Pilgrims. By that history, it will be seen that these Ephrata brethren were
men of learning, and had at the Cloister a printing-press, from which issued numerous
publications, in both German and English type. Products of this press are
among the rarest specimens of Americana.
.fn-
New ecclesiastical laws have recently been enacted, largely on
account of the advent of the New Lights, and old laws are to be
more strictly enforced. The rulers are tightening the reins, and the
Rogerenes with other nonconformists are likely to receive a cut of
the lash. In 1745, Joshua Hempstead writes in his Diary:—
.pm start_quote
Sunday, June 16.—John Rogers and Bolles and Waterus and Adrw
Daviss and about 20 more of their Gang, came Down into Town with a
cart and oxen and were taken up by the officers and Committed to Prison,
also 4 Women of their Company Came to ye Meetinghouse and began to
preach and were taken away to Prison also.
.pm end_quote
No clew is given to the cause of this move. A phalanx of Rogerenes
passing, on Sunday, slowly along the principal street of the
town in a cart drawn by oxen, each one of these non-combatants
calmly and cheerfully prepared to pay for their spectacular move
by seizure, imprisonment and fines, is fully as comical as it is
tragic. Though some of the spectators are in a rage, others must
be overcome with laughter, while sympathizers too politic to laugh
outright smile in their sleeves. The after-appearance, at or in
the neighborhood of the meeting-house, of four Rogerene women,
fluent in Gospel “testimony” regarding the unchristian proceedings
of the “authority,” is a fitting climax to this non-resistant
menace.
.bn 276.png
.pn +1
No wonder that for nine years to come the entries in the “Hempstead
Diary” will contain no hint of any collision with the Rogerenes.
The generally tolerant spirit towards the Rogerenes during the
last twenty years is largely to be attributed to the conciliatory character
of the Rev. Mr. Adams, who, although he may not have felt
himself in a position to oppose the autocratic policy of Governor
Saltonstall, appears never to have instigated any attack upon the
nonconformists or taken an observable part in any such move.
Nor, on the other hand, do we find indication of any hard feeling
towards this minister on the part of the Rogerenes.
Who, it may be asked, are the Rogerenes of this period? Foremost
among the leaders on the New London side are John Rogers,
2d, and John Bolles. There is a considerable following of families
and individuals in the town and vicinity, in no way allied to
these by relationship. The region about Mamacock and districts
farther north have, within the century, become largely occupied
by families from Rhode Island, who, being of Quaker and Baptist
sympathies, are well fitted for affiliation with the Rogerenes. It is
not unlikely that many of them have been attracted hither by that
sect. Among these are descendants of some who, having been
persecuted by the ruling church of Massachusetts, had retreated
to Rhode Island for security. Such would be nothing loath to aid
in the bold stand so well instituted in Connecticut. There are
Rogerenes in Groton, Montville, Colchester, Lebanon and Saybrook.[153]
How many more converts are at this date “scattered
throughout New England” none could tell so well as John Bolles,
who has travelled extensively over the country selling Rogerene
books and expounding Rogerene doctrines. But the solid nucleus
of this Society is in the neighborhood of Mamacock and just
north of there, where the John Rogers and John Bolles families
and their neighboring followers are as a phalanx. They are, in
the main, a people of broad acres and ample means, industrious
and energetic; their young women are sought in marriage by promising
.bn 277.png
.pn +1
youth of other denominations, and their young men, evidently
with full parental consent, improve opportunities to take
wives from some of the best families in New London of wholly
different persuasions from their own. James, son of John Rogers,
2d, a young Rogerene of great business ability, marries a daughter
of Mr. Joseph Harris, and permits his wife to have her child baptized
in the Congregational church,[154] of which she is a member.
Evidently, the New London Rogerenes agree with St. Paul in this
regard. 1 Cor. vii, 14. About 1740, Capt. Benjamin Greene,
of Rhode Island—a younger brother of Gov. William Greene—established
a home farm near Mamacock, at the point called
“Scotch Cap.” He is not only a shipmaster but the owner of several
vessels and their cargoes. His brother, the governor, is a frequent
visitor at Scotch Cap. The wife of Captain Greene is of the
Angell family of Rhode Island. Delight, daughter of Capt. Benjamin
Greene, marries John, son of John Rogers, 2d. The Greenes
are of both Quaker and Baptist sympathies. Samuel Rogers, son
of John, 2d, marries a daughter of Stephen Gardner, from Rhode
Island, whose family are of Quaker origin. The other marriageable
son of this date weds a daughter of Mr. John Savol (or Saville),
a prominent member of the Congregational church, afterwards of
Norwich. One daughter of John Rogers, 2d, marries a son of
John Bolles; another marries a young man of Groton whose father
is an enterprising business man from Rhode Island; the other four
daughters marry sons of members of the Congregational church
(New London and elsewhere), of high standing and ample means.
.fn 153
Since John Rogers resided as a pastor on the Great Neck from 1675 to 1699
he had undoubtedly a following of that locality.
.fn-
.fn 154
Her first child was baptized in the Congregational church, but the other children
do not appear on the Congregational church records, by which it may be
judged that she was brought over to her husband’s views in this particular.
.fn-
The sons of John Bolles have not all taken wives from among
the Rogerenes, but are less allied to those of Congregational persuasion;
outside of their own sect they have most favored Baptist
women. The second wife of John Rogers, 2d, appears not to have
been a Rogerene before marriage, and the same may be said of
the second wife of John Bolles. If such facts are true of the chief
.bn 278.png
.pn +1
leaders and their children, we may easily judge of the alliances of
their followers with persons of other denominations, in this comparatively
quiet interval.
The above particulars are important as showing the social status
of the leading New London Rogerenes in the middle of the eighteenth
century, and proving that, although holding strictly to their
own opinions and customs, they are not only accounted honorable
and esteemed members of the community, but are so liberally inclined
as to be in a large degree connected with liberal members of
other sects. John Rogers, 2d, has said: “I abhor the abusing
of any sect.”—Answer to Peter Pratt. It appears likely that he
also abhors the isolation of any sect, believing men and women
can differ on certain religious points, and yet be friends and even
partners for life.
This ready association of the New London Rogerenes with
friendly people of other denominations, is but one of many evidences
that the chief contention of these people has not been regarding
minor matters of church government and customs, nor
even so much in regard to baptism and hireling ministers; but
that the great struggle, from first to last, has been for religious liberty;
in asserting which liberty they must oppose those who institute,
enforce or uphold laws inimical to free expression of religious
belief, or individual liberty in the form of worship. Having the
high ground of apostolic doctrines and usages upon which to found
a strong opposition to ecclesiastical tyranny, they have fought the
good fight upon that sacred foundation.
The indications are strong that by the middle of the eighteenth
century there is not so much friction between the Rogerenes and
the authorities in regard to the gathering of rates for the Congregational
ministry, but that the old, exorbitant methods of seizure
have declined to less grievous proportions. Nor does there appear
to be serious interference with Sunday labor or travelling, which
argues that the Rogerenes are not driven, by close watch and frequent
arrests, to any extraordinary demonstrations of their disapproval
of governmental meddling in matters of conscience. It
.bn 279.png
.pn +1
appears to be the policy at this period to let them alone on these
sensitive points, in consequence of which toleration they do not
consider it necessary to make their differences of belief so distinctly
prominent. Evidently, a large measure of the freedom for
which this sect has contended is already accorded; certain ecclesiastical
laws, not yet erased from the statute book, are becoming,
in the neighborhood of the Rogerenes at least, of the dead letter
order, which is the case with many other laws still upon that book.
In June, 1753, occurs the death of John Rogers, 2d, in his eightieth
year. He has made a long and heroic stand, since at the age
of seventeen years he joined his father in this contest. To him is
largely due the size and strength of a sect that has called for the
bravest of the brave—and found them.
Fifteen children gather at Mamacock, to follow the remains of
this honored and beloved father to the grave, eight sons and seven
daughters, of the average age of thirty-four years, the eldest (son)
being fifty-two and the youngest (son) fourteen years of age. Besides
these, with their families, and the widow in her prime, is the
large gathering of Bolleses and other friends and followers in the
locality, also those of Groton and doubtless many from other places.
They lay the form of this patriarch beside his father, his wife
Bathsheba and the children gone before, in the ground he has set
apart, in the southeast corner of his farm, as a perpetual burial
place for his descendants, close by the beautiful river that washes
Mamacock. They mark his grave, like the others in this new
ground, by two rough stones, from nature’s wealth of granite in
this locality, whose only tracery shall be the lichen’s mossy green
or tender mould.[155]
.fn 155
The early graves still discernible in this old family burying-ground are
marked by natural, uninscribed stones, which was the ordinary mode before gravestones
came into common use in New England. In family burying-places, on
farms or in out-of-the-way places, the lack of inscriptions continued to a comparatively
late period. Many such old family burying-places have been long obliterated.
The preservation of this one is probably due to its being secured by deed.
(See New London Record, November 13, 1751.) It is said that, despite the lack of
inscriptions, descendants in the earlier part of the nineteenth century could tell
who was buried in each of the old graves. The railroad has cut off a portion of
this burial ground, which originally extended to the verge of the river. Tradition
states that some of the graves on the river bank were washed away at the time of
the great September gale (1813).
.fn-
.bn 280.png
.pn +1
John Rogers, 2d, was a man of remarkable thrift and enterprise
as well as of high moral and religious character.[156] His inventory is
the largest of his time in New London and vicinity, and double
that of many accounted rich, consisting mainly of a number of
valuable farms on both sides of the Norwich road, including the
enlarged Mamacock farm, the central part of which (Mamacock
proper), his home farm, is shown by the inventory to be under a
high state of cultivation and richly stocked with horses, cattle and
sheep. His children had received liberal gifts from him in his
lifetime.
.fn 156
There are numerous allusions to John Rogers, 2d, in the “Hempstead Diary,”
but a number of references to “John Rogers,” which in the published Diary are
credited to John, 2d, refer to his cousin, Capt. John Rogers, of Great Neck vicinity,
as does the statement under October 4, 1735, that John Rogers “girdled the apple
trees” on the “Crossman lot.” This “Crossman lot,” on the Great Neck, by
“Lower Mamacock,” was in litigation between Capt. John Rogers and Mr. Hempstead,
for some time, and was finally accorded to Mr. Hempstead. “Lower Mamacock”
by “lower Alewife Cove,” is easily confounded with “Upper Mamacock,”
by “upper Alewife Cove,” although they are six or seven miles apart.
.fn-
Four of the eight sons of John Rogers, 2d, are now in the prime
of life, and not only landed proprietors but men of excellent business
ability. John, the youngest of the four, now in his thirtieth
year, is appointed administrator of his father’s estate and guardian
of his two minor brothers. James, the eldest, is a very enterprising
business man. That his coopering establishment is a large
plant is shown by the fact that he is, immediately after the death
of his father, the richest man in New London, his estate being
nearly equal to that left by his father.[157] The preamble of his will
.bn 281.png
.pn +1
proved in 1754, shows him to have been a Christian of no ordinary
stamp. Thus soon, after the death of John Rogers, 2d, this worthy
and capable son, who must have been a man of large influence in
the Society, is removed. For some time previous to his death, he
occupied, as a home farm, the southern third of the enlarged Mamacock[158]—which
fell to him later by his father’s will—upon which
was a “mansion house” said to have been built of materials brought
from Europe. His brother Samuel has inherited the northern
third of the enlarged Mamacock, upon which he resided for some
time previous to the death of his father. His brother John has
inherited the central part, or Mamacock proper, which his father
reserved for his own use.
.fn 157
This coopering establishment was located on Main Street, by the Mill Cove, on
land which had been given him by his father in 1725 (New London Record); it
bordered the Mill Cove and there was a wharf belonging to it. Tradition has confounded
this James with his son James, the only son of the former who reached
middle life. James, Jr., was remembered by some of the older people of the middle
of the nineteenth century and familiarly called “Jimmy Rogers.” He succeeded
to the business of his father, by the Mill Cove, and continued it on a still larger
scale, packing beef of his own preparation, in barrels of his own manufacture, and
shipping it to southern markets. He was a very successful business man; but the
piety conspicuous in the character of his father is not ascribable to this James, who
appears not to have made any profession of the Christian faith. He was a young
man at the time of the persecution of the Society to which his father belonged,
which was instituted by the denomination of which his mother was a member, and
which resulted in the blood-curdling scenes attendant upon the countermove of
1764-6. Such scenes enacted by professing Christians, in vengeful punishment of
other professing Christians, were calculated to make anything but a religious impression
upon a youth of the strictly practical turn of mind that is ascribed to this
James.
.fn-
.fn 158
The farm now (1904) occupied by Mr. Henry Benham is a portion of what was
the James Rogers farm. A southern portion of the latter was sold by heirs of James,
Jr., to the Lewis brothers. The farm inherited by Samuel Rogers is now owned
by Mr. Stephen Comstock. Mamacock proper, left to John Rogers, 3d, is the
farm now owned by Mr. Fitzgerald, including Mamacock peninsula. Each of
these farms had, originally, pasture and woodland on the west side of the Norwich
road.
All of the above farms were valuable in old times, when clearings were the exception,
being rich lands carefully cultivated.
.fn-
All the sons of John Rogers have been well educated; John has
marked literary talent; his brother Alexander appears to be a
schoolmaster of uncommon ability, although farmer and shoemaker
as well.[159]
.fn 159
Specimens of his penmanship still extant, would compare favorably with that
of modern masters. These specimens are in possession of Mr. Gilbert Rogers, of
Quaker Hill.
.fn-
The eight sons of John Bolles are among the wealthiest and most
.bn 282.png
.pn +1
enterprising citizens of New London; several own valuable lands in
the very heart of the town, as well as farms outside; they are business
men as well as farmers. Ebenezer Bolles is one of the richest
merchants in New London. The moral character of these sons of
John Rogers and John Bolles is without reproach. They are professing
Christians of the most evangelical stamp. Their sisters are
wives of thrifty and upright men.
These people and their adherents are not only a strong business
element in this community, but they are a strong moral and religious
element. If the present policy of non-enforcement in regard
to this sect of the ecclesiastical laws which they are bound to resist
should be continued, there is every reason to expect that in another
generation they will mingle with the rest of the community in so
friendly a manner as to be willing to compromise regarding such
minor differences as the observance or non-observance of days.
In 1754, John Bolles issued in pamphlet form “A Message to
the General Court in Boston,” in behalf of the principles of religious
liberty. In a volume in which this pamphlet was republished
are two other publications of this author, one of which (apparently
written about this time) is the tract entitled “True Liberty
of Conscience is in Bondage to no Flesh.” In this tract,
among accounts of persecution inflicted on the Rogerenes, is the
following (also noted in Part I.):—
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
“To my knowledge was taken from a man, only for the cost of a justice’s
court and court charge for whipping him for breach of Sabbath (so called)
a mare worth a hundred pounds, and nothing returned; and this is known
by us yet living, to have been the general practice in Connecticut.”
.pm end_quote
The “by us yet living” and “to have been” indicate that it was
at a time considerably previous to this writing that such great cruelty
and extortions were in vogue. Yet it also shows how easily,
with no such publicity as would be incurred by presentation before
the County Court, great persecutions could be carried on by town
magistracy, a possibility always existing under the ecclesiastical
laws relative to Sunday observances.
.bn 283.png
.pn +1
John Bolles took his “Message to the General Court” to Boston
for presentation, in 1754, making the journey of two hundred miles
on horseback, in his seventy-seventh year. (See #Part I., Chap. VII.:ch_1_7#)
In the previous year—October, 1753—close following the
death of John Rogers, 2d, had occurred the death of Rev. Eliphalet
Adams, after a pastorate of over forty years in New London.
It has been seen that since the death of Governor Saltonstall
no virulent persecution of the Rogerenes has occurred, and that
the character and policy of Mr. Adams have been favorable to
compromise and conciliation. But very soon after the death of
Mr. Adams there appear signs of a grievance on the part of the
Rogerenes of a character to call forth one of their old-time warnings.
Proof of this appears in the “Hempstead Diary”:—
.pm start_quote
March 17, 1754. John Waterhouse of Groton and John Bolles and his
sons and a company of Rogerenes came to meeting late in the forenoon
service, and tarried and held their meeting after our meeting was over,
and left off without any disorder before our afternoon meeting began.
.pm end_quote
It is thirty-three years since Mr. Hempstead has had occasion
to note such a noon meeting on the part of the Rogerenes. By
what official move this warning has been induced does not appear.
Evidently no violence was offered the Rogerenes. This meeting
will be a sufficient check for some time upon whatever attempts
are on foot to disturb them.
Two years later, J. Hempstead writes in his Diary: “1756,
May 30. John Waterhouse and a company came to our meeting.”
There is evidently some call for another warning. The Congregational
pulpit is, at this date, filled with temporary supply.
In this evident crisis, it is probable that none await the action of
the Congregational church in their choice of a minister with more
interest than do the Rogerenes. Upon the views and temper of
Mr. Adam’s successor will largely depend the continuance or discontinuance
of the generally pacific attitude on both sides, which
has continued for so many years. In the Congregational church
membership are town officials as well as those in still more influential
positions.
.bn 284.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_12'
CHAPTER XII. | THE GRAND COUNTERMOVE (1764-1766).
.sp 2
It is not until 1757 that a new minister is installed over the
Congregational church, in the person of Mr. Mather Byles, Jr.,
a talented and very resolute young man, twenty-three years of
age.[160]
.fn 160
The liberal salary, for those times, accorded this very young man was £100
per annum and a gratuity of £240 every four years. Yet we soon find him complaining
of the insufficiency of his salary.
.fn-
This youth is of such character and persuasion as to resemble,
in this particular community, a firebrand in the neighborhood of a
quantity of gunpowder. (After the gunpowder has exploded and
Mr. Byles determines to remain no longer in this vicinity, in taking
leave of the Congregational church he says: “If I have not the
Sabbath, what have I? ’Tis the sweetest enjoyment of my whole
life.”)
This young man, whose “sweetest enjoyment” is the Puritan
Sabbath so reprobated by the Rogerenes, naturally looks over the
field to see how he can best distinguish himself as a zealous minister
of the ruling order. He observes a large portion of this community
taking sufficient pains to demonstrate to all beholders that
they are pledged to follow no laws or customs, regarding religious
affairs, other than those instituted by the Lord Jesus Christ and
His inspired apostles, and that they are particularly called to bear
witness against that so-called “holy day” first instituted by the
emperor Constantine, which has, in an extreme form, been forced
upon the people of New England as a necessary adjunct to the
worship of God.
This zealous young minister appears to consider it his plain
duty to stem this awful tide of anarchy as best he may, lest it
become a torrent in New England that no man can stay. Thus
.bn 285.png
.pn +1
he may distinguish himself in a pulpit once occupied by the famous
Governor Saltonstall and succeed where even that dignitary
failed. He will endeavor to bring such new odium and wrath
upon this obstinate sect as shall effectually annihilate their Society.
Among the first efforts of Mr. Byles are sermons regarding the
sanctity of the Sabbath, accompanied by other attempts to arouse
his own people and the rest of the community (outside the Rogerene
Society) to the duty and necessity of putting a stop to any
desecration whatever of the “sacred” day.[161]
.fn 161
After the terrible scenes which have been brought about by his policy, we find
him, even in taking leave of the Congregational church, complaining that the laws
against the Rogerenes are “not enforced.” If in the day of his disaster he is
making such complaint, what must have been his urgency at the time of his confident
entry upon this scene?
.fn-
The Rogerenes soon find themselves not only preached to and
against, but seriously meddled with by the town authorities in
ways for a long time neglected. It is now again as in the days of
John Rogers, when he stated that “the priests stirred up the
people and the mob” against his Society.
The Rogerene countermove is almost unknown to this generation
of rulers; as for traditions concerning it, or the mild warnings
of 1745 and 1754, perchance certain officials would be nothing
loath to see if they could not, by the trial of a more vigorous policy,
succeed better than did their predecessors in such contests, nor
would such officials be likely to anticipate lack of general public
sympathy in such an effort. It is as important to the Baptist
church as to the Congregational that Sunday should be accounted
a sacred day; let it be accounted otherwise, where would be attendants
on “divine worship”? Surely the young people would
go to places of amusement or of mischief, rather than to meeting-houses.
The object lesson presented by these upright and deeply
religious Rogerenes, whose youth are among the most exemplary
and godly in the land, is naturally lost upon a people who cannot
trust the Lord himself to furnish sufficient guidance for His church.
Joseph Bolles (born 1701), eldest son of John Bolles, is a leader
.bn 286.png
.pn +1
among the Rogerenes, standing shoulder to shoulder with his
father and John Waterhouse. He is a talented man, holding,
like his father, “the pen of a ready writer,” and is clerk of the
Rogerene Society. John Bolles being now over eighty years of
age, this son largely takes his place in the active work of the
Society, on the New London side. Yet the grand old patriarch,
still vigorous in mind, sits prominent in the councils, giving these
active men and youth the benefit of his experience, wisdom and
piety, combined with an enthusiasm as ardent as that of the
youngest of them all.
The more the magistrates, inspired by Mr. Byles, re-enforce his
sermons by strict and unusual measures, the more do the Rogerenes,
following their olden policy in such emergencies, add to their
Sunday labors in the endeavor to fully convince their opponents
that they are not to be coerced in this matter.
Ere long, the Rogerenes are severely fined, and in lieu of payment
of such fines, which never have been voluntarily paid, are
imprisoned, sometimes twenty at a time, many of them being kept
in durance for a period of seven months. Their goods and the
best of their cattle and horses are seized, to be sold at auction
and nothing returned. Those having no such seizable property,
are imprisoned for non-payment of minister’s rates. In the midst
of this strenuous attack, Mr. Byles preaches an elaborate sermon,
to be published and circulated, in answer to what he calls the
“Challenge” of the Rogerenes, viz., their reiterated requests that
the besieging party will show them any Scriptural authority for
the so-called religious observance of the first day of the week, or
for any required “holy Sabbath” under the new dispensation. In
this sermon he calls the Rogerenes “blind, deluded, obstinate,”
which terms are quite as applicable to the church party, from the
Rogerene point of view. The onset continues, with added determination
on the attacking side and no show of weakening on that
of the defense.
Since the pen is mightier than the sword, it may do good service
in such a time of peril as threatens the very existence of this
.bn 287.png
.pn +1
devoted sect. Joseph Bolles, sitting by his father’s side, sharpens
his quill to a fine point,[162] and the tremulous but earnest voice of
the faithful patriarch not only aids the theme, but speaks words
of comfort and of cheer; for is not this the cause of the Lord
himself?
.fn 162
See extracts from “Reply to Mr. Byles,” by Joseph Bolles, in Appendix.
.fn-
There is another, John Rogers (3d), who, like his father and
grandfather before him, holds the pen of a ready writer. He was
born in 1724, three years after the death of his illustrious grandfather.
With the rapt attention, the retentive memory and the
plastic mind of youth, he has received from his father’s lips accounts
of the thrilling experiences of the past; as a young man,
he has followed the teachings and emulated the deeds of his people.
He, too, will sharpen a quill ere long.
[Particular attention is here called to the following reference to
Mr. Byles, in the “Reply of Joseph Bolles.” See Appendix for
full connection. “It is this sort of ministers that preach to the
General Court to suppress or persecute them that walk by the
apostle’s doctrine, for not observing this Sabbath which he” (Byles)
“says the apostles ‘left to after discoveries.’” It is certain that the
Rogerenes are under no difficulty in discerning from whence
emanates the influence that has set this new persecution on foot
and is continuing it to a crisis.]
The first efforts at repression proving ineffectual, severer measures
are adopted by the attacking party. Yet there are several
years more of patient endurance and forbearance on the part of
the Rogerenes before they resolve to turn upon their foes the sole
effectual means of defense at their command in times like these.
Among legal weapons available to the church party are four
ecclesiastical laws, the strict application of which—as regards
the Rogerenes, at least—have fallen into disuse, viz.: the law
against Sunday labor, that against going from one’s house on Sunday
except to and from authorized meetings, the law against unauthorized
meetings and those holding or attending such meetings,
and the law by which any one not attending meetings of the ruling
.bn 288.png
.pn +1
order or the services of some authorized Society of which he is a
member, in a regular meeting-house on Sunday, can be fined for
every such absence.[163] (Besides these are the large fines for baptizing
and administering the Lord’s Supper on the part of unauthorized
persons.)
.fn 163
There are traditions among descendants of the Rogerenes to the effect that one
of the features of the persecution that called forth the countermove of 1764-6 was
molestation of the Rogerenes for not attending regular (“lawful”) meetings. This
tradition is found in different families situated far apart. Mr. John R. Bolles received
such a statement from his mother (who was a daughter of John Rogers, 3d).
Since this history asserts nothing upon tradition, this cannot be stated as a proven
fact, although it appears fully probable.
.fn-
It is optional with the town magistrates to present persons
guilty of breaking any of the above laws before the next County
Court or to deal with such “at their own discretion,” a discretion
which in a number of instances has taken the form of lynch law,
by giving the offenders over to a mischievous mob. It is not the
policy at this time to present the Rogerenes before the County
Court; not only would such publicity be liable to create outside
sympathy with the Rogerenes, but the fines of this court for such
offenses are limited to an inconsiderable amount, expressed in
shillings, while the “discretion” of the town magistrates allows of
serious fines, expressed in pounds, as well as imprisonment, stocks
and stripes. The damaging effect of a friendly jury is also to be
avoided. (But one reference to the Rogerenes is to be found on
the records of the County Court during the more or less turbulent
period between 1758 and 1766; this reference occurs in regard to
the barring of the doors of the New London prison by the prisoners,
for which the penalty is conspicuously slight.—See end of
this Chapter.)
While this persecution, the most virulent that has ever been
visited upon the Rogerenes as a Society, is nearing a crisis, occurs
the death of Ebenezer Bolles, June 24, 1762, at the age of fifty-four,
through contact with “poisonous wood.”[164] An obituary notice,
.bn 289.png
.pn +1
in the next issue of the Connecticut Gazette, attests to the
wealth, integrity, hospitality and general worthiness of this New
London merchant, and also states that no physician or medicines
were allowed in his sickness,[165] he “belonging to the Society of
Rogerenes.”
.fn 164
There are said to be indications (J. S. Sachse) that memorial services for
Ebenezer Bolles, as entertainer of the Pilgrims in 1744, were held at the Ephrata
Cloister. In a reference to his death, on the records of the Cloister, is this invocation:
“God grant him a blessed resurrection!”
.fn-
.fn 165
The ineffectiveness of medicines and applications to even alleviate the symptoms
of such poisoning, after the malady is fully under way, is well known. Yet
neither with nor without the use of medical means would death be expected to
ensue in such a case. That there was an unsuspected complication in this instance,
leading to sudden death, seems probable. To persons living in the country, as
did the Rogerenes for the most part, an illness so common as poisoning by ivy or
by alder (apparently the latter in this case) would not be regarded of a really dangerous
character, however distressing. There have been persons greatly bloated
and in great suffering by such poison, whose condition gave no serious alarm
and who recovered in the usual period.
.fn-
The account of this death, as of that of John Rogers in 1721,
is important; since it affords proof, more than forty years after
the latter event, that this Society are as unswerving as ever in their
adherence to Scriptural methods. How much reason has John
Bolles, now in his 86th year, to discard this faith, even in the day
of his great bereavement? He has still twelve children in health
and vigor, between the ages of 60 and 20, eight of whom are destined
to live to the following ages: 94, 91, 85, 84, 83, 82, 78, 75,
and the other four beyond middle life. In the Rogers and other
leading Rogerene families there appears a like flourishing condition.
After more than five year’s continuance of aggravations instituted
and continued under the leadership of Mr. Byles, which
have finally reached a stage past endurance, the Rogerenes, on
both sides of the river, are gathering in council about a common
campfire, to consider the move that must be made, a countermove
beside which the entrance of John Rogers and his wheelbarrow
into the meeting-house in 1694 shall pale to insignificance.[166] The
plan concluded upon bears the stamp of such veterans in the
.bn 290.png
.pn +1
cause as John Bolles and John Waterhouse, as well as of keen
young wits besides. They will give their enemies all the attendance
upon meetings in “lawful assemblies” on their part, that
these enemies will be likely to invite for some time to come; they
will enter into those assemblies, and, if necessary, there will they
testify against this “holy Sabbath,” for the non-observance of
which they are again so bitterly persecuted, and against such other
features of the worship of their enemies as are opposed to the
teachings of the New Testament. So long as the ecclesiastical
laws which forced their sect into existence are executed against
them, so long will they enter into those assemblies thus to testify.
The unscriptural features against which they will testify are
easily set forth, and to these the testimony shall be strictly confined,
with no mention of themselves or their wrongs. For whatever
comes of this testimony, made in the name of the Lord Jesus
Christ in accordance with His teachings, and after the example of
His apostles, they are prepared, even though it be martyrdom.
The first attempt shall be of a tacit nature; if that avail as a warning,
well and good; they will not disturb the meetings unless compelled
to such extremity.
.fn 166
Quakertown traditions regarding this period are no less thrilling than those
of New London side, and point to measures reaching even into the wilds of Groton.
Only by spies and officials in the vicinity of the Groton Rogerenes, could they have
been made to share in the persecution. As before said, most of their neighbors
were Baptists. A historical account of the Baptist church of that vicinity avers,
apparently from tradition, that some of the Groton Rogerenes came to that church
in this period, bringing work, interrupting the minister, etc. If the Groton Rogerenes
were seriously molested by these Baptists, it is not unlikely that they instituted
a countermove on that church for protection; but we have been unable to discover
any proof of the accuracy of the statement regarding disturbance of the Baptist
meetings, no record regarding such disturbance having been found, or any contemporary
mention of the same. (See “Quakertown Chapter.”)
The fact that the Rogerene leaders of Groton were closely related to some on
the New London side, added to the fact that they were church brethren, is sufficient
to account for their joining with the Quaker Hill people in the New London
countermove. John Waterhouse had a son of the same name living on Quaker
Hill at this time, on a farm that had been given to him by his father.
.fn-
Mild indeed seems that first countermove (1685) when Capt.
James Rogers, by the commotion which his “testimony” called
forth in the meeting-house caused “some women to swound,” in
comparison with that of the Sunday, June 10, 1764, when a procession
of Rogerenes from Quaker Hill, re-enforced by friends from
.bn 291.png
.pn +1
Groton, and including men, women, and children, wends its solemn
and portentous way into the town, to enter into the midst of
their persecutors.
Upon reaching the meeting-house, a number quietly enter, others
remain outside. The men who enter keep on their hats, in token
of dissent to the doctrines of this church. If some of these hats
chance to be broad-brimmed, so much the better. Wonderingly
and fearfully must the larger part of the congregation behold this
entrance and the quick-rising ire on the faces of such church
members as are most responsible for its occurrence. As for Mr.
Byles, his sensations may be imagined. He is in the midst of his
usual long prayer[167] containing copious information to the Creator
of the Universe, together with thanks and commendation to the
same Almighty Power, for many circumstances which have been
brought about by men in direct disobedience to His revealed Word;
also petitions for the forgiveness of the sins of this congregation,
some of the most serious of which—as persecution of their neighbors—they
fully intend to commit over and over again. In all
probability some portion of this prayer is aimed directly at the
Rogerenes, in regard to keeping “holy” the Sabbath day.
.fn 167
It was usually in the time of this unscriptural prayer that the countermove
took place.
.fn-
Some commotion, caused by the entrance of the Rogerenes,
compels Mr. Byles to open his eyes before this long prayer is at
an end. When he does open them, he beholds these men with
their hats on and these women engaged in knitting, or some small
sewing, in token that they, too, are Rogerenes.
How long certain officials, and other church members, restrain
themselves is uncertain, even if they restrain themselves at all
from vengeance dire; but before the prayer is regularly ended, the
Rogerenes are fallen upon and driven out of the meeting-house
with great violence and fury, while those in waiting outside are
attacked with like rage, prominent church members and officials
kicking and beating unresisting men, women and children and
driving them to prison.
.bn 292.png
.pn +1
This treatment but deepens the determination of the Rogerenes.
It is evident that merely keeping on their hats and doing a little
knitting or sewing will not answer for an emergency like this. It
must be no fault of theirs if this effort in the Master’s cause shall
fail. They now enter the assembly of their persecutors to declare,
by word of mouth and with no lack of distinctness, against the
false doctrines of this persecuting church. This testimony will
they add to the silent mode of disapproval until these enemies
desist from their unendurable attempts at coercion, and from these
furious beatings, kickings, drivings, imprisonments, etc.
The party who renewed this almost forgotten contest, under the
leadership of Mr. Byles and his friends, with the intention of
making the position of the Rogerenes untenable, having brought
affairs to this crisis, are resolved to conquer. They proceed in the
line of violence which they have inaugurated, and in their rage
even demand of these devoted people that—to escape torture—they
recant their testimony against the doctrines and practices of
this church. Their testimony being of a purely Scriptural character,
how can they recant, even if they would, except by denying
the truth of those declarations from the New Testament which
they have proclaimed in the presence of their persecutors? The
zeal of the Rogerenes is only redoubled. It is now a question
whether they will obey men rather than God, for fear of what
men may do to them. Yet, in their strict fidelity to the teachings
of Christ, they make no resistance to the redoubled efforts of their
enemies. Though their old men are scourged to the verge of
death and their women insulted; though their brethren are suspended
by the thumbs to be mercilessly whipped on the bare skin;
though warm tar is poured on their heads; though men and women
are driven through the streets more brutally than any cattle, to
be thrown into the river; though they are given over to mobs of
heartless children and youth to be whipped with thorny sticks and
otherwise abused, not the smallest or weakest of their persecutors
need fear the slightest violence in return.
With every attempt at a fresh testimony, the brutality of their
.bn 293.png
.pn +1
enemies is increased and the terms of imprisonment doubled, until
the prison is filled to suffocation and some of those within venture
to bar the doors against the incarceration of fresh victims. It
being impossible to further punish the offenders already in prison,
other than through presentation to the County Court, those who
have barred the door are presented at that court, probably on
their own confession, by reason of which there is one court record,
relating to this otherwise lawless contest of a year and a half in
duration, which is to the following effect:—
.pm start_quote
“Samuel Rogers, John Rogers, Alexander Rogers, Nathaniel Rogers”
(all sons of John Rogers, 2d) “and Joseph Bolles, of New London, Samuel
Smith of Groton” (grandson of Bathsheba) “Timothy Waterhouse”
(son of John of Groton) “bound over to the County Court to answer
complaint of Christopher Christophers” (son of Chris. Chris.) “sheriff of
New London, for that said persons, with sundry other persons, on Sunday,
Aug. 12th, 1764, did, in a very high-handed, tumultuous manner,
being in N. L. prison, bar up the doors of said prison on the justice,
so that said sheriff and officers were denied and prevented admission into
and possession of said prison, and made a most tumultuous noise and
uproar &c. as pr. writ.”
.pm end_quote
The sentence of the court is a fine of 40s. each and costs of prosecution,
£2 each, which indicates more sympathy than severity
on the part of this court.
[Since the early and the latter scenes of this long contest are
shown to have been marked by unflinching endurance, unswerving
courage and strategic measures on the part of the defence, it may
be judged that during the entire period of unrelenting endeavors
to continue to a successful issue the policy instigated by Mr. Byles,
the assailants of the Rogerenes were encouraged by no signs of
weakening on the part of the sufferers, while much discouraged
by the disgrace attached to their church and the disapprobation
of not a few of its own members, on account of the unprecedentedly
severe policy that had brought on this countermove and the
startlingly barbarous punishments for the same.]
.bn 294.png
.pn +1
After nearly two year’s continuance of such heroic measures,
under leadership of Mr. Byles and his friends, the Rogerenes,
while many of their heads of families are in prison, institute a
new kind of tactics, striking more directly at the very root of the
matter, viz., at Mr. Byles. The plan is to have some of their
people besiege Mr. Byles, at every conceivable opportunity, with
attempts to converse with him in regard to the teachings of the
New Testament, and to reason with him concerning the cruelties
practised upon the Rogerenes. They are also to go to the meeting-house
on Sunday and sit directly in his sight, and they are to
linger in the neighborhood of his house or the meeting-house, where
he may know of their vicinity and expect them to walk with him
and talk to him “of the things of God,” whenever he ventures
outside.
Victory is now near at hand. Mr. Byles is driven nearly frantic.
His tormentors are thrown into prison for declining to give bonds
or to pay fines for attempts to approach this gentleman and converse
with him. In this serio-comic crisis, parties of Rogerenes
enter the meeting-house on Sunday and sit where Mr. Byles cannot
fail to observe their grave, earnest and otherwise expressive
faces, telling volumes at a glance, of inexpressible sufferings and
losses, endured through tedious months and wasting years, of
children left fatherless and motherless at home or wandering the
streets tearful and hungry, and of many a bitter thing well known
to Mr. Byles. But, most eloquent of all to him and most impressive,
is the fixed determination in their faces to continue in his
sight at every opportunity. Even a cat may look at a king without
fear of consequences, and so do the Rogerenes look at Mr.
Byles. Here is something that has been left out of the law books.
Ere long, the able-bodied men and women not in prison may
attend to business and family duties, while a few old people,
principally women, go on Sunday to sit in the meeting-house, or
stand outside before and after meeting. Also on week days they
sit or stand in the vicinity of Mr. Byle’s house, until he will not
venture out, if but one such person is near. Nor will he go to the
.bn 295.png
.pn +1
church on Sunday, even if there are but two or three Rogerene
women outside, until some official drives them away and escorts
him to the meeting-house. The bell is sometimes kept tolling a
full hour, until it is time the long service should be well under
way, before the minister makes his appearance; he has been waiting
for some one to drive these women away.
For the whole time—more than two months—that the men
who have attempted to converse with Mr. Byles are kept in prison,
these faithful women keep the watch on Mr. Byles. When the
men are at length released, they renew their endeavors to talk
with Mr. Byles. It is now not long before Mr. Byles has had
more than enough opportunity to distinguish himself in an endeavor
to extinguish the Rogerenes. He is determined not only
to leave New London but to desert the Congregational ministry
and denomination, and lays all the blame of his failure to conquer
these people upon lack of execution of the ecclesiastical laws!!![168]
His determination is sudden, so far as the knowledge of his parishioners
is concerned, and his exit speedy in the extreme. (For
particulars regarding his resignation, see extract from “Debate,
etc.,” in Appendix.)
.fn 168
Mr. Byles, having precipitately left New London and the country to receive
Episcopal orders in England, his “forsaken congregation” (Caulkins) criticised
and ridiculed him mercilessly, even to lampoons (see “History of New London”),
among which was one called “The Proselyte,” which was sung to the tune of “The
Thief and the Cordelier.” He afterwards became an Episcopal minister in Boston,
but in the time of the Revolution was a royalist and a refugee, among those prohibited
from returning to Massachusetts. He was succeeded in the Congregational
church at New London by Rev. Ephraim Woodbridge, grandson of the
first Congregational minister of Groton, of the same name. Mr. Woodbridge was
a most estimable man. He allowed of no admission to church membership without
evidence of conversion, contrary to the practice so long in vogue in New
London previous to his ministry. It is a notable fact that certain families belonging
to the Congregational church before this season of persecution, are afterwards
found members of another denomination. It is unlikely that the popularity
of this church was other than injured by the fame of this exploit, the effect of which,
as well as the new rule for admission, may help to account for the fact that by 1776
there were but five men on its roll of membership. It will be remembered that
some members of this church were allied to the Rogerenes, while others were evidently
liberal and friendly.
.fn-
.bn 296.png
.pn +1
The Rogerenes may now rest on their laurels. With Mr. Byles
out of the way, we hear no more of harsh measures being employed
against this sect. They may now attend their own meetings
upon Sunday instead of those of their opponents, never neglecting,
however, to give sufficient evidence that this is to them a
holiday and not a “holy day.”
John Bolles lived to praise God that He had granted His servants
strength to continue faithful to the end and given them so
signal a victory. This devout and heroic Christian was called to
his reward in his ninetieth year, January 7, 1767.
In another decade, is heard the trumpet call of the Revolution.
It is more than probable that a people of such courage and love
of liberty have some difficulty at this time in keeping their sentiments
within scriptural limits, and still more difficulty in holding
back their youth from the fray. Not a few grandsons of John
Rogers, 2d, and John Bolles, as well as other Rogerene youth,
break away. One of them crosses the Delaware with Washington,
and another is in the body-guard of the great general. The
young volunteers of this blood and training fight bravely on land
and sea. Some of them die on the field and some in loathsome
prison ships.[169] Outside of the John Rogers descent, many are the
descendants of James Rogers, 1st, that join the Continental army
and navy. Yet, for the most part, the Rogerene youth hold firmly
to the doctrine of non-resistance as set forth in the New Testament.
Many of them are among the first to note the inconsistency
between the sentence in the Declaration of Independence regarding
the equal rights of all men and the clause in the Constitution
countenancing slavery. As for the torch of religious liberty which
this sect held aloft in the darkness, through many a weary contest,—a
few years more, and the flame that it has helped to kindle
leaps high, in the dim dawn of that day whose sun shall yet flood
the heavens.
.fn 169
Of John Bolles, 4th (on his mother’s side a grandson of Joseph Bolles), who
served in the Revolution on board armed vessels of Connecticut, and died on board
a prison ship of the enemy, it was said, by one who knew him, that he was “a
young man of extraordinary intelligence, information and gallantry.”
.fn-
.bn 297.png
.pn +1
[For further elucidation of the events set forth in this chapter,
there is presented in the Appendix an extract from the pamphlet
published about 1759 by Joseph Bolles, describing some of the
opening events of this persecution under the leadership of Mr.
Byles, also several extracts from the pamphlet written by John
Rogers, 3d, giving particulars of the merciless punishments inflicted
upon those who took part in the countermove of 1764-66.
This pamphlet is entitled “A Looking Glass for the Presbyterians
of New London.” The limits of this chapter have allowed of very
brief presentation of those cruelties, expressed in general terms.
Still other extracts from the pamphlet by John Rogers, 3d, may
be found in the “History of New London”; but only a perusal
of the whole work could give an adequate idea of the barbarous
cruelties practised upon the Rogerenes in this contest, during the
whole of which not one of the victims was charged with returning
a single blow or making any resistance to the attacks of the lynching
parties. There is also presented in the Appendix, in connection
with this chapter, quotations from a pamphlet which appeared
shortly after the resignation of Mr. Byles, under the auspices of
the Congregational church, entitled A Debate between Rev. Mr.
Byles and the Brethren, which portion relates to Mr. Byle’s determination
to leave that church and ministry, and shows his aversion
to the Rogerenes who were his victors. It will be seen that from
the three above-mentioned sources has been drawn the information
contained in this chapter.]
.bn 298.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_13'
CHAPTER XIII. | QUAKERTOWN.
.sp 2
In the new century, ecclesiastical persecutions are scarcely more
than a tradition, save to the aged men and women still living who
took part in their youth in the great countermove, the sufferings
attendant upon which are now, even to them, as a nightmare
dream. The laws that nerved to heroic protest a people resolved
to obey no dictation of man in regard to the worship of God lie
dead upon the statute book—although as yet not buried. The
Rogerenes are taking all needful rest on Sunday, the day set apart
for their meetings. Many of those on the New London side
mingle as interested listeners in the various orthodox congregations.
They walk where they please on Sunday, and are no longer
molested. The merciless intolerance that brought this sect into
existence being no longer itself tolerated, the chief mission of the
Rogerenes is well nigh accomplished. The children may soon
enter into that full Christian liberty, in the cause of which their
fathers suffered and withstood, during the dark era of ecclesiastical
despotism in New England.
After the last veterans in this cause have been gathered to their
rest, the past is more and more crowded out by the busy present.
Most of the male descendants of the New London Rogerenes remove
to other parts. Many of them are among the hardiest and
most enterprising of the western pioneers. From homes in New
York and Pennsylvania they move farther and farther west, until
no State but has a strain from Bolles and Quaker Hill. Descendants
who remain in New London, lacking a leader of their own
sect in this generation, join in a friendly manner with other denominations,
affiliating most readily with the Baptists and being least
associated with the still dominant church. In Groton, however,
despite some emigration, is still to be found an unbroken band of
.bn 299.png
.pn +1
Rogerenes, and a remnant upon Quaker Hill continues in fellowship
with those of Groton.
As the region occupied by John Rogers, John Bolles and their
neighborhood of followers received the name of Quaker Hill, so
that district in Groton occupied chiefly by Rogerenes received the
name of Quakertown.
We find no written account or authenticated tradition regarding
the beginnings of Quakertown, save that here was the home of
the Groton leader, John Waterhouse. Given a man of this stamp
as resident for half a century, and we have abundant cause for the
founding in this place of a community of Rogerenes as compact
as that at Quaker Hill.
Quakertown occupies a district about two miles square in the
southeastern part of the present town of Ledyard. It was formerly
a part of Groton. Among the early Rogerenes of this vicinity was
John Culver. Besides gifts of land from his father, John Culver
had received a gift of land from Major John Pynchon of Springfield,
Mass., in recognition of the “care, pains and service” of his
father (John Culver, Sr.) in the division of Mr. Pynchon’s lands
(Groton Records) formerly owned in partnership with James
Rogers. John Culver, Jr., did not, however, depend upon farming,
being a “panel maker” by trade. As has been seen, John
Culver and his family removed to New Jersey about 1735, there
to found a Rogerene settlement. (See Chapter XII.) His daughter
Esther, however, remained in Groton, as the wife of John
Waterhouse.
Among other early Groton residents was Samuel Whipple from
Providence, both of whose grandfathers were nonconformists who
had removed to Rhode Island to escape persecution in Massachusetts.
About 1712 this enterprising man purchased a large amount
of land (said to be 1,000 acres) about eight miles from the present
Quakertown locality, in or near the present village of Poquetannoc.
Upon a stream belonging to this property, he built iron-works
and a saw-mill. It is said that the product of the iron-works
was of a superior quality, and that anchors and iron portions
.bn 300.png
.pn +1
of some of the ships built in New London were made at these
works.[170] Samuel Whipple’s son Zacharia married a daughter
(Elizabeth) of John Rogers, 2d; a grandson (Noah) of his son Samuel
married a granddaughter (Hope Whipple) of the same leader,
and a daughter (Anne) of his son Daniel married a grandson
(William Rogers) of the same; while a daughter (Content) of his
son Zachariah married Timothy Waterhouse, son of John Waterhouse.
Yet it was not until early in the nineteenth century that
descendants of Samuel Whipple in the male line became residents
of Quakertown.[171] That the early affiliations of the Whipple family
with the Rogerenes had fitted their descendants for close union
with the native residents of the place is indicated by the prominent
position accorded the Whipples in this community.
.fn 170
In his will, dated 1727, Samuel Whipple left the iron-works and saw-mill to
his son Daniel; his lands with buildings to be divided between his sons Samuel,
Zacharia and Zephania. The portion of Zacharia sold in 1734 for £1,000.
.fn-
.fn 171
The first of the name who came to Quakertown was Samuel Whipple (son of
above Noah and Hope), born in 1766, a man of most estimable character and devotedly
attached to peace principles. His brother Silas also settled in Quakertown.
Samuel is ancestor of those of the name now resident in that locality.
.fn-
Other families of Groton and its neighborhood affiliated and
intermarried with Rogerenes early in the nineteenth century. William
Crouch of Groton married a daughter of John Bolles. This
couple are ancestors of many of the later day Rogerenes of Quakertown.
Two sons and two grandsons of Timothy Watrous married
daughters of Alexander Rogers of Quaker Hill (one of the younger
sons of John, 2d). Although there was a proportion of Rogers
and Bolles lineage in this community at an early date, there was
not one of the Rogers or Bolles name. Later, a son of Alexander
Rogers, 2d, married in Quakertown and settled there; but this is
not a representative name in that locality, while Watrous, Whipple
and Crouch are to be distinctly classed as such.
As for other families who joined the founders of Quakertown or
became associated with their descendants, it is safe to say that
men and women who, on account of strict adherence to apostolic
teachings, relinquished all hope of worldly pleasures and successes,
.bn 301.png
.pn +1
to join the devoted people of this isolated district, were of a most
religious and conscientious character.
Generally speaking, the New London descendants in the nineteenth
century are a not uncompromising leaven, scattered far and
wide among many people and congregations whose religious traditions
and predilections are, unlike their own, of an ecclesiastical
type. Every radical leaven of a truly Christian character is destined
to have beneficial uses, for which reason it cannot so much
be regretted that the fate of the New London community was to
be broken up and widely disseminated.
While the New London Rogerenes were, through the mollifying
influences of a liberal public opinion, as well as by a wide emigration
and lack of a leader fitted to the emergency, slowly but surely
blending with the world around them, quite a different policy was
crystallizing upon the Groton side. That the Rogerene sect should
continue and remain a separate people was undoubtedly the intention
of John Rogers, John Rogers, 2d, John Bolles and their
immediate followers; aye, a separate people until that day, should
such day ever arrive, when there should be a general acceptance
of the law of love instituted by Christ, in place of the old law of
force and retaliation. Yet not only had these early leaders more
than enough upon them in their desperate struggle for religious
liberty, but they could not sufficiently foresee conditions ahead of
their times, in order to establish their sect for a different era.
It was by the instinct of self-preservation combined with conscious
inability to secure any adequate outside footing in the new
state of affairs, that the small but compact band at Quakertown,
beholding with dismay and disapproval the breaking up of the
main body on the New London side, resolved to prevent such a
disbanding of their own Society, by carefully bringing up their
children in the faith and as carefully avoiding contact with other
denominations. It was a heroic purpose, the more so because such
a policy of isolation was so evidently perilous to the race. Not so
evident was the fact that such exclusiveness must eventually destroy
the sect which they so earnestly desired to preserve. Such,
.bn 302.png
.pn +1
as has been seen, was not the policy of that founder whose flock
were “scattered throughout New England,” and some of the most
efficient of whose co-workers were drawn from the midst of an
antagonistic denomination; neither was it the policy of him who
carried his Petition not only to the General Court of Connecticut,
but to that of Massachusetts. Yet it was no ordinary man
who carried out the policy above outlined, with a straightforward
purpose and vigorous leadership, in the person of elder Zephania
Watrous, a grandson of John Waterhouse.
John Waterhouse was living in 1773, at which date he was
eighty-three years of age.[172] Considerably previous to that time he
must have been succeeded by some younger man.
.fn 172
At the same date, Andrew Davis must also have been advanced in years.
.fn-
Elder Timothy Watrous, the Groton leader, who next appears
to view, was a son of John Waterhouse, born in 1740. He is
said to have been an able preacher and a man of the highest degree
of probity.
Supposing John Waterhouse to have been in active service to
his seventy-fifth year, Timothy could have succeeded him at the
age of twenty-four, at which age the latter took part in the great
countermove of 1764-66. His experience in this conflict is given
in his own words:—
.pm start_quote
In the fore part of my life, the principal religion of the country
was strongly defended by the civil power and many articles of the established
worship were in opposition to the religion of Jesus Christ. Therefore
I could not conform to them with a clear conscience. So I became
a sufferer. I endured many sore imprisonments and cruel whippings.
Once I received forty stripes save one with an instrument of , consisting
of rods about three and a half feet long, with snags an inch long
to tear the flesh. Once I was taken and my head and face covered with
warm pitch, which filled my eyes and put me in great torment, and in that
situation was turned out in the night and had two miles to go without
the assistance of any person and but little help of my eyes. And many
other things I have suffered, as spoiling of goods, mockings, etc. etc.
But I do not pretend to relate particularly what I have suffered; for it
would take a large book to contain it. But in these afflictions I have
.bn 303.png
.pn +1
seen the hand of God in holding me up; and I have had a particular love
to my persecutors at times, which so convicted them that they confessed
that I was assisted with the spirit of Christ. But although I had so
tender a feeling towards them that I could freely do them all the good
in my power; yet the truth of my cause would not suffer me to conform
to their worship, or flinch at their cruelty one jot, though my life was
at stake; for many times they threatened to kill me. But, through the
mercy of God, I have been kept alive to this day and am seventy years
of age; and I am as strong in the defense of the truth as I was when I
suffered. But my persecutors are all dead; there is not one of them left.
.pm end_quote
This extract is from a book entitled “The Battle Axe,” written
by the above Timothy, Sr., and his sons Timothy and Zacharia.
Timothy, Jr., succeeded his father as leader and preacher in this
Society. Zacharia was a schoolmaster of considerable note, and
at one time taught school at “the head of the river.” He invented
the coffee mill so generally in use, which important invention, his
widow, being ignorant of its worth, sold for forty dollars. Having
discovered some copper ore in the vicinity of his house, he smelted
it and made a kettle. After a vain search to find a printer willing
to publish “The Battle Axe,” he made a printing-press, by means
of which, after his death, his brother Timothy published the book.
Thus “The Battle Axe,” even aside from its subject-matter, was
a book of no ordinary description. At a later date it was reprinted
by the ordinary means. Copies of the first edition are
now exceedingly rare, and held at a high price. There is a copy
of this edition in the Smithsonian Institute. We present an extract
from the body of this work in the Appendix, but no adequate
knowledge of the book can be obtained from so limited a space.
Men who could venture to decry war in the very height of public
exaltation over the success of the struggle for independence were
too far ahead of their age, in this regard, to attract other than unfriendly
attention.[173]
.fn 173
The tone and style of this work as a whole are in marked contrast to the works
of John Rogers, 1st, John Rogers, 2d, and John Bolles, whose writings, although
earnest, are of a very dispassionate character.
.fn-
The first proof discovered, that the Rogerenes have conscientious
.bn 304.png
.pn +1
scruples in regard to paying the military fine,[174] is a printed Petition
issued by Alexander Rogers, one of the younger sons of John, 2d,
of Quaker Hill, a thorough Rogerene, and, as has been seen,
closely allied with those of Quakertown. This Petition is dated
1810, at which time Alexander Rogers was eighty-two years of
age; his children, however, were comparatively young. The fine
was for not allowing his son to enter the train-band. (This Petition
will be found in Appendix.) It proves that, even at so late a
date as this, the authorities were seizing Rogerene property in the
same way as of old, taking in this instance for a fine of a few shillings
the only cow in the possession of the family, and making no
return. As of old, no attempt is made to sue for the amount
taken over and above the legal fine, but this Petition is printed
and probably well circulated in protest.[175]
.fn 174
It is very possible that this Society refused to pay military fines from the first;
but no record of such refusal has been found.
.fn-
.fn 175
An original printed copy of this Petition is extant in Quakertown.
.fn-
Soon after the death of Timothy Watrous, Sr., and that of his
son Zachariah, occurred the death of Timothy, Jr., in 1814. The
latter was succeeded in leadership of the Society by his youngest
brother, Zephania, then about thirty years of age.
By this time, the Quakertown Society had become so large that
there was need of better accommodations for their meetings than
could be afforded in an ordinary house. In 1815 the Quakertown
meeting-house was built, that picturesque and not inartistic house
of many gables, the first floor of which was for the occupation of
the elder and his family, while the unpartitioned second story was
for Rogerene meetings.
Materials and labor for the building of this meeting-house were
furnished by members of the Society. The timber is said to have
been supplied from a forest felled by the September gale of 1815,
and sawed in a saw-mill owned by Rogerenes. The same gale
had unroofed the old Watrous (John Waterhouse) dwelling which
stood near the site of the meeting-house.[176]
.fn 176
The old meeting-house is upon land which was part of the farm occupied by
John Waterhouse, and afterwards by his son Timothy.
.fn-
.bn 305.png
.pn +1
The Quakertown people had a schoolhouse of their own as well
as a meeting-house, and thus fully controlled the training of their
youth and preserved them from outside influence. About the
middle of the century, a regular meeting-house was built. The
old meeting-house was turned entirely into a dwelling. The newer
meeting-house resembles a schoolhouse.
Zephania Watrous was the last of the prominent leaders in this
community. He was not only gifted as a religious teacher, but
possessed much mechanical genius. By an ingenious device, water
from a large spring was conducted into the cellar of the meeting-house
and made to run the spinning-wheels in the living-room
above, where were made linen thread and fine table linen, in
handsome patterns. A daughter of this preacher (a sweet old
lady, still living in this house in 1900) stated that she used often
in her youth to spin sixty knots of thread a day.
It is alleged in Quakertown that Rogerenes were the first to decry
slavery. This claim is not without foundation. Some of the
Quakers censured this practice as early as 1750, although many
of them held slaves for a considerable time after that date. Slavery
was not publicly denounced in their Society until 1760. It was
before 1730 that John Bolles came to the conclusion that slavery
was not in accordance with the teachings of the New Testament.
Copies of the papers by which he freed his slaves, bearing the
above date, may be seen among the New London town records.
His resolve to keep no more slaves and his reasons for it are among
the traditions cherished by his descendants. Attention has previously
been called to the evident aversion on the part of James
Rogers and his son John to the practice of keeping slaves in life
bondage. There is no indication that John Rogers, Sr., ever kept
a slave, and many indications to the contrary. His son John, however,
kept slaves to some extent, some of whom at least he freed
for “faithful service” (New London Records). Two able-bodied
“servants,” are found in his inventory.[177] His son James mentions
.bn 306.png
.pn +1
a servant, “Rose,” in his will of 1754. His son John, however,
never kept a slave, and his family were greatly opposed to that
practice, by force of early teaching. With the exceptions here
noted, no proof appears of the keeping of slaves among the early
Rogerenes, although many of them were in circumstances to indulge
in that practice, which was prevalent in their neighborhood.
The date at which slavery was denounced by the Rogerene Society
does not appear.
.fn 177
Town records reveal one of these as a freeman, years after, in a neighboring
town, a respected colored man, with an exceptionally lively family of children.
.fn-
It is certain that the Rogerenes of Quakertown were not only
among the first to declare against the brutality of war and the
sanction it received from ministers and church members, but
among the foremost in the denunciation of slavery. Nor were
there those lacking on the New London side to join hands with
their Groton friends on these grounds. The churches of New
London, in common with others, would not listen to any meddling
with slavery, partisanship on which question would surely have
divided those churches. The Rogerenes saw no justifiable evasion,
for Christians, of the rule to love God and your fellowmen, to
serve God and not Mammon, and to leave the consequences with
Him who gave the command.
At the period of the antislavery agitation, some of the descendants
of John Rogers and John Bolles on the New London side
(no longer called by the name of Rogerenes), and other sympathizers
with those of Quakertown, attended meetings in the upper
chamber of the house of many gables, and joined with them in
antislavery and other Rogerene sentiments, declarations and
endeavors. Among these visitors was William Bolles,[178] the
enterprising book publisher of New London (#Part I., Chapter VII.:ch_1_7#),
who had become an attendant upon the services of the
Baptist church of New London; but who withdrew from such
attendance after discovery that the minister and leading members
of that church expected those opposed to slavery to maintain silence
upon that subject. He published a paper in this cause, in
1838, called The Ultimatum, with the following heading:—
.bn 307.png
.pn +1
.ce
ULTIMATUM.
THE PRESS MUZZLED: PULPIT GAGGED: LIBERTY OF SPEECH
DESTROYED; THE CONSTITUTION TRAMPLED UNDER FOOT;
MOBS TRIUMPHANT, AND CITIZENS BUTCHERED: OR, SLAVERY
ABOLISHED—THE ONLY ALTERNATIVE.—FELLOW CITIZENS,
MAKE YOUR ELECTION.
.fn 178
Great-grandson of John Rogers, 2d, and of John Bolles.
.fn-
A few disconnected sentences (by way of brevity) selected from
one of the editorial columns of this sheet, will give some idea of
its style:—
.pm start_quote
It is with pleasure we make our second appearance before our fellow
citizens, especially when we remember the avidity with which our first
number was read, so that we were obliged to print a second edition.
Our sheet is the organ of no association of men or body of men, but it
is the friend of the oppressed and the uncompromising enemy of all
abuses in Church and State. Our friends S. and J. must not be surprised
that their communications are not admitted—the language is too harsh,
and partakes a little too much of the denunciatory spirit for us. We care
not how severely sin is rebuked, but we would remind them that a rebuke
is severe in proportion as the spirit is kind and the language courteous—our
object is to conciliate and reform, not to exasperate.
.pm end_quote
About the year 1850, several noted abolitionists came to New
London to hold a meeting. Rogerenes from Quakertown gathered
with others to hear the speeches. When the time for the meeting
arrived, the use of the court-house, which had previously been
promised them, was refused. In this dilemma, Mr. Bolles told
the speakers they could go to the burying-ground and there speak,
standing upon his mother’s grave. The meeting took place,
but during its continuance the speakers were pelted with rotten
eggs.[179]
.fn 179
This information was furnished by a native of Quakertown who attended this
meeting—Mr. Ira Whipple, afterwards of Westerly.
.fn-
Mr. Bolles often entertained at his house speakers in the abolition
cause. Such speakers were also entertained at Quakertown,
.bn 308.png
.pn +1
where they frequently held meetings when not allowed to speak
elsewhere in the region. The Rogerenes of this place also assisted
in the escape of fugitive slaves, Quakertown being, between 1830
and 1850, one of the stations of the Underground Railroad. Fugitive
slaves were brought here, under cover of darkness, concealed
in the meeting-house and forwarded by night to the next station.
For these daring deeds, the Quakertown people were repeatedly
mobbed and suffered losses.
Rogerenes were also among the first in the cause of temperance,
nor did they confine their temperance principles to the use of
tobacco and intoxicating liquors, but advocated temperance in
eating as well. Although never observing the fast days appointed
by ecclesiastical law, they made use of fasting with prayer, and
fasted for their physical as well as spiritual good, judging the
highest degree of mental or spiritual power not to be obtained by
persons who indulged in “fullness of bread.” (See “Answer to
Mr. Byles,” by Joseph Bolles, in Appendix.) The Rogerenes of
Quakertown have been and still are earnest advocates of temperance
principles.
The isolation and exclusiveness of the Quakertown community
in the nineteenth century has already been noted as a distinct departure
from the liberal and outreaching policy of the early Rogerenes.
There was yet another departure, in regard to freedom of
speech, which culminated, about the middle of the nineteenth century,
in a division of this community into two opposing parties.
At this date, Elder Zephania Watrous was advanced in years;
but he had been, and still was, a man of great force of character,
and was accounted a rigid disciplinarian. Only a man of such
type could have held this community to its strictly exclusive policy
for so long a period.
Free inquiry, with expression of individual views, was favored
by the Rogerenes from the first, and formed an important feature
of their meetings for study and exposition of gospel truths. Largely
by this very means were their youth trained to interest in, and
knowledge of, the Scriptures. Such freedom had been instituted
.bn 309.png
.pn +1
by the founder of the sect, with no restrictions save the boundary
line between liberty and license.[180]
.fn 180
In Mr. Bowna’s account of his conversation with John Rogers (1703) he states
that John Rogers said his Society “admitted any one who wanted information concerning
the meaning of any text to put the question, and it was then expounded
and spoken to as they understood it; and one being admitted to show his dissent
with his reasons for it: ‘Thus,’ said he, ‘we improve our youth in Scriptural knowledge.’
I asked him if they did not sometimes carry their differences in sentiment
too far, to their hurt? He acknowledged there was danger in doing so, but they
guarded against it as much as they could.”
.fn-
The elder did not favor free speech in the meetings of the Society;
he undoubtedly judged that such freedom would tend to
disorder and division. The sequel, however, proved that a Society
which could be held firmly together, for more than a hundred
years, under a remarkably liberal policy in this regard, could
be seriously divided under the policy of repression.
The feeling upon this point became so intense that public meetings
were held in Quakertown for full discussion of the subject
pro and con. These meetings excited wide interest, and were attended
by many persons from adjoining towns. The party for
free speech won the victory; but the division tended to weaken the
little church, the decline of which is said to date from that period.[181]
.fn 181
In his last sickness, Elder Zephania Watrous sent for the leader of the party
which had opposed his conservative views and asked forgiveness for anything on
his own part that might have seemed unfriendly to his opponent.
.fn-
For nearly two hundred years, New Testament doctrines as
expounded by John Rogers (in his writings) have been taught in
Quakertown, and the Bible studied and restudied anew, with no
evasion or explaining away of its apparent meanings. Morality
has been taught not as a separate code, but as a principal part of
the religion of Jesus Christ. Great prominence has been given to
non-resistance and all forms of application of the law of love.
Women were from the first encouraged to speak in Rogerene
meetings, the meetings referred to being those for exhortation,
prayer and praise. It will be seen (Appendix) that John Bolles
wrote a treatise in favor of allowing women to speak in such
meetings. Mr. Bownas also quotes John Rogers as saying that
.bn 310.png
.pn +1
women were admitted to speak in Rogerene meetings, “some of
them being qualified by the gift of the Spirit.”
Among the principles rigidly insisted upon in Quakertown are
that persons shall not be esteemed on account of wealth, learning
or position, but only for moral and religious characteristics; strict
following of the Golden Rule by governments as well as by individuals,
hence no going to war, or retaliatory punishments (correction
should be kindly and beneficent); no profane language,
or the taking of an oath under any circumstances; no voting for
any man having principles contrary to the teachings of the New
Testament; no set prayers in meetings, but dependence on the
inspiration of the Holy Spirit; no divorce except for fornication;
to suffer rather than to cause suffering. There has always been
great disapprobation of “hireling ministers.” None of the Rogerene
elders ever received payment for preaching or for pastoral
work.
A gentleman who has been prominent in the Quakertown Society
being questioned, some years since, in regard to the lack of
sympathy between the Rogerenes and other denominations, gave
the following reasons for a state of feeling on both sides which is
not wholly absent even at the present day.
“The other churches considered cessation of work on Sunday
to be a part of the Christian religion, and to be forced upon all as
such. Many of their preachers were led into the ministry as a
learned and lucrative profession, with no spiritual call to preach,
being educated by men for that purpose. In many instances these
preachers were worldly-minded to a great extent. The churches
believed in war and in training men to kill their fellowmen. Ministers
and church members used liquor freely. Church members
held slaves, and ministers upheld the practice. For a long time
the Rogerenes were compelled to assist in the support of the Congregational
church, to which of all churches they were most opposed,
on account of its assumption of authority over others in the
matter of religion. The Rogerenes were fined for not attending
the regular meetings, and cruelly persecuted for not keeping sacred
.bn 311.png
.pn +1
the ‘idol Sabbath’ so strictly observed by other denominations.
Although persecution has ceased, prejudice still remains on both
sides, partly inherited, as it were, and partly the result of continued
differences of opinion.”
At the present day, meetings in Quakertown are similar to Baptist
or Methodist conference meetings. The Lord’s Supper is observed
once a quarter. In the old times the Rogerenes held a
feast once a year, in imitation of the last passover with the disciples,
at which time a lamb was killed and eaten with unleavened
bread. The Sunday service consisted of preaching and exposition
of Scripture, while prayers, singing of hymns, relation of experience,
etc., were reserved for the evening meetings of the Society.
The latter were meetings for the professing Christians, while the
Sunday meetings were public meetings, where all were welcomed.
It will be observed that this was according to the apostolic practice,
and not materially different from the practice of other denominations
at the present day.
If there was so decided an aversion to physicians on the part of
the early Rogerenes as has been represented, it has not come down
to the present time among the people of Quakertown, as have
most of the oldtime sentiments and customs; yet evidence is not
lacking to prove that their predecessors made use of faith and
prayer in the healing of disease, and that there have been cases of
such healing in this Society. One of the latter, within the memory
of persons yet living, was recounted to us by the gentleman to
whom we have referred, upon our inquiring of him if he had ever
heard of any cures of this kind in Quakertown. Pointing to a
portrait on the wall, he said, “That man was cured in a remarkable
manner.” He then stated the circumstances as follows:—
“He had been sick with dysentery, and was so low that his death
was momentarily expected; his wife had even taken out the clothes
she wished placed upon him after death. While he lay in this
seemingly last stage of the disease, he suddenly became able to
speak, and said, in a natural tone, to his wife: ‘Bring me my
clothes.’ She told him he was very ill and must not try to exert
.bn 312.png
.pn +1
himself; but he continued so urgent that, to pacify him, she
brought the clothes he usually wore. He at once arose, dressed
himself and was apparently well, and so continued. He said
that, while he lay there in that weak condition, he suddenly felt
an invisible hand placed upon his head and heard a voice saying:
‘Arise, my son, you are healed,’ upon which he immediately felt a
complete change, from extreme illness and weakness to health
and strength; hence his request to his wife.”
There are numerous traditions regarding the offering of prayers
for recovery by the bedsides of the sick, on the part of the early
elders of this community, who were sometimes desired to render
this service outside of their own Society, and readily complied.
That the founders of this community, both men and women,
were persons of no ordinary mental and physical vigor, is attested
by the excellent mental and physical condition of their descendants,
after generations of intermarriage within their own borders.
At the present day, it would puzzle an expert to calculate their
complicated relationships. In a visit to this locality, some years
since, we met two of the handsomest, brightest and sweetest old
ladies we ever beheld, each of whom had passed her eightieth
year, and each of whom bore the name of Esther (as did the wife of
John Waterhouse). Both were descendants of John Rogers, and
of the first settlers of Quakertown, several times over.[182] One of
them told us that her grandmother took a cap-border to meeting
to hem in the time of the great countermove, at which time and for
which cause she was whipped at the New London whipping-post;
also that for chopping a few sticks of wood in his back yard, on
Sunday, a Quakertown man was “dragged to New London prison.”
This is but a hint of the traditions that linger in this community
regarding the days of persecution. The other lady, a daughter
of Elder Zephania Watrous, lived in the old meeting-house, where
she was born. In the room with this gentle and comely old lady
.bn 313.png
.pn +1
were five generations of the Watrous family, herself the eldest,
and a child of four or five years the youngest, all fair representatives
of Quakertown people; healthy, intelligent and good-looking.
.fn 182
It is not to be inferred that no new families have come into Quakertown, or
that none of the people have married outside. Accessions to this community have
been not infrequent, both by marriage and otherwise.
.fn-
To a stranger in these parts, it is a wonder how the inhabitants
have maintained themselves in such an apparently sterile and
rocky region.[183] In fact, these people did not depend upon agriculture
for a livelihood. Although thus isolated, they were from
the first thrifty, ingenious and enterprising. The property of the
first settlers having been divided and subdivided among large
families, it was not long before their descendants must either desert
their own community or invent methods of bringing into
Quakertown adequate profits from without. Consequently, we
find them, early in the nineteenth century, selling, in neighboring
towns, cloths, threads, yarn and other commodities of their own
manufacture. A large proportion of the men learned trades and
worked away from home during the week. Many of them were
stone-masons, a trade easily learned in this rocky region, and one
in which they became experts. In later times, we find some of
them extensively engaged in raising small fruits, especially strawberries.
.fn 183
Quakertown is said not to be so rocky and sterile as it appears to a person
riding over the road, but to have a considerable amount of good farming-land.
.fn-
Although, with the decline of persecution, no new leader arose
to rank with those of the past, bright minds have not been lacking
in later days in this fast thinning community, which, like other
remote country places, has suffered by the emigration of its youth
to more promising fields of action.
Timothy Watrous, 2d, invented the first machine for cutting
cold iron into nails. He also made an entire dock himself.
Samuel Chapman, a descendant of John Rogers and John Waterhouse,
is said to have made and sailed the first steamship on the
Mississippi. He founded large iron-works in New Orleans. His
son Nathan was one of the founders of the Standard Iron Works
of Mystic.
Jonathan Whipple, a descendant of John Rogers, having a deaf
.bn 314.png
.pn +1
and dumb son, conceived the idea of teaching him to speak and
to understand by the motion of the lips, by which method he soon
spoke sonorously and distinctly, and became a man of integrity
and cultivation. Zerah C. Whipple, a grandson of Jonathan, becoming
interested in this discovery, resolved to devote his life to
its perfection. He invented the Whipple Natural Alphabet, and
with the aid of his grandfather, Jonathan, founded The Home
School for the deaf and dumb, at Mystic.
Julia Crouch, author of “Three Successful Girls” (a descendant
of John Rogers and John Bolles), was a Rogerene of Quakertown.
Ida Whipple Benham, a well-known poet, and for many years
an efficient member of the Peace Society, was of Quakertown
origin.[184]
.fn 184
The following is from a poem by Mrs. Benham, entitled “Peace.”
.pm start_poem
Where is the nation brave enough to say,
“I have no need of sword, or shield, or gun;
I will disarm before the world this day;
I will stand free, though lonely, ’neath the sun.
“I fear no foe, since I am friend to all;
I fear no evil, since I wish no harm;
I will not keep my soldier sons in thrall;
They shall be slaves no more—let them disarm!”
That State will stand upon the heights of time
Foremost in honor, bravest of the brave;
Girded with glory, radiant, sublime,
This shall her title be, “The strong to save!”
While other nations boast of arms or art,
She, ’lone of earth shall stand, the truly great!
Brave in forbearance, loftiness of heart,
The world shall see, in her, a Christian State.
Boast not your bravery, O, ye fearful ones,
Ye trembling nations armed with coward steel,
Who hide yourselves behind your conscript sons
And trample freedom with an iron heel!
Vaunt not your righteousness, nor dare to call
Yourselves by His high name, the Prince of Peace,
The holy Christ of God, Who died for all,
That love might reign and sin and sorrow cease.
My country! O, my country! strong and free,
Dare thou the godlike deed that waits thy hand.
Within thy walls wed Peace to Liberty—
Say to thy soldier sons, “Disarm! Disband!”
Set thou the step for Freedom’s stately march;
The Old World after thee shall fall in line.
Follow the pole star crowning heaven’s high arch,
The Star of Peace with radiance divine.
“All men are equal!” graved in lines of light,
Through storm and stress this motto doth not fail;
All men are brothers! set thy virgin might
To prove man’s brotherhood; thou shalt prevail.
Thou shalt prevail, my country, in the strength
Of Him who guides the spheres and lights the sun;
And joy shall reign through all thy breadth and length,
And thou shalt hear the gracious voice, “Well done!”
.pm end_poem
.fn-
In recent years, the Rogerenes of Quakertown have given much
attention to the cause of peace and arbitration. The Universal
Peace Union having been established by the Quakers, soon after
.bn 315.png
.pn +1
the rebellion, the people of Quakertown invited members of that
Society to join them in holding a Peace Convention near Mystic,
the most suitable available point in the vicinity of Quakertown.
Accordingly, in August, 1868, the first of an unbroken series of
yearly Peace Meetings was held in an attractive grove on a hill
by the Mystic River. Including the invited guests, there were
present forty-three persons. The second meeting, in September,
1869, showed such an increase of interest and attendance that the
Connecticut Peace Society was organized, as a branch of The
Universal Peace Union, and Jonathan Whipple of Quakertown
was elected president. This venerable man (to whom we have
before referred), besides publishing and circulating The Bond of
Peace (a paper advocating peace principles), had long been active
as a speaker and correspondent in the cause so dear to his heart.
In 1871, James E. Whipple, of Quakertown, a young man of
high moral character, having refused from conscientious scruples
to pay the military tax imposed upon him, was arrested by the
town authorities of Ledyard and confined in the Norwich jail,
where he remained several weeks.
About the same time, Zerah C. Whipple, being called upon to
pay a military tax, refused to thus assist in upholding a system
which he believed to be anti-Christian and a relic of barbarous
ages. He was threatened with imprisonment; but some kindly
disposed person, interfering without his knowledge, paid the tax.
In 1872 a petition, signed by members of the Peace Society, was
presented to the legislature of Connecticut praying that body to
make such changes in the laws of the State as should be necessary
to secure the petitioners in the exercise of their conscientious convictions
in this regard. The petition was not granted; but the subject
excited no little interest and sympathy among some of the
legislators.
In the summer of 1874, Zerah C. Whipple, still refusing to do
what his conscience forbade, was taken from his home by the tax
collector of Ledyard and placed in the New London jail. His
arrest produced a profound impression, he being widely known as
.bn 316.png
.pn +1
the principal of the school for teaching the dumb to speak, and
also as a very honest, high-souled man.
During his six week’s imprisonment, the young man appealed
to the prisoners to reform their modes of life, reproved them for
vulgarity and profanity, furnished them books to read, and began
teaching English to a Portuguese confined there. The jailer himself
said, to the commissioner, that although he regretted Mr.
Whipple’s confinement in jail on his own account, he should be
sorry to have him leave, as the men had been more quiet and easy
to manage since he had been with them. On the evening of the
sixth day, an entire stranger called at the jail and desired to know
the amount of the tax and costs, which he paid, saying he knew
the worth of Mr. Whipple, that his family for generations back
had never paid the military tax, and he wished to save the State
the disgrace of imprisoning a person guilty of no crime. This
man was not a member of the Peace Society. Mr. Whipple afterwards
learned that his arrest was illegal, the laws of the State providing
that where property is tendered, or can be found, the person
shall be unmolested. The authorities of Groton did not compel
the payment of this tax by persons conscientiously opposed to it.
In 1872, The Bond of Peace was removed to Quakertown and
its name changed to The Voice of Peace. Zerah C. Whipple undertook
its publication and continued it until 1874, when it was
transferred to a committee of The Universal Peace Union. It is
now published in Philadelphia as the official organ of that Society,
under the title of The Peacemaker.
The call of Mrs. Julia Ward Howe for a woman’s Peace Society
was heartily responded to by the Connecticut Peace Society, and
the 2d of June was for years celebrated, by appropriate exercises,
as Mother’s Day.
The annual grove meeting increased rapidly in attendance and
interest. The number present at the tenth meeting was estimated
at 2,500. In 1875, it was decided to prolong the time of the convention
to a second day’s session, and the two day’s session was
attended with unabated interest.
.bn 317.png
.pn +1
Jonathan Whipple, first president of the Connecticut Peace Society,
died in March, 1875. Shortly before the end, he was heard
to say: “Blessed are the peacemakers; but there has been no blessing
promised to warriors.”
The grove meeting is now held three days annually. It is the
largest gathering of the kind in the world. The large tent used
at first was replaced some years since by a commodious wooden
structure, which is the property of the Universal Peace Union.
From the first, some of the most noted speakers on peace and
kindred topics have occupied the platform, among them Belva
Lockwood, Mary A. Livermore, Julia Ward Howe, Aaron M.
Powell, Rowland B. Howard, Robert T. Paine, Delia S. Parnell,
George T. Angell, H. L. Hastings, William Lloyd Garrison, etc.
The Hutchinson family used frequently to sing at these meetings.
The only one now remaining of that gifted choir, a gentleman as
venerably beautiful as any bard of ancient times, has, in recent
summers, favored the audience in the grove with several sweet
songs appropriate to the occasion.
It is said that the winding road leading about Quakertown is
in the shape of a horseshoe. May this be an omen of honors yet
to come to this little battlefield, where an isolated, despised, yet
all-devoted band have striven for nearly two centuries to be true
to the pure and simple precepts of the New Testament as taught
them by sufferers for obedience to those truths, beside many a
fireside where tales of woes for past endeavors, mingled with prayers
for future victories, have nerved young hearts to the old-time
endurance, for His name’s sake.
Many are the noble men and women who, from first to last,
have been content to live and die in this obscure locality, unhonored
by the world and sharing not its luxuries or pleasures, consoled by
the promises of the New Testament: promises which are not to
the rich and honored (as such), but chiefly to those who for obedience
to the teachings of this Word are outcast and despised, poor
and unlearned, and even, if need be, persecuted and slain.
Not because that good man, Jonathan Whipple, was more conscientious
.bn 318.png
.pn +1
or talented than many another of the Rogerenes of this
locality, but because he was a good specimen of the kind of men
that have from time to time been reared in this Society, there is
given in the following note[185] an abstract from a published account
.bn 319.png
.pn +1
of his life, a copy of which was forwarded to us by his daughter,
Mrs. Whaley, in 1893. In the letter containing this enclosure she
said: “I hope that justice will at length be done our so long
misunderstood and misrepresented people.”
.fn 185
Jonathan Whipple was born in 1794. He never attended school, but it was
not from lack of inclination, for he most ardently desired an education. The
reader from which his mother taught him his letters he learned so thoroughly that
he could repeat it verbatim. In arithmetic he had no instruction further than the
fundamental rules, but while he was yet a boy he learned enough of numbers to
answer for ordinary occasions. His father set him his first copies in writing, but he
improved so rapidly that he soon needed better instruction and got neighboring
school-teachers to write copies for him. Ere many years had elapsed, he had no
need of copies, since he ranked in penmanship among the first.
Although Mr. Whipple was a hard-working mason, he so much felt the need of
more education than he possessed, that, after he had married and settled down in
life, he set about informing himself more thoroughly than his previous opportunities
had allowed. He so far qualified himself, that he was employed several terms
to teach a school of over seventy pupils. In point of discipline and promptness of
education his school ranked first in town.
He contributed many articles to various papers, touching on the great topics
before the public. The temperance cause received his hearty support, for he was
a total abstinence man, at a time when even the most respectable men regularly
took their “grog.”
He was an abolitionist of the most radical type long before the names of Garrison
and Phillips were known in the land.
As an advocate for universal peace, he was found among the pioneers in the
cause. In short, he was a philanthropist in the broadest and truest sense of the
word; he labored all his life for the good of his fellow-creatures. He was kind
and generous; was never engaged in a law-suit in his life, and spent more time with
the sick than any other non-professional man of our acquaintance. In the summer
of 1820 the typhoid fever raged in his neighborhood; he spent his whole time, without
a thought of reward, among the sufferers.
His blameless and useful life made him respected and beloved wherever he was
known.
The fame, however, that he acquired was chiefly due to his remarkable success
in teaching the deaf to talk.
When the youngest of his five children was old enough to walk, he noticed that,
although the boy seemed active and intelligent, he made no effort to speak. The
discovery that his little Enoch was actually deaf, was a trial which seemed greater
than he could endure. To think that this (his youngest) son must be forever shut
out of the world of sound and doomed to endless silence was unendurable. After
many fruitless trials to make the boy hear and repeat what he heard, the father
gave it up as useless.
Mr. Whipple had never heard of the schools in Europe where the deaf are
taught articulation and lip-reading; but, at length, noticing that Enoch would
sometimes attempt to repeat a word, if he was looking directly at the speaker’s
mouth, the thought occurred to the father that perhaps every word had a shape,
and that by learning the shape of each letter, as moulded by the mouth, the boy
might be taught to imitate it. The task was begun. Every moment Mr. Whipple
could spare,—for he was a poor man, and besides his own family there were some
orphan children depending upon him,—he devoted to teaching his little son. It
was astonishing what progress was made. Other members of the family also acted
as teachers, and as Enoch grew towards manhood, he was not merely on par with
his associates, but acknowledged by all to be a superior youth. He could read,
could write a nice hand, and for deciphering poor penmanship there was scarcely
his equal for miles around. He could also talk. To such perfection was his instruction
carried by his energetic father that this deaf man has done business with
strangers, bought goods of merchants, etc., and has gone away without leaving a
suspicion of his infirmity.
As has been seen, the efforts of Mr. Whipple did not end with teaching his own
son. He made many successful experiments with other deaf mutes, which led to
the founding of The Home School for the deaf at Mystic.
After Jonathan Whipple had passed his seventieth year, his faculties remained
unimpaired, and he was as indefatigable in his efforts to improve the condition
of the afflicted as when his theory was first put in practice. His life was a useful
and beautiful one; not a struggle to gain wealth or to win fame; but simply to do
good. His declining years were cheered by the knowledge that he had wronged
none and bettered many.—Abstract from Life of Jonathan Whipple in “Men of
Mark.”
.fn-
Presentation of facts belongs to the historian; but the effect and
uses of the information thus afforded is for the reader. We have
collected and set in order such attested facts as we have been able
to discover relative to the history of the Rogerenes, of which sect
the people of Quakertown are the only distinct representatives of
the present day.
.tb
If at the end of this history it should be asked: “How can the
Rogerene sect be described in briefest terms?” we reply:—
“The doctrines and customs of this sect were patterned as
.bn 320.png
.pn +1
closely as possible after the early church of the Gentiles, instituted
under apostolic effort and direction; hence it included the evangelical
portions and excluded the unevangelical portions of the
doctrines and customs of every sect known to Christendom. Should
a new sect be brought into existence on strictly evangelical lines, it
would, to all intents and purposes, be the same as the Rogerene
Society.” It is evident, however, that a marked feature of the
Rogerene sect would be lacking to such a church in modern times,
viz., the constant need of withstanding ecclesiastical laws whose
unimpeded sway would have prevented the existence of any truly
evangelical church. It is easy to perceive that the growth of such
a spirit of close adherence to New Testament teachings as animated
the Rogerenes would tend to the obliteration of sects.
Should the churches of Christendom ever awake to the fact that
not one of them but has made and countenanced signal departures
from the teachings of Christ and his apostles, both in principles
and modes, and that their differences one from the other are
founded upon variations from the first divinely instituted church,
and should they, on thus awakening, join hands, in council assembled,
with the purpose of uniting in one church of the apostolic
model, fully devoted to the cause of peace on earth and good will
to men, then would dawn the millennium.
It is plain that John Rogers had faith in the people at large for
the realization of such a church universal, could adequate leadership
be procured. He believed that of existing societies of the
evangelical order having in his day a fair start, that of the Quakers
(by its peace principles and dependence on the Holy Spirit) was
best fitted to take the lead. For such an end he had urged upon
that Society the instituting among them the ordinances of Baptism
and the Lord’s Supper, which they had rejected, and he expressed
his opinion forcibly when he said to Mr. Bownas in 1703 that if
the Quakers would take those two ordinances they could “carry
all before them.” (As quoted by Mr. Bownas.)
.bn 321.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h3 id='ch_2_14'
CHAPTER XIV. | DRAGON’S TEETH.
.sp 2
Mr. J. R. Bolles has aptly compared the falsehoods sown by
the author of “The Prey Taken from the Strong,” to dragon’s
teeth constantly springing up anew (#Part I, Chapter I:ch_1_1#). When
Peter Pratt wrote the book thus entitled, he was evidently stimulated
and encouraged by the ecclesiastical demand for such a publication,
and trusted that lack of correct information on the part
of the general public would secure credence for it. The falsities
evident in the work, through its contradictions in one part of
statements made in another, must have been due either to lack of
careful observation on the part of the writer or to his confidence
of such lack on the part of the public to whom it was addressed.
There was an evident personal object in this deliberate attempt
to malign the character of John Rogers three years after his death;
by statements which Peter Pratt of all men knew to be false; he
having himself been a Rogerene, closely allied and attached to
one of the leaders of that Society. Having since become a prominent
member of the ruling church, and intimate with leading
ecclesiastics of that church, in what better way could he prove to
his influential friends his regret at having been associated with
the hated nonconformist than by lending himself to the ruling
order in their endeavors to stamp out whatever respect for and interest
in the Rogerenes and their cause had found lodgement in
the minds of the public?
On the ecclesiastical side, who could address the public with
better chance of being heard and credited than a popular lawyer,
known to have had intimate acquaintance with the obnoxious
sect? For despite the blunder in regard to computation of longitude
(#Part I, Chapter IV:ch_1_4#), Peter Pratt was a man of considerable
note in Connecticut, both as a lawyer and speaker, at the
.bn 322.png
.pn +1
time he wrote this singular book. Joshua Hempstead says in his
Diary: “Nov. 25, 1730. Melancholy news of the death of Mr.
Peter Pratt of ys Town,[186] Attorney at Law, is confirmed, who died
at Hartford on Saturday last,—the finest Orator in the Colony
of his Profession.”
.fn 186
Peter Pratt appears to have lived in East Lyme, then a part of New London.
.fn-
The literary ability of this man is shown to be far below that
ascribed to his oratory, the style of this sole book of his authorship
being very ordinary; while the reply of his half-brother John
Rogers, 2d, as well as other works of that author, will bear comparison
with some of the best works of his time, for clear, vigorous
logic and expression, enlivened by sparkles of wit and acumen,
which qualifies are not observable in the literary effort of this other
son of his mother.
The principal point to be secured being an impeachment of the
character of John Rogers, free use is made by Peter Pratt of the
accusation presented by the Griswolds in the petition for divorce,
by way of declaring that the separation of John Rogers from his
wife and children was on account of certain immoralities charged
against him, which pretended immoralities Peter Pratt names, on
no other authority than the entirely ambiguous statements of the
records of the General Court regarding the Petition of Elizabeth in
1675, which Petition (according to said records) distinctly stated
that the chief reason of her plea did not relate to breach of the
marriage covenant, of which she admitted that she had small reason
to complain.
The exact charges manufactured by the Griswolds under the
head of “Breach of Covenant” may be found in the bill of damages
still to be seen in the Connecticut State Library (see Chapter
II), which bill was brought against John Rogers by Matthew Griswold
during the trial for divorce, and in which is no imputation regarding
the moral character of John Rogers. Peter Pratt, although
avowing familiarity with these records, declares a serious breach
of the marriage covenant to be one of the chief causes for this separation;
while he does not in any sort intimate to the reader that
.bn 323.png
.pn +1
the charge brought forward for the divorce related—as he well
knew—to a period before marriage, and to some fault known
only to John Rogers himself, until he divulged the same to his wife.
Peter Pratt also states that John Rogers owned out of court to
the charge against him, and that the person intrusted with that
confidence gave this evidence against him, for proof of which statement
the reader is referred to files of the General Court. Evidently
Peter Pratt did not expect any of his readers to consult said
files; for although it is to this day on the files of that court that
John Rogers was said to have owned out of court to the charge
against him, it is stated in the same connection that the man who
avowed this confidence on the part of John Rogers, upon being
asked the time and place of the confession, gave such reply that
John Rogers was able to prove an alibi.
The one other opportunity improved by Peter Pratt for an attack
upon the moral character of John Rogers, is in regard to his
marriage with Mary Ransford, twenty-five years after the charge
made for the purpose of obtaining the divorce. In his account of
this marriage, he not only falsifies and vulgarizes the circumstances
in a very singular manner, but, while in one place he represents
the marriage to Mary to have been less of choice than necessity,
in another place he avers that he himself was, at the very time of
this marriage, on friendly and intimate terms with John Rogers, and
so continued, to the extreme of actual discipleship, for years after
that marriage.
It would seem that any careful and intelligent reader of “The
Prey Taken from the Strong,” however prejudiced, could but note
this singular inconsistency,—that Peter Pratt, while knowing to
any such irregularity as he claims on the part of John Rogers,
should, at that very time, have taken him as a spiritual guide, and
continued, for years after, under his leadership. The readers of
that day, in that locality, must have known that Peter Pratt’s connection
with the Rogerene Society was at a date following the marriage
to Mary Ransford, which latter occurred in 1699, while his
own declaration that when he was imprisoned with other Rogerenes
.bn 324.png
.pn +1
in that cause he had a young wife at home, fixes the date of
this imprisonment as late as 1709, which was the year of his marriage.
In order to appear to substantiate his calumnious intimations,
Peter Pratt states that, to the best of his recollection, the first child
of Mary Ransford was born “three or four months” after the ceremony
before the County Court. He also states that she was complained
of by the court on the birth of this child. As a lawyer in
this town, he dwelt, so to speak, among the court records, and
could easily have found the date of this child’s birth, had he intended
to make a truthful statement. The County Court record
still remains distinct and easily to be found, which says that this
child was born in January, 1700, exactly seven months after the
marriage of John Rogers to Mary Ransford, and, as stated by John
Rogers, 2d, “within the time allowed by law.” It was born at
the date at which John Rogers, 2d, brought his bride to Mamacock,
to the great annoyance and irritation of Mary. It is well
known that less disturbances than this have often hastened the
birth of a child. Proof is evident that neither John Bolles, nor
any other of the highly honorable friends and neighbors of John
Rogers, who had the very best opportunity of knowing the facts
of the case, showed the slightest diminution of allegiance to him
at this date, and quite as evident that Peter Pratt himself continued
right on to full discipleship.
The two chief calumnies in this work of Peter Pratt having been
presented, attention is now called to two of a different character.
.pm start_quote
I saw him once brought into court,—he had contrived the matter
so as to be just without the door when he was called to answer. His
features and gestures expressed more fury than I ever saw in a distracted
person of any sort, and I soberly think that if a legion of devils had pushed
him in headlong, his entrance had not been more horrid and ghastly, nor
have seemed more preternatural.
.pm end_quote
John Roger’s declaration that the indictment was a lie is brought
out in similar style, also the exclamations of other Rogerenes present
in the court-room.
.bn 325.png
.pn +1
This plainly refers to the trial before the County Court in November,
1719, when John Rogers is said (by court records) to have
come into court “in a violent manner,” etc., and, when the indictment
was read, to have exclaimed that it was “a devilish ly”
(see Chapter IX), for which contempt of court he was fined only
twenty shillings, which nominal sum was never collected. Taking
into consideration the evident sympathy of the jury on this occasion
of “violent entrance,” etc., and the great ease with which Peter
Pratt is proven capable of misstating and exaggerating facts, the
reader will admit the probability that this entrance of John Rogers
into the court-room, and his words there spoken, together with
those of his followers, were neither more nor less than impassioned
expressions of indignation and protest regarding the terrible cruelty
to which the wife of John Bolles was then being subjected.
She was, as will be remembered, at that moment lying in a critical
condition in New London prison, where the death of her child had
just occurred. Peter Pratt, then present in that court-room, by
his own avowal, knew all of these facts, and knew also that the
life of this woman was saved only by such determined efforts at
full publicity on the part of the Rogerenes and their sympathizers.
Yet he utterly conceals these circumstances from the reader, while
he exaggerates the Rogerene protests, and represents them as being
simply senseless and grotesque.
It is from this description by Peter Pratt that historians have
borrowed their statements regarding the loud voice of John Rogers,
and that Rogerenes were accustomed to charge dignitaries with
lying, etc.[187]
.fn 187
To this statement of Peter Pratt is traceable the following from Miss Caulkins:
“Suppose at the present day a man like Rogers should enter, etc., accompanying
all this with violent contortions, coarse expletives, and foaming at the mouth, would
it not require great forbearance,” etc.
Nothing was more foreign to the teachings of John Rogers and his followers, or
more abhorred by Rogerenes in general—as will be readily attested by those familiar
with their principles—than any vulgarity, or even ordinary coarseness, of
speech or manner.
Miss Caulkins also states (“History of Norwich”) that John Rogers accosted
Dr. Lord (over one hundred years before) in a very loud voice, asking him if they
wore wigs in heaven, giving her story from “tradition.” This is evidently a mixture
of the Peter Pratt court scene, and the contribution of the wig to Mr. Saltonstall.
.fn-
.bn 326.png
.pn +1
The singularly false and indecent statements made by Peter
Pratt—in regard to the divorce of John Rogers and the marriage
to Mary Ransford—and his exaggerated description of the scene
in the court-room, form almost the entire portion of the account
of the Rogerenes contained in Trumbull’s “History of Connecticut,”
which is the standard history (first published, 1818) from
which, as has been said, later historians have derived their ideas
and representations in regard to this sect.
Of the many lesser aspersions cast by Peter Pratt upon the character
and teachings of John Rogers, one of the most astonishing
(seeing that Peter Pratt himself refutes it) is to the effect that John
Rogers held that “a man dies even as a dog.” In another place
he says John Rogers “held both to the resurrection and the day of
judgment, although doubted whether the body to be raised would
be the same that fell, yet owned it would have the same consciousness.”
The author guilty of the above (and many another) self-contradiction,
says of the writings of John Rogers: “For that they are
so perplexed and ambiguous, that he that will attend the rules of
reason and speech can prove scarcely anything of the chief articles
of his faith by his books.”
Careful perusal of the many extant writings of John Rogers will
prove to any candid person that they are written in the clearest
manner, having in them nothing which cannot be understood by
the most ordinary reader. Peter Pratt, being unable to quote from
these writings anything that could substantiate his statements
concerning them, had need to manufacture some excuse for such
omission of evidence.
It would be exceedingly difficult, if not wholly impossible, to
find another book from which historians have condescended to
quote which contains so many contradictions in itself, so many
utterly and needlessly vulgar expressions, and so many easily
.bn 327.png
.pn +1
proven falsehoods, as does this calumnious work of Peter Pratt.
The favor it received in ecclesiastical quarters is proof that there
was almost no device, however underhanded, of which the enemies
of the Rogerenes would not stoop to avail themselves in
branding this daring opponent of ecclesiastical rule.
Yet Peter Pratt’s baldly dishonest account is not the only source
of Rogerene calumny.
Backus, among others, in his “History of the Baptists,” makes
the statement that the Rogerenes were a sect whose practice it was
to take work into meeting-houses. The Rogerenes were a sect
nearly a century before 1764, when they first took work into a
meeting-house, and have been a sect more than one hundred years
since 1766, when they ceased to take work into a meeting-house,
making in reality less than two years, of their more than two hundred
years of existence, in which they (their women), in defence
of their Society, took work into a meeting-house.
The same historian asserts that it was their regular practice to
enter the churches and interrupt the ministers, although it would
have been evident, upon careful examination of the case, that
they never entered any church in this manner except under stress
of bitter persecution, and that, as a non-resistant people, they had
in such emergencies no other efficient means of defence.
Historians have generally stated that the Rogerenes imitated
the Quakers in dress and speech, apparently on no further evidence
than that the name of Quakers had become attached to them.
That the Rogerenes did not imitate the Quakers in speech is
shown by the testimony of those of their descendants most likely
to be well informed in regard to the early customs of their people.
That they did not imitate the Quakers in dress is proven by their
inventories, which show the usual style of dress, wherever the
wardrobe is itemized.
In the countermove of 1764-66, the men kept on their hats in
the Congregational meeting-house. John Crandall and other early
members of the First Baptist church in Newport had no affinity or
sympathy with the Quakers; yet, when attending service in a
.bn 328.png
.pn +1
Congregational church, they kept on their hats, in token of
dissent.
Historians inform us that the Rogerenes did not employ physicians,
surgeons, or midwives, or make use of remedies in sickness,
depending wholly upon the prayer of faith. As has been fully
shown, the Rogerenes did not feel authorized to neglect any New
Testament injunction; they undoubtedly believed in healing by
the prayer of faith; yet, being a logical and discriminating people,
they perceived that the prayer of faith is often a remedy most difficult
to procure at a moment’s notice, and that other modes of relief
obtainable, in absence of this superior agency, are not to be
despised. As opposed to statements that the Rogerenes had nothing
to do with remedies, we have evidence that they were very attentive
to the sick, which presumes aid of various kinds. They
appear not to have disapproved of natural, ordinary means of
restoration and alleviation. A striking proof is furnished in the
description given by John Rogers of his illness, through cold and
neglect, in the inner prison. On this occasion, we do not find his
son standing by the prison window praying, though this son is a
Rogerene of the Rogerenes; but we find him running out into the
streets, crying loudly for help, and when help comes, in the form
of hot stones, wine and cordial, as well as speedy removal to warm
quarters, there is no indication of any lack of ready acceptance of
these means of restoration. We find afterwards a grateful acknowledgment
by John Rogers himself to Mr. Adams and wife
for the wine and cordial.
Remarkable cases of divine healing appear to have occurred in
this Society at an early date. The account given of the healing of
a later day Rogerene in Quakertown (Chapter XIII) indicates that
this was a result of faith, through teachings and experiences that
had been in operation long before this man’s day, descending from
the first headers through intervening generations. The bringing of
their sick, by the Rogerenes of New Jersey, to the “holy men”
from Ephrata, to be healed, is also indicative of former experiences
that had strengthened their faith even to a point like this.
.bn 329.png
.pn +1
As for surgery, there is no reason to suppose that the Rogerenes
did not use the ordinary methods for a cut finger and for more
serious wounds. These people must have had broken bones, yet
we hear of none lame among them, except one who was “born
lame.” They had no New Testament directions regarding surgical
cases. As for midwives, the size of their families of children
by one mother prove that, whatever their mode, mothers and babes
thrived to a very uncommon degree. We hear nothing of the
prayer of faith in such cases, except in unauthenticated statements
of “historians.” There is abundance of traditional evidence that
the Rogerenes were trained in the care of the sick, not only that
they need not call for aid from without, but that they might assist
in ministering to others.
The fact that it is appointed to all men once to die, of itself precludes
the possibility of continual and invariable healing, even by
the prayer of faith. But to suppose that such prayer is not as efficient
as human remedies, is to declare incredible certain passages
of Scripture which are as authentic as any other portion of the
New Testament. Thus reasoned the Rogerenes.
While referring to Backus, we will note a statement made by
him to the effect that some of the Rogerene youth having put an
end to their own lives, this was a cause of the decline of their Society.
Here is a curious dragon’s tooth, and it is difficult to see
how it was manufactured. Suffice it to say that, in extensive historical
and genealogical researches for the purposes of this history
(and in researches by the authors of the Rogers and the Bolles
Genealogies, both of which works largely include allied families),
there has been found but one instance of suicide among the Rogerenes,
and this was that of a young man who took his own life
while under the influence of melancholia which came upon him
during a period of religious revival. This young man was not of
Rogers descent. There was, however, in New London, at a somewhat
later date, a young man of Rogers and Rogerene descent,
who became hopelessly insane. Because of the devotion of his
mother to a church in New London he was brought up in that
.bn 330.png
.pn +1
church. It is said that he was a very bright and promising youth,
and that no cause could be assigned to his derangement other than
excitement induced by a revival in that church. This is mentioned
to show that such instances are not confined to any denomination.
Backus also says that “as late as 1763” some Rogerenes “clapped
shingles and pieces of wood together around the meeting-house”
in Norwich. Since he gives no authority for this statement, it is
likely to be one of the many fabrications imposed upon the public
as “history.” If any such thing occurred, it was doubtless a
Rogerene warning to that church to desist certain meddling or
persecutions. It will not only be remembered that the date given
is during the height of the persecution that induced the great countermove,
but that from the Norwich church had issued those who
apprehended and scourged the party of Rogerenes on their way to
Lebanon.[188] Mr. Backus, with the real or assumed lack of perception
common to ecclesiastical historians when treating upon the
Rogerenes, adds that “the rulers having learned so much wisdom
as only to remove these people from disturbing others, without
fines or corporeal punishment,” they had ceased from such things
in a great measure. It would have been contrary to the inclination
of such writers to perceive that the Rogerenes disturbed no
one but in defense of the truth for which they stood, and that when
persecution on account of their own religion ceased, they had no
further need to disturb the religious observances of others.
.fn 188
J. Backus, the justice who apprehended and scourged the Lebanon party in
1725, appears to have been grandfather of the historian of the Baptists.
.fn-
Barber, in his “Historical Collections of New Jersey,” states
that there is a tradition to the effect that, about eighty years before
the date of the writing (which would give us the date of the
great countermove at New London), some of the Rogerenes of
Schooley’s Mountain came into a neighboring meeting-house,
bringing work and interrupting the minister. The latter statement
is couched in the very words used by Miss Caulkins concerning
the New London countermove of 1764-66, indicating the exact
.bn 331.png
.pn +1
origin of this New Jersey “tradition,” which is simply in line
with the erroneous accounts of historians in general—derived
from repetitions and alterations of statements concerning the New
London movement—which represent the Rogerenes as always
and everywhere taking work into meeting-houses and interrupting
the ministers.
Could any such disturbance be proven in regard to the Rogerenes
of New Jersey, it would show—as a known effect of a certain
cause—that they had been subjected to unbearable annoyances
from members of that church, on account of their own religious
persuasion, and took that method to check their enemies. But no
proof of any such New Jersey molestation or defense has been presented.
Rev. Mr. Field, in his “Bi-centennial Discourse,” says the
Rogerenes did not believe in the Sabbath “nor in public worship,”
whereas, from the first they held as regular public meetings as any
of their neighbors. Their meetings were open to friends and enemies
alike, even to Mr. Saltonstall and his fellow-conspirators.
They had, moreover, a regular organization with record books and
clerk, proof of which is still extant in Quakertown, by a book of
records written by said clerk. This erroneous statement regarding
public meetings is doubtless derived from the fact that the
Rogerenes, in opposition to the ecclesiastical law against meetings
in private houses, persisted in holding meetings in such houses,
and also to the fact that the Rogerenes held evening meetings for
prayer, praise, and testimony, which were particularly for believers.[189]
.fn 189
At that date the Congregationalists did not hold prayer-meetings, or any evening
services. They had, however, a religious “lecture” on Friday afternoons.
.fn-
There remain but two more principal fangs to be dealt with.
One of these is a fossil which was recently revived by Mr. Blake,
minister of the “First Church of Christ, of New London;” while
the other is quite a new production, which the same estimable
gentleman himself manufactured and circulated, through a natural
desire not to be behind other ministers and historians of that
church, in endeavoring to perpetuate the odium cast upon those
.bn 332.png
.pn +1
who are reputed to have suffered strange things from some of its
members in times past.
The first of these statements is that it was the custom of the
Rogerenes to marry without a lawful ceremony, upon which Mr.
Blake undertakes to give a description of their manner of marrying,
which description is modelled after a familiar anecdote,—combined
with a current statement founded on the same anecdote,
to the effect that the marriage of John Rogers to Mary Ransford
was a ceremony invented for the Rogerene sect by its leader, regardless
of the known fact (“History of New London”) that upon
his third marriage the intentions were regularly published in New
London and the ceremony performed by a justice in Rhode Island.
It may be seen by New London records that his son John, two
years after the death of his father, was married by the Rev. Mr.
Woodbridge, pastor of the Congregational church of Groton. Mr.
John Bolles, the noted Rogerene leader, was married to his second
wife, in 1736, by Mr. Joshua Hempstead, justice of the peace,
John Rogers, 2d, taking Mr. Hempstead and Mr. Bolles over the
river for that purpose. (“Hempstead Diary.”)
The New London town and church records and the “Hempstead
Diary” bear full evidence that the Rogerenes of New London
were married by the regular ministers or by justices of the peace,
after a regular publication.
At a comparatively late date it appears that some of the Rogerenes
prefer to have their marriages solemnized in their own public
religious meetings on Sunday, in Quaker fashion, a form allowable
by law, under condition that the marriage intentions be regularly
published. The first marriage of this kind which has been discovered
was recorded in 1764, by Joseph Bolles, clerk of the
Rogerene Society, in a church book.
By the will of Joseph Bolles (1785), it is shown that he left a
chest of Rogerene books and papers to Timothy Waterhouse of
Groton. The latter probably succeeded Joseph Bolles as clerk of
the Society; hence a remnant of this church book is in the Watrous
family, and from it was copied the following:—
.bn 333.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
At our public meeting in New London the 17th of the 6th month,
1764, Joseph Bolles was appointed clerk for our Society, to write,
etc.
.tb
This may certify all persons whom it may concern, that I, Timothy
Walterhouse[190], do take thee, Content Whipple, to be my lawful, wedded
wife, for better or for worse, for richer or for poorer, in sickness and in
health, and I promise to perform to thee all the duties of a husband
according to the Scriptures, while death shall separate us.
And I, Content Whipple, do take thee, Timothy Walterhouse, to be
my lawful, wedded husband, for better or for worse, for richer or for
poorer, in sickness and in health, and I promise to perform to thee all the
duties of a wife according to the Scriptures, while death shall separate us.
.in 45
.nf l
Timothy Walterhouse.
Content Walterhouse.
.nf-
.in
The above named couple have been lawfully published, and now at
our public meeting in New London, the seventeenth day of the sixth
month, 1764, they both acknowledged and signed this paper, after they
heard it read. Thus they are man and wife, married, according to the
laws of God, in our presence.
.in 45
.nf l
John Walterhouse.
Joseph Bolles.
Samuel Rogers.
John Rogers (3d).
.nf-
.in
.pm end_quote
Among the various marriages in this church book are two well-known
New London Rogerenes,—Thomas Turner and Enoch
Bolles (son of John). Both of these are second marriages and the
brides of Quakertown affinity, one of them (bride of Thomas
Turner) being widow of John Waterhouse, 2d. John Waterhouse,
2d, lived in New London at, or near, Quaker Hill.
.fn 190
The original name appears to have been Walterhouse, contracted first to
Waterhouse and then to Watrous.
.fn-
By 1811, we find the paper to be signed reading as follows:—
.pm start_quote
.ll 68
.rj
Groton, August 4, 1811.
.ll
These lines certify all people whom they may concern that I, William
Waterous, and I, Clarissa Cushman, both of said Groton, are joined
.bn 334.png
.pn +1
together in a lawful covenant of marriage, not to be separated until God
who hath joined us together shall separate us by death, and furthermore
it is enjoined on us that we perform the duty due to each other as the
Scripture doth teach.
.in 45
.nf l
William Watrous.
Clarissa Waterous.
.nf-
.in
In presence of
.in 45
.nf l
Amos Waterhouse.
Samuel Chapman.
.nf-
.in
.pm end_quote
Copies of these and other records were furnished us by Mr.
Jabez Watrous of Quakertown.
These marriages were, with the exceptions noted, of Rogerenes
on the Groton side, although the public meetings in which the
earlier ones were solemnized were held in New London, and most
of the witnesses were of New London. The New London Rogerenes
continued to be married by regular ministers or justices of
the peace. Thus early, we find an exclusiveness on the part of the
Groton Rogerenes not discoverable among those of New London.
Yet all of the Rogerenes considered marriage a strictly religious
ceremony, consisting of vows taken before God and not to be annulled
save for the one cause stated in the New Testament, while
all know for how comparatively slight causes marriages in other
denominations have been set aside. By the Quakertown method,
the parties took each other for husband and wife in the presence
of their “elder” and the assembled congregation; the elder did not
pronounce them man and wife, they having taken each other before
God; but the marriage was recorded in the church book,
with names of several witnesses attached. We find certificates of
these marriages both on the New London and Groton town records,
further showing their legal character. Among them the
following:—
.pm start_quote
.ll 68
.rj
Groton, July 29, 1821.
.ll
Personally appeared John Crouch and Rachel Watrous, both of
Groton, and were married in presence of me
.ll 68
.rj
Zephania Watrous.
.ll
.pm end_quote
.bn 335.png
.pn +1
Where the antique marriage anecdote to which reference has
been made originated, or to what persons it was first applied, is a
matter of uncertainty; but, as it has frequently been attached to
others besides Rogerenes, it is likely to have originated in quite
different quarters. It appears to have become attached to the
Rogerenes through the fallacious notions previously mentioned.
Even the talented and scholarly author of the Bolles Genealogy
(Gen. J. A. Bolles) was misled by this anecdote, together with the
current statement in regard to lack of marriage ceremony among
the Rogerenes, and also by his failure to find a record of the marriage
of Joseph Bolles.[191]
.fn 191
Mr. Bolles also said that he could not find a record of the birth or marriage of
Joseph Bolles, Jr., on the town records, but we had no difficulty in finding both
of the latter upon those records; and by close study of the New London records,
we can affirm that no families of New London were better represented by careful
entry of family records than were the Rogerenes, especially the Rogers and Bolles
families.
The following clause in the deed by which John Rogers, 2d, set apart a burying-place
for his descendants of itself sufficiently indicates the attitude of the Rogerenes
regarding the sanctity and legal form of marriage:—
“I do give, grant, convey and confirm unto them my afores^d Sons and to all the
Children that are or may be born unto my afores^d Sons or either of them in Wedlock
lawfully begotten,” etc.
The most careful research and inquiry have failed to discover a single child
born out of wedlock in this Society during the hundred years of its distinct existence.
Joseph Bolles shows that there were some candid people among their
enemies in his day, when he says: “Also the observers of this pretended Sabbath
do allow that there is more immorality amongst themselves than there is among
us who do not observe it.”
.fn-
Marriage publications were not entered upon New London records;
but the publication of Joseph Bolles and Martha Lewis, in
the Congregational church, in 1731, is plainly recorded in the
“Hempstead Diary.” Mr. J. A. Bolles had no knowledge of the
existence of this Diary.
The anecdote which Mr. J. A. Bolles judged too good to be
spoiled for the sake of relationship, yet of which he said: “The
story has been told of so many that I doubt its authenticity,”
has had so many versions, even as attached to the Rogerenes, that
it cannot well be presented in this connection without laying before
.bn 336.png
.pn +1
the reader several of the Rogerene versions that have become
current. Space is given for these the more readily, because this is
a good illustration of the scurrilous stories that have been told regarding
this greatly abused sect.
.sp 1
.ce
ANECDOTE.
.pm start_quote
.nf c
Version No. I. (From the Half-Century Sermon of Rev. Abel M. McEwen, 1857.)
.nf-
Among the idols which it was the mission of these fanatics to demolish,
was the Congregational ceremony of marriage. One of their
sturdy zealots, a widower of middle age, announced his intention to
take for his wife, without any formality of marriage, a widow in the
neighborhood. Mr. Saltonstall remonstrated against the design of the
man, but he stoutly maintained and declared his purpose. The clergyman,
seeing him enter the house of his intended, also went in that he
might see them together. “You, sir,” said he to the man, “will not
disgrace yourself and the neighborhood by taking this woman for your
wife without marriage?” “Yes,” he replied, “I will.” “But you,
madam,” said the wily watchman, “will not consent to become his
wife in this improper manner?” “Yes,” said she, “I do.” “Then,”
said he, “I pronounce you husband and wife; and I shall record your
marriage in the records of the church.”
.pm end_quote
The marriage records of the Congregational church, all of
which are extant, give no record of any such Rogerene widower
and widow. Any marriage of an irregular nature in those times,
and to a much later date, would have been proven until this day
by record of presentment at the County Court of the woman upon
the birth of every child, with attendant fine or whipping. Since
not a single such presentment in the case of a Rogerene (with the
exception of Mary Ransford) is to be found on the court records,
the opening statement of Mr. McEwen is even by that one evidence
disproved.
.pm start_quote
.nf c
Version No. II. (From Bi-Centennial Discourse (1870) by Rev. Mr. Field, successor to Mr. McEwen.)
.nf-
Mr. Field tells above story in substantially the same manner,
.bn 337.png
.pn +1
but causes the Rogerene to say, at the close: “Ah, Gurdon, thou
art a cunning creature!” Mr. Field adds, in a footnote to the
printed Discourse, that “there can be no authority for the story
except tradition,” but that it bears “so many marks of probability
that there can be no reason to doubt its correctness.” Doubtless
it was such “marks of probability” that induced Mr. Field to
credit the story that the Rogerenes entered the churches unclothed,
which he incorporated among the various erroneous statements relating
to these people contained in this Discourse, although he had
abundant means of knowing of its absence from all New London
history or tradition.
.sp 1
.nf c
Version No. III. (From Bolles Genealogy, 1865—concerning Joseph Bolles, son of John Bolles, proof of whose marriage has been given.)
.nf-
There is a tradition in the family that Governor Saltonstall, who had
a high regard for Mr. and Mrs. Bolles, contrived to marry them without
their suspecting it. It is said that after Mr. and Mrs. Bolles had
had one or two children, and been threatened by “some rude fellows of
the baser sort” with prosecution, the Governor one day invited himself
to dine with friends Joseph and Martha. As the dinner went on,
friend Gurdon, in easy conversation, very adroitly led both Mr. and
Mrs. Bolles severally to declare that they had taken each other as man
and wife in a lifelong union, and regarded themselves bound by the
marriage covenant before God and man. As Mrs. Bolles assented to
her husband’s declaration, with her smiling “Yea, yea,” the Governor
rose to his feet and spreading out his hands exclaimed: “By virtue of
my office as civil magistrate, and as a minister of God, I declare you
lawful husband and wife.” “Ah, Gurdon,” said Joseph, “thou art a
cunning creature!”
.pm end_quote
It is strange that so intellectual and scholarly a man as Mr. John
A. Bolles did not perceive that the best part of this joke was in the
extreme friendship displayed between the ardent Rogerene leader,
Joseph Bolles, and Governor Saltonstall, as well as in the fact that
.bn 338.png
.pn +1
the governor must have risen from the dead to marry Joseph
Bolles, the marriage of the latter having occurred seven years after
the death of Governor Saltonstall; also that had there been a child
born to such a couple in those days, no “fellows of the baser sort”
of any less consequence than the regular town authorities would
have needed to take them in hand.
.pm start_quote
.nf c
Version No. IV. (From an article regarding the Rogerenes, by a talented historian of New London of the present date, which was published several years since in a New York paper.)
.nf-
There was incessant war between John Rogers and the town because
his wife had been divorced from him. Though she was twice married,
he attempted to capture her by force, but finally married himself to his
bond-servant Mary Ransford. This scandalized the community, and
the pair were hauled before the several courts. No persuasion would
induce them to be legally united, and almost in despair Gurdon Saltonstall,
then minister, sent for the pair. “Do you really, John,” said he,
“take this woman, your bond-servant, bought with your money, for
your wife?”
“Yes,” said Rogers defiantly, “I do.”
“Is it possible, Mary, that you take this man, so much older than
yourself, for your husband?”
“Yes,” said she doggedly, “I do.”
“Then,” said the minister solemnly, “I pronounce you, according
to the law of this colony, man and wife.”
“Ah, Gurdon,” said Rogers, “thou art a cunning creature!”
.pm end_quote
Had this historian never read the famous history of the place in
which she dwells, written by Miss Caulkins, wherein is proof absolute
that John Rogers and Mary Ransford had not the honor of
being married by Governor Saltonstall? Although Miss Caulkins
herself gives a version of this story (History of New London),
she calls attention to the fact that it could not be true, as proven
by court records.
.bn 339.png
.pn +1
.pm start_quote
.nf c
Version No. V. (In one of the editions of Barber’s “Historical Collections of Connecticut.”)
.nf-
It is here stated that “one day as Gov. Saltonstall was sitting
in his room, smoking his pipe,” a man by the name of Gorton
came in with a woman, and announced that he had taken her for
his wife without any ceremony, upon which the governor, “taking
his pipe from his mouth,” went through the usual form in these
anecdotes, whereupon Gorton exclaimed: “Thou art a cunning
creature!” Barber gives this anecdote among his various false
statements regarding the Rogerenes.
.nf c
Version No. VI. (A solitary anecdote found in the Chicago Tribune of April, 1897, showing how dragon’s teeth will spring up again and again, in one form or another.)
.nf-
Alexander Bolles, one of the early itinerant preachers, who preached
in three States among the Alleghany Mountains, says the Argonaut,
was much tormented by the influence of one John Rogers, a Jerseyman,
who openly taught atheism and the abolishment of marriage. On one
occasion, while holding a meeting in the woods of Virginia, a young
man and woman pushed their way up to the stump which served as a
pulpit. The man, interrupting the sermon [of course], said defiantly:—
“I’d like you to know that we are Rogerenes.” The old man looked
at him over his spectacles and waited. “We don’t believe in God, nor
in marriage. This is my wife because I choose her to be; but I’ll have
no preacher nor squire meddling with us.”
“Do you mean to tell me,” thundered Father Bolles, “that you have
taken this girl home as your wife?”
“Yes, I do,” said the fellow doggedly.
“And have you gone willingly to live with him as your husband?”
“Yes,” said the frightened girl.
“Then I pronounce you man and wife, and whom God hath joined
together let no man put asunder. Be off with you. You are married
now according to the law and the gospel.”
.pm end_quote
This rehash of several aspersions, spiced by newspaper humor,
has, as is perceived, for the best part of its joke (to those better
.bn 340.png
.pn +1
informed than its writer) several amusing paradoxes; viz., that the
opposing preacher should bear the name of Bolles; that John
Rogers, instead of dying in New London a so-called religious fanatic,
had a Rip Van Winkle sleep in New Jersey where he awoke
an atheist and at the same time a Rogerene.
The dragon’s tooth which Mr. Blake appears to have manufactured
himself, with no assistance whatever, for his “History of
the First Church of Christ, of New London,” is of a more serious
character than even such anecdotes as these. This new production
is to the effect that the General Court (1684) granted Matthew
Griswold and his daughter Elizabeth further guardianship of
John Rogers, Jr., “on account Of the continuance of his father in
immoral practices.”
The manner in which Mr. Blake so easily manufactured a statement
never before made by any historian in regard to John Rogers,
is by having (doubtless inadvertently) placed together as contexts
two court records which have no relation to each other. The continuance
of John Rogers, Jr., in the custody of Matthew Griswold
and Elizabeth, granted in 1784, because John Rogers was “continuing
in his evil practices,” etc., referred, as observed by previous
historians, to the giving the two children into the mother’s charge
in 1677, on account (as distinctly stated in the records) of John
Rogers “being so hettridox in his opinion and practice,” even to
breaking the holy Sabbath, etc. Mr. Blake went back of this the
true context, to the alleged cause of the divorce suit in 1675, which
cause was not so much as referred to by the court when the children
were assigned to the care of the mother and grandfather,
which assignment was wholly on the ground of the father’s “hettridoxy.”
To have given the children to the care of the mother
and grandfather on account of a charge against John Rogers of
which he had been acquitted by the grand jury, would have been
an impossible proceeding. His transgression of the ecclesiastical
laws and usages were “evil practices” to the view of Matthew
Griswold, Elizabeth, and the General Court.
There has now been demonstrated the unreliable character of
.bn 341.png
.pn +1
the main charges that have been brought against John Rogers
and the Rogerenes, to be repeated by succeeding “historians” and
added to not infrequently, through prejudice, humor, or lack of
examination into the facts. It is trusted that the evidence given
in this present work will sufficiently prove it the result of painstaking
research and studious investigation, with no worse bias
than that in favor of the undoing of falsehood and misapprehension
and the righting of grievous wrongs.
Is it too much to ask that every person who presents so-called
history to the public shall be expected to present as clear evidence
in support of his statements and assertions, as is demanded of a
witness in a court-room, or forfeit the reputation of a reliable
author? Only by such reasonable demand, on the part of readers,
can past history be sifted of its chaff and future history deserve
the name.
Times have changed since John Rogers, Jr., went “up and down
the colony” selling his little book; but a public at large, to which
this youth trusted for a fair hearing and for sympathy, still exists,—a
public which, as a whole, is never deaf to a call for justice.
In the hands of this court, of highest as of safest appeal, is left
the “History of the Rogerenes.”
.bn 342.png
.bn 343.png
.pn +2
.sp 2
.h2 id='app'
APPENDIX.
.bn 344.png
.bn 345.png
.pn +2
.h3
EXTRACTS FROM “EPISTLES.”
.ce
John Rogers, Sr.
.pm start_quote
.ti 0
Christian Reader:—
I direct this my book to thee, without any regard to one sect more
than another, for the unity and fellowship of God’s people is Love, and
this Love is the bond of perfectness, and by this Love shall all men know
that we are Christ’s disciples; and if this Love be with us and dwell in
us, by it we shall know that we are translated from death unto life; for
that faith that purifies the soul works by this Love, and by this faith
which works by Love we come to have the victory over the world.
Beloved brethren, Since that great apostacy hath been, which the holy
apostles did in their day fore-tell of, which hath spread over nations and
kingdoms, so that the very names of things in scripture hath been (and
in many things yet are) wrongly applied and generally believed to be
that which they are not; and those false customs which this great apostacy
hath brought in hath been received (and yet are in many things) for
truths; but God hath in these latter ages raised up such lights in the
world at several times as hath discovered much of the great mystery of
iniquity; but they have always been accounted (at their first appearing)
as deceivers and seducers and the like, by the dark world in general, and
met with great opposition from the powers of this world, even from the
powers of darkness; but the God with whom all power is hath so borne
them up, through their faith, that the gates of hell were not able to
withstand them, nor all the powers of darkness able to gainsay them, so
that Satan hath been forced to fit up a new form of pretended holiness
to deceive the world with, at several times, yea, even at every such appearance
of the light of the gospel; for so often as the Lord hath been
pleased to reveal unto his Church the life and light of the gospel, by
shining into the hearts of his children, so often hath there been a falling
away, and that old serpent, called the Devil and Satan, which deceiveth
the whole world, hath at such times endeavored to work in the
hearts of governors and great men of the earth to set up that which
they imagine to be the worship of God, and to maintain the same, and
this hath ever been a snare and net whereby God’s children have
been ensnared and hypocrites set up; for the true worship of God is
.bn 346.png
.pn +1
in righteousness and true holiness in the inner man, and none can
thus worship God till he sets them free from the Egypt of sin, and
works this righteousness in their own hearts by his own Spirit; and
such as these cannot conform to any prescribed form set up by the
powers of darkness of this world, without procuring the great displeasure
of God; for they are to be God’s witnesses of that worship which
God hath set up in the hearts of his own children, who alone can
worship God in spirit and in truth, and none else; and these are the
light of the world, and yet are but strangers and pilgrims in the world;
for their kingdom is not of this world. But those that fall away from
the spirit of truth into the spirit of the world are the false prophets
and antichrists, and these are they whom the world doth follow and
close with, according to scripture testimony; for saith the scripture,
They are of the world, and the world heareth them; he that is not of
God heareth not us; by this we know, the spirit of truth and the spirit
of error. Here is a plain description laid down for us to know the
false prophets by, to wit, “for the world heareth them”; by this we
know they are always the greatest number, because the body of the
people will hear and speak well of them; but the world will not hear
and speak well of the true, saith the scripture; and this is the description
the scripture gives us to know them by. I John 4, 5, 6. Luke 6,
26. Mat. 5, 11, 12.
.tb
What I have written in this book to the churches of Christ called
Quakers I did present to the ministry of the said people in the time of
a general meeting at Rhode Island, desiring of them it might be read
to the congregation at the said meeting, and so handed among them till
it come to Wm. Penn and the rest of their ministry. But after the ministry
had perused it, some of them told me that I knew they did look at
water baptism useless after a person came to be baptised with the
Spirit. To which I replied, Your argument is just contrary to the
scripture; for said Peter, “Can any man forbid water, that these should
not be baptised which have received the Holy Ghost as well as we?
And he commanded them to be baptized in the name of the Lord.”
Acts 10, 47, 48. Another replied, saying, “Thou holds forth the light
contrary to what we have done, both in our public testimonies and
printed books.” To which I answered, “If you can shew me wherein
I have held it forth contrary to the holy Scriptures, it shall be rectified:”
.bn 347.png
.pn +1
But I heard no further reply to that. I then told them that if they
would be pleased to publish it among themselves, I should be satisfied,
and proceed no further with it, otherwise my purpose was to print it.
Whereupon, some of them asked me whether I would be satisfied if
they read it in their private meeting. I told them Yes; for I directed
it to them and not to the world. Upon which they appointed me to
come to the same place the next morning at seven of the clock for an
answer; accordingly I did, where my book was returned to me again,
some saying “It holds forth things contrary to what we have done,
both in our public testimonies and printed books, and may make a
division among us.” To which I answered, “If truth make a division
among you, it is such a division as Christ came to make.” But they
thus refusing to publish it among themselves, I have thought it my
duty to put it to public view, believing there is yet a remnant among
them which have not defiled their garments.
I have also added something more at the end of that epistle which I
presented to them, to show the difference between the ministration of
the moral law (written in the hearts of all the children of Adam) and
of the ministration of the gospel of Jesus Christ (written on the hearts
of God’s children by the spirit of the living God) the one being the
light of condemnation, the other being the light of life, or the light of
our justification, through faith in the blood of Jesus Christ, and both
proceeding from the self-same God.
.tb
And as to what I have written to the observers of the Seventh Day
Sabbath, these may certify thee that after it pleased God, through his
rich grace in Christ Jesus, to take away the guilt of my sins from my
conscience and to send the spirit of his Son into my heart, whereby
he did reveal unto me his love and his acceptance of me in Jesus Christ,
this unspeakable mercy did greatly engage my heart to love God and
diligently to search the Scriptures, that thereby I might know how to
serve God acceptably, for then I soon became a seeker how to worship
God, though more zealous of the tradition of my fathers till I saw
them to be traditions and no scripture precepts. I thus, upon diligent
search of the Scriptures, found that the First-day Sabbath was nowhere
commanded by any law of God, and the Scriptures telling me where
no law is there can be no transgression, and that it is but vain to worship
God by men’s traditions, Mat. 15, 9, and also finding by Scripture
.bn 348.png
.pn +1
that there was a commandment for the keeping of the seventh day, I
then openly labored on the first day of the week, in faithfulness to
God and my fellow creatures, and strictly kept the fourth commandment,
which commanded labor on the first day of the week, and required
rest on the seventh. But I continuing a diligent searcher of the
holy Scriptures, and begging at the Throne of Grace for direction in
the way of truth, it pleased God to open my understanding to understand
the Scriptures and to see that the seventh day sabbath was but a
sign (under the law) of a gospel rest that Christ gives the soul, and
that the shadowing part of the law was nailed to the cross of Christ;
I could then no longer observe the seventh day without defiling my
conscience; for saith Christ, Mat. 10, 27: “What I tell you in darkness
that speak ye in light; and what ye hear in the ear, that preach ye
upon the housetops.” I then wrote to those of my brethren that kept
the seventh day sabbath, showing them how it was but a sign or
shadow of a better thing that was to come by Jesus Christ, and since
have writ this following Epistle to them, wherein is opened the covenant
of the law and the covenant of grace, the first covenant being a
figure of the second; which covenant, with all the rites and ceremonies
of it, continued until the establishment of the new testament by the
blood of Jesus Christ; which testament contains the substance of those
things shadowed out in the first covenant; and though the shadowing
part of the law was nailed to the cross of Christ, and so ceased, as
they were signs and shadows, yet it is as easy for heaven and earth
to pass as it is for one tittle (of what was shadowed out by the law)
to escape of being fulfilled by Christ in the substance of it; for what
God had before determined should be fulfilled by Christ was prophesied
of by the law, as well as by the prophets, as is to be seen, Mat. 2, 13.
But John the Baptist came so near to him that he pointed at him saying,
Behold the lamb of God that taketh away the sins of the world.
I have thought it my duty to put these things to public view, being
sensible of the wiles of Satan, who is wont to work in the darkness of
men, to mislead them to make idols of such things which God commanded
to be observed as signs of instructions to his church as is to
be seen, Numb. 21, 9, compared with II Kings 18, 4, and what it was
a sign of is to be seen, John 3, 14, 15.
.pm end_quote
Then follows the Epistle to the Quakers and that to the
Seventh Day Baptists.
.bn 349.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
EXTRACTS FROM “TWO MINISTRATIONS.”
.ce
John Rogers, Sr.
.pm start_quote
... But before he came into the world, those that were under the
second ministration were led and taught by a shadowing law, and were
under typical judges, kings and priests, who were types of Christ’s kingly,
prophetical and priestly offices; but since his coming in the flesh, they
have ceased, and He himself is their alone King, Priest and Prophet, to
rule and teach them, in a more evangelical or gospel way; and this was
prophesied of before his coming into the world, Deut. 18, 15, Isa. 7, 6,
Psal. 110, 4. Thus was He prophesied of before his coming in the flesh,
to wit in his prophetical, kingly and priestly offices; but He being now
already come, we are to hear Him in all things, and to follow Him in all
exemplary things, and He alone is to rule in his church, being their King,
Priest and Prophet.
... And although we are of another kingdom, and therefore are not
to be concerned in the kingdom we do not belong to, either to sit in
judgment with them, or to fight and kill under their kingdom, yet, as
being in their country and limits, rather than to offend them we have
liberty from our King to pay them tribute for the carrying on the
affairs of their kingdom and government, both by his doctrine and example,
Rom. 13, 6, 7 etc., Mat. 17, 24 etc.... But although the children
of God are free, being of another kingdom, yet they are not to use
their liberty for a cloak of maliciousness against them, but as they are
the servants of God, and proper subjects of his kingdom, they are to
honour all men, and to fear God and to honour the king, and to make
conscience, as Christ did, not to offend them, but rather to give them
their demand for carrying on their affairs in their own kingdom, ...
Can it stand with Christianity, according to Christ’s doctrine and example
since He came into the world, for his church and people to join in
with the powers of this world to resist evil, by judging and condemning
sinners, and to destroy men’s lives, by fighting against flesh and blood
with carnal weapons; or to lord it over others by exercising authority
over them, as the kings and judges of this world do?
No: for both his doctrine and example forbid his church all such
.bn 350.png
.pn +1
things, as appeareth by these following Scriptures, ... And thus are
we to be followers of Him, and not to take the place of a judge upon us,
from the hands of the children of this world, and to follow them in their
kingdom, to sit with them in judgment, to judge and condemn sinners,
whom Christ did not come to judge, or to condemn, but to save. And
also seeing He who was without sin hath not executed justice upon us
who were sinners, but hath extended his grace and mercy to us, in acquitting
and forgiving us, so ought we to be followers of Him, and not now
become judges and condemners of sinners, seeing he hath not judged nor
condemned us for our sins. And seeing he who was without sin did not
cast a stone at the woman taken in adultery, who was a sinner, so likewise
let us, who were once sinners, learn of him to be merciful unto sinners,
as he hath been merciful unto us, who came not to destroy men’s
lives but to save them....
... But Christ’s doctrine doth not give his disciples so much liberty
as to defend themselves by the law of justice from the hands of earthly
judges, Mat. 5, 38 etc. “Ye have heard that it hath been said, ‘An eye for
an eye and a tooth for a tooth’; but I say unto you that ye resist not evil,
etc,” “And if any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy coat,
let him have thy cloak also, etc.”... We are to love our enemies, and
to bless them that curse us and to do good to them that hate us, and to pray
for them that despitefully use us and persecute us, Mat. 5, 44, and to do
violence to no man, and to live peaceably with all men, as much as in us
lies, by suffering ourselves to be defrauded, Rom. 12, 18. I Cor. 6, 7.
Thus we may see, by the doctrine and example of Christ, that it cannot
stand with perfect Christianity to be either governor, judge, executioner
or jury man, or to be active in the making any laws which may be useful
in the body of the kingdoms of this world, who are only under the
ministration of the moral law, and their weapons are carnal, with which
weapons they fight against flesh and blood only, punishing both the
righteous and the wicked, according to what is written, “And he was
numbered with the transgressors” (by the judges of this world) Mark
15, 28.
... And this His kingdom and peaceable government was before
prophesied of, and how he should put an end to wars, and reconcile sinners
to his church, ...
... Then said Jesus unto him, “Put up again thy sword into his
place, for all they that take the sword shall perish with the sword.”
.bn 351.png
.pn +1
Matt. 26, 52. “He that leadeth into captivity shall go into captivity:
he that killeth with the sword must be killed with the sword.” Rev.
13, 10. Here He rebuketh the use of the sword, according to what was
before prophesied of him, threatening them that use it to measure the
same measure to them.... From hence it appears plainly that the
very reason why Christ bid them provide swords was that He might
fulfil those prophesies which prophesied of him beforehand; that He
should rebuke the use of the sword when he should come, and cause them
to beat their swords into plowshares and their spears into pruning hooks,
and that they should learn war no more. For when they told Him there
were two swords, He said, “It is enough;” but when they came to make
use of them, he rebuked the use of them, saying, “Put up again thy
sword into his place; for all they that take the sword shall perish with
the sword.” So that it appears he did not bid them provide swords to
kill and slay with them, but put an end to the use of them in his church....
We thus seeing that Christ hath rebuked the use of the sword in his
church, and that they are to learn war no more, but are to beat their
swords into useful tools, for necessary uses, it is an evil thing for a Christian
to practice any gesture that tendeth to war, as watching, warding
or training, or exercising any posture leading to war; for it is some degree
of contempt to the doctrine of Christ, who hath taught us to learn
war no more, but to live the life of faith and love, who hath promised
us his protection and preservation from famine, pestilence and sword,
when we love him and keep his commandments, as throughout the 91st
psalm, Job 5, 19, 20. Isa. 26, 1, 2, 3, 4. Rev. 3, 10.
... But forasmuch as we have obtained mercy and grace by Jesus
Christ, and are thereby reconciled to God, and made heirs of a better
kingdom, and are but strangers, pilgrims and sojourners here, we are not
to mix ourselves with the children of this world, by joining with them
in their kingdom, to judge, or condemn, or torture any man for his sin,
seeing we are under another ministration, having not been condemned
by Christ for our sins; neither are we to join with them to kill or slay
our fellow creatures, seeing Christ hath rebuked the use of the sword in
the hands of his followers; and except we deny ourselves in all these
things, and take up our cross and follow him, we cannot be his disciples....
.pm end_quote
.bn 352.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
CONCERNING THE SABBATH.
.in 4
.ti -4
Extracts from a Reply by John Rogers, Sr. (1721), to a Book by Benj.
Wadsworth, entitled “The Lord’s Day Proved to be the Christian
Sabbath.”
.in
.pm start_quote
... When God’s children were in a holy frame and agreed to fast
and pray, they did it not with a mixt multitude in public assemblies,
as hypocrites are wont to do; as appears Neh. 9, 1, 2. The children
of Israel separated themselves from all strangers, in time of offering
up their prayers unto God. Acts 1, 13, 14. And we nowhere read,
throughout the whole Bible that God’s children ever prayed in a public
assembly, with a mixt multitude, and in a customary way, as hypocrites
are wont to do, as throughout the whole scripture doth appear.
Rom. 8, 26.
... This have I written that people may not be misled, by thinking
they worship God in forms and set times of prayer, while they are in
a state of sin; and that they may consider the publican, upon his first
prayer, accompanied with true repentance, went away justified rather
than the other that was zealous in his often fasting and prayers....
In page 5th sayth he: “The apostle doth not oppose the keeping
one day in a week holy to God.” To which I answer, It is not what
the apostle doth not oppose, but what the apostle commands, I Pet. 1, 16,
“Be ye holy for I am holy.” An unholy man cannot do one holy act,
no more than a corrupt tree can bring forth good fruit: but I have no
where read in the books of the New Testament that we are commanded
to keep one day more holy than another....
... And the next place, I shall shew that the first commandment
that both the angel of God and Christ himself gave forth to his apostles
was to make the first day of the week (the day of his resurrection) a
day of labor by travelling out of one province into another.... Thus
it appears that had they believed them that was sent by the angel of
God and by Christ himself they should have set out on their journey
early in the morning for Galilee, which was in another province, and
by all probability more than one day’s journey, as appears in the 2nd
.bn 353.png
.pn +1
chapter of Luke, which shews that Christ’s parents went a day’s journey
towards Galilee before they missed him.... So that it appears that
Christ had no regard to the day, otherwise than to make it a day of
labor ... through their unbelief they were disobedient to the message
that Christ sent them and did not make it a day of labor by travelling,
as they were required by the angel of God and by Christ himself;
which journey according to history was above 40 miles and the message
was sent them in haste, to set out upon this journey, upon the
first day of the week, the day of Christ’s resurrection.
In page 6th he quotes Gen. 2, 2, 3, which speaks only of God’s resting
from the works of creation, when all things were finished and “was
very good” ... and this God’s Sabbath or rest from his works of creation
had no evening or morning ascribed to it, because it was his eternal
rest or Sabbath, all things being now finished. And it could be no
Sabbath or rest to Adam, for he had done no work to rest from, for
he was the finishing work, ... So that Adam in his first creation entered
into God’s Sabbath and so continued, till he by sin brought labor
upon himself ... and we have no account in Scripture of any Sabbath
commanded or kept from Adam till Mose’s time, ... For when God
delivered the two tables of the ten commandments, he gave Moses a
particular account about the seventh-day sabbath, how it was a sign,
as is seen Exod. 31, 12 etc. compared with the last verse.... And a
sign is not the thing signified by it, any more than a shadow of a thing
is the substance....
In page 19 he quotes ... “I was in spirit on the Lord’s day.”...
that is, I was spiritualized on the Lord’s day of his revelation for that
work he employed me in, but here is no account what day or days it
was of the week or month, this God hath not revealed to us.... But
for any to affect it to be on a first day of the week is presumption,
seeing no such name in Scripture was imposed on the first day of the
week in any other place of the Scripture....
In page 27, he quotes Acts 20, 7, “And upon the first day of the week” ...
This text tells us the disciple’s coming together was to break
bread; it does not say to celebrate a Sabbath, or give the day any pre-eminence
above the five other working days ... the word breaking of
bread is used in common eating, Acts 2, 46.—“breaking bread from
house to house,”—Christ brake bread to two of his disciples and also
when Christ fed 5000.... And in this place it is said they came
.bn 354.png
.pn +1
together to break bread, and Paul was at that time tending a ship, as
appears....
But as to the Lord’s Supper, it was always attended at supper time, ...
It was first instituted by Christ at supper ... And Paul, the
Gentile apostle, hath left it on record that he did deliver it to the Gentiles
to be attended in the night, as appears I Cor. 11, 23.... The Gentile
churches attended the time and season, tho’ they got into a disorderly
way of partaking of it, yet they attended the season ... “For in eating
every one taketh before other his own supper.”... So that we see
this coming together to break bread, on the first day of the week, was not
for preaching (but a feast of charity), for that was attended the night
following (when the young man fell from the loft), nor for the Lord’s
supper.
.pm end_quote
The following is at the end of the book containing the answer to
Benjamin Wadsworth. The “questions” were written in New
London prison at the time John Rogers was confined there on
account of troubles arising out of the arrest and imprisonment of
Sarah Bolles for a “matter of conscience.”
.pm start_quote
The following questions were presented as they are underwritten,
but when I saw I could obtain no answer but persecution, I then presented
them to a Superior Court in the colony New London, and from
them to the next General Court in that Colony, and so to the Elders and
Messengers of the churches of the Colony of Connecticut, requesting of
them an answer, upon the consideration of the Confession of their own
Faith and the good counsels there given, and printed in New London,
in the year 1710. And here follows an account of some part of what
I presented to them, taken out of the Confession of their own Faith.
In page 6. “First Counsel. That you be immovably and unchangeably
agreed in the only sufficient and invariable rule of religion, which
is the Holy Scriptures, the fixed canon, uncapable of addition and diminution.
You ought to account nothing ancient that will not stand by
this rule, nor anything new that will. Do not hold yourselves bound to
unscriptural rites in religion, wherein custom itself doth many times
misguide. Isai. 8, 20. To the law and to the testimony; if they speak
not according to this word, it is because there is no light in them.”
“Second Counsel. That you be determined by this rule in the whole
.bn 355.png
.pn +1
of religion. That your faith be right and divine, that the Word of
God must be the foundation of it and the authority of the Word the
reason of it, etc. For an orthodox Christian to resolve his faith into
education, instruction and the persuasion of others, is not an higher
reason than a Papist, Mahometan or Pagan can produce for his religion.”
Page 7. “Believe, in all divine worship, it is not enough that this
or that act of worship is not forbidden in the word of God; if it be not
commanded, and you perform it, you may fear you will be found guilty
and be exposed to divine displeasure. Nadab and Abihu paid dear for
offering in divine worship that which the Lord commanded them not.
It is an honour done unto Christ, when you account that only decent,
orderly and convenient in his house which depends upon the institution
and appointment of Himself, who is the only head and lawgiver of his
church.”
Page 65. “God alone is Lord of the conscience, and hath left it free
from the doctrines and commandments of men which are in anything
contrary to his word, or not contained in it: so that to believe such doctrines,
or to obey such commands out of conscience, is to betray true
liberty of conscience; and the requiring an implicit faith and an absolute
and blind obedience, is to destroy liberty of conscience and reason
also. Acts 4, 19. Whether it be right in the sight of God to hearken
unto you more than unto God, judge ye. Acts 5, 29. We ought to
obey God rather than men. Jam. 4, 12. There is one Lawgiver, who
is able to save and to destroy: Who art thou that judgeth another?
Col. 2, 22. But in vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines
commandments of men? Mat. 15, 9. Which all are to perish with
the using, after the commandments and doctrines of men. John 4, 22.
Ye worship ye know not what. Hos. 5, 11. Ephraim is oppressed
and broken in judgment because he willingly walked after the commandment.”
These are the scriptures they quote for their proof, with many more.
All these quotations, quoted out of the book of the Confession of their
own Faith, with much more, was presented to the abovesaid Courts,
Elders and Messengers of said churches, with the following questions,
grounded upon the said Confession of their pretended Faith, but can
obtain no answer but violence to compel us to rebel against it, as will
appear by said questions as followeth.
.bn 356.png
.pn +1
To Richard Christophers Assistant, and from him to Gov. Saltonstall
and Eliphalet Adams.
.sp 1
I request of you, as you profess yourselves to be Christians, and the
Scripture to be your rule, to give me a direct answer to these scriptural
questions, Rom. 4, 15. “For where no law is, there is no transgression.”
My question is, Hath God any law to forbid labor on the first day
of the week? If he hath, quote chapter and verse for it, to convict us of
our error, or be convicted that you will be found fighters against God,
in striving to compel us to worship the works of your own hands, which
would be idolatry in us.
And consider the age and antiquity of an idol doth not make the sin
one whit the less, but the greater; for God’s patience and long suffering
towards idolaters should lead them to repentance.
A second question I crave of you is, Whether the name “Sabbath”
(which you impose upon the first day of the week in your law book)
be a title that God by his word hath put upon it? If it be, pray quote
the chapter and verse, where it is so named by God’s word; if not,
judge yourselves.
A third question I crave your answer to is, Whether the name Lord’s
Day (which you impose in your law book on the first day of the week)
be a Scripture name peculiar to that day? And how you prove the revelations
of Jesus Christ to John was upon the first day of the week?
And if you cannot answer the said questions by the holy Scriptures,
then I request of you to read and to consider what is written, Psal.
94, 20, 21. “Shall the throne of iniquity have fellowship with thee,
which frameth mischief by a law? They gather themselves together
against the soul of the righteous, and condemn the innocent blood.”
From the New London Prison, the 17th of the 9th month, 1719.
.sp 1
And here follows a copy of my request to Court Elders and Messengers,
wrote under the above questions as it is here.
.sp 1
My request to you is, That you will be pleased to see that an answer
to my questions may be returned, by you or your elders, as you will
answer it before God, the judge of Heaven and earth, and that we may
not be compelled by the Authority to offer to God in divine worship
that which he hath not commanded, against our consciences, and contrary
to the Confession of your own Faith; and if God hath commanded
.bn 357.png
.pn +1
the first day of the week to be kept for a Sabbath, to quote
to us the place in Scripture where it is so commanded, and send it to
us: And if there be no command of God for it in the Holy Scriptures,
and only your own law in your Law Book, and your minister’s doctrine
for it, then I desire you to read and consider what is written, Mat. 15,
7th, 8th and 9th verses, “Ye hypocrites, well did Esaias prophesy of
you, saying, This people draweth nigh unto me with their mouth, and
honoureth me with their lips; but their heart is far from me. But in
vain they do worship me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of
men.”
New London, the 7th of the third month, 1721. From him that
wishes you well, and desires to see your salvation and not your destruction.
But I could obtain no answer from them; “For every one that doeth
evil hateth the light, neither cometh to the light, lest his deeds should
be reproved.” John 3, 20.
And now my request to you, the said Courts, Elders and Messengers,
is, in the presence and view of the world, to shew us chapter and verse,
or verses, where God’s command is which commands the keeping the
first day of the week for a Sabbath, by which you are not in the same
danger Nadab and Abihu was, that we may escape with you; for I can
find no such commandment throughout the whole Bible: For you, in
the Confession of your Faith, set before us the great danger we are in,
if we offer to God that in divine worship which he hath not commanded;
not only the loss of our lives, as Nadab and Abihu did theirs, but eternal
damnation also; as appears in your “Confessions of Faith,” Page 7,
and in your second Counsel (before quoted).
Upon this consideration, I request this favor of you, so that we may
venture in with you in keeping of it, by a commandment from God, if
you know of any, for this will be more for your honour than to compel
us against our own consciences (and your own counsels) by your own
law, accompanied with your whips, stocks, fines and imprisonments;
which hitherto you have been using to compel us to offer in divine worship
that which God hath not commanded; and besides this, we are
ashamed (I do not say you) to pretend to be “orthodox Christians”
and “to resolve our faith into education, instruction, and the persuasion
of others,” seeing you say in your “Confession,” page 6, that
“this is no higher reason than a Papist, Mahometan or pagan can
.bn 358.png
.pn +1
produce for his religion;” for we would not be like such spoken of in
Zeph. 3, 5, “The unjust knoweth no shame.”
Thus it appears nakedly before your eyes, and to your consciences,
that either your Counsels, in the Confession of your Faith, is very erroneous,
or else your first day Sabbath, if it have no command of God
for it, which I can find nowhere throughout the whole Bible—and
that which can be found nowhere may well be concluded not to be at
all. And the said Counsels in the Confession of your Faith is so substantially
grounded on the holy Scriptures that I think it most safe to
conclude that it is your Sabbath that is erroneous and idolatry (except
you have a commandment of God for it) by the Confession of your
own Faith.
I having been treating upon your Sabbath, the foundation almost
of all your worship, which is the works of your own hands, by your own
Confession, except you can find a commandment of God for it....
.sp 1
.ce
The following from “A Midnight Cry,” by John Rogers, Sr.
I desire that these following things may be well considered.
First, when God delivered the two tables of stone into the hands of
Moses, he gave him a particular account about the Sabbath how it was
a sign, as is to be seen Exod. 31, beginning at verse 12 to the end of the
chapter, yea, it was a covenanted sign to that people, as is to be seen,
verse 17. Ezek. 20, 12, 20.
Secondly, Moses testifieth to Israel that it was commanded to be
kept upon the account of that deliverance out of Egypt, as is to be seen
Deut. 5, comparing the 12, 13 and 14 verses with the 15th verse. So
that as their deliverance was from a temporal bondage, so the sign of
it was a temporal rest; and the sign was for a covenant between God
and them, of his safe protecting them from the oppression of their enemies,
in that inheritance which he gave them while they kept his laws.
Thirdly, Christ testifieth that the priests profaned the Sabbath in
the temple and yet were blameless, Mat. 12, 5, compared with Numb.
28, 9, 10, so that we may well conclude those sacrifices by which they
profaned the Sabbath, though they were but signs in themselves, yet
the Sabbath which was of less value was to give place that the greater
might not be omitted.
Fourthly; The man that bore a burden on the Sabbath day, to wit,
his bed, John 5, 10, profaned it in so doing, and was as blameless as
.bn 359.png
.pn +1
the priests; for that sign under the law was not the Sabbath, any more
than that circumcision commanded to Abraham was the circumcision,
and therefore, saith the apostle, That is not circumcision that is outward
in the flesh, Rom. 4, 12. Thus we see he calls it the sign of circumcision,
though the scriptures did no where call it a sign, but called
it circumcision; but the 7th day Sabbath God declared to be a sign,
yea, a covenanted sign with his people, as circumcision was, as is to be
seen, by comparing these places of scripture together, Exod. 31, 13, 16,
17. Gen. 17, 10, 13 and 14.
Fifthly, Seeing that God testifieth that the weekly 7th day Sabbath
is a sign, and gave no such plain demonstration of any other of the
Sabbaths under the law, we have good and better reason to judge that
Paul’s words, Col. 2, 16, 17 (Let no man therefore judge you in meat
or in drink, or in respect of a holy day, or of the new moon, or of the
Sabbath days, which are a shadow of things to come, but the body is
of Christ) comprehends the 7th day Sabbath in a special manner,
seeing it agrees with God’s testimony to Israel, that it was a sign to
them, and a sign is not the substance; for a shadow is but the sign of
the substance.
And lastly, Seeing that God testifieth to Israel that the 7th day Sabbath
was a sign, so it was no more the Sabbath than the seven stars
which John saw in the right hand of Christ were the angels of the seven
churches, nor no more the Sabbath than the seven golden candlesticks
were the seven churches, nor no more the Sabbath than those fat kine
that Pharaoh saw were the seven plentiful years; which sort of creature
(we afterwards read) they made an image of and worshipped; nor no
more the Sabbath than the sign of circumcision was the circumcision;
nor no more the Sabbath (under the first covenant) than the wine that
Christ gave his disciples to drink was the blood of the New Testament
or covenant; nor no more the Sabbath (under the first testament) than
the bread that Christ gave to his disciples was his body under the second
or new covenant.
Thus we see that signs (in the Scripture) bear the complete name of
the substance or thing they signify; so the 7th day Sabbath was a sign
under the first covenant, and so continued till the establishment of the
second, and then both the covenant and signs under it ceased; for they
were signs of instruction to the church, that they might impose their
faith on the things they signified, which were to be fulfilled by Christ,
.bn 360.png
.pn +1
who was the substance of them all; and so at his coming they were all
nailed to his cross, and so ceased. Eph. 2, 15, 16. Col. 2, 14. And
so likewise the signs that are now in being (under the new covenant)
are to continue till Christ’s coming in his manhood, I Cor. 11, 26, and
then they will cease also.
.pm end_quote
.bn 361.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
“ADVERTISEMENT.”
.ce
John Rogers, Sr.
.pm start_quote
Whereas there is a printed law in her Majesty’s Colony of Connecticut,
entitled only “Heriticks,” in the preface to it they say “To prevent
the danger persons are in of being poisoned in their judgments
and principles by hereticks,” etc.
Which said law the queen by advice of her council hath condemned,
repealed and declared it void and of none effect, it being contrary to
their charter. And indeed there is a good hand of God in the Queen’s
act, for I know of no sect worse poisoned in their judgments and
principles by gross heresy than the Church of New England; and it is
very evident that hereticks have ever persecuted the true church under
abusive titles, as deceivers, hereticks, Quakers, and the like abusive
titles, which they themselves are guilty of; for erroneous persons,
principles and practices are condemned by the scriptures of truth; so
that they have no other way to cloak themselves, under their delusion
and heresy, but by casting such like odious titles on the children of
God, and so persecute them and burn their books; for Satan’s design
in making use of these deluded persons, thus to act, is to suppress
truth under pretense of heresy; as for instance I shall begin with the
master of the house, whom they called Beelzebub, the prince of devils,
Mat. 12, 24. He went by the name of “deceiver,” Mat. 27, 63.
Paul by the name of heretick, Acts 24, 14. Luther’s books were
burnt under pretense utterly to suppress heresy; the worthy martyrs
in Queen Martyr Mary’s time suffered death under the name of hereticks;
and those worthy martyrs in Boston in New England under the
name of Quakers and hereticks; and my books by this law now repealed
have been condemned and burnt, under pretense of heresy, though I
have made fair proffers at their General Court to reward any person
well for their time and pains that would endeavor to show me any
one error in them, but none have yet publickly appeared.
.pm end_quote
.bn 362.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
FOLLOWING FROM ACCOUNT OF SAMUEL | BOWNAS OF HIS “CONVERSATION | WITH JOHN ROGERS,” 1703.
.pm start_quote
He (John Rogers) spoke very much of his satisfaction and unity with
George Fox, John Stubbs, John Burnyeat and William Edmundson as
the Lord’s servants, with sundry others of the first visitors of that
country, that he knew them to be sent of God, and that they had carried
the reformation further than any of the Protestants ever did before them,
since the general apostacy from the purity both of faith and doctrine;
first the church of England they did nothing in the end but made an
English translation of the Latin service used before, the Presbyterians
they dissented and the Independants, but came not to the root of the
matter; the Baptists dissented from the other three, but went not through.
Upon which, though I could not wholly agree with him in his assertions,
I queried if he thought that all these several steps of the English church
from Popery, the Presbyterians and Independants from the English
church, and the Baptists from all three of them, had not something of
good in them, viz. I mean whether the first concerned in dissenting
from Popery, though they afterwards rested too much in the form of
worship in the Episcopal way, had not the aid of Christ’s spirit to assist
them in their dissent? And so for all the rest. This he did readily
grant to be a great truth; and so allowing that the first reformers actuated
by divine light, and being faithful to what was made known to them,
had their reward; and their successors sat down in that form their predecessors
had left them in, but did not regard that Power and Life by which
they were actuated, and so became zealots for that form, but opposed
the Power. “And this,” said he, “is the true cause of the several steps
of dissent one from another; and the reason why there is so little Christian
love, and so much bitterness and envy one against another, is their
sitting down contented, each in their own form without the Power, so
that they are all in one and the same spirit, acting their part in the several
forms of worship in their own wills and time, not only opposing the Spirit
of Truth, but making it the object of their scorn and those who adhere
to it the subject of their reproach, contempt and envy; and this is the
foundation of persecution” said he....
.pm end_quote
.bn 363.png
.pn +1
.h3
FROM REPLY TO J. BACKUS.
.ce
John Rogers, 2d.
.pm start_quote
... Here I think he (Backus) does the government no honor by informing
the world that they have made laws to debar such as differ from
them in matters of religion the liberty of the king’s highway to pass to
their own meetings, since our lord the king hath granted equal liberty
of conscience to all dissenters to hold their meetings and serve God according
to their consciences....
In his 13th page he gives a record (of his own making) relating to
John Bolles, which record declares that J. Bolles acknowledged that he
came from New London, and was going to Lebanon, and that he knew it
was contrary to our law, and that they did it in defiance of the law.
To which I answer, “That God’s three children were cast into the
fiery furnace for declaring their defiance to the king’s law, which was
made to force men’s consciences in matters of religion; and all the prophets
and apostles suffered for opposing those laws which were set up to
force people’s consciences in matters of worshipping God; And all the
martyrs which have suffered the flames and other tortures ever since,
it has been for manifesting their defiance to such laws as have been set
up by the worldly government to uphold false worship, or to restrain
them from worshipping God according to their consciences. Now for
as much as God has justified all those sufferers above-mentioned, for
their bold defiance of such laws as were set up by man to prevent
people serving God according to their consciences, well may we have
confidence that God will justify us for the same thing. We have also
further to plead in our own justification in this matter than those sufferers
above-mentioned had, inasmuch as our lord the king has granted
us the same liberty to meet together and worship God according to our
consciences as he has given to our persecutors: So that in the consideration
of what is here expressed, I think J. Bolles and his brethren are
highly commendable for their faithfulness to God, in manifesting their
defiance against such laws as would restrain them from worshipping
God according to their consciences.
... In his 14th chapter, he charges the sufferers to be most daring
.bn 364.png
.pn +1
and malicious offenders, utterly disregarding those Scriptures, Rom.
13, Tit. 3, I Pet. 2, etc.
In the first place I shall fully grant from those Scriptures, and many
more that might be mentioned, that the worldly government is set up
of God, and are God’s ministers to act in worldly matters between man
and man, and that the law that God hath put into their hands is good,
if they use it lawfully;... according to what is written, I Tim. 1, 8,
9, 10. And while the worldly government act within their commission,
God is with them and has put such carnal weapons in their hands as is
sufficient to rule all carnal persons, which are stocks, fines, prisons,
whip and gallows, which above-named weapons are sufficient to conquer
and subdue all carnal and guilty persons, so that rulers are a
terror to evil-doers.
And forasmuch as we acknowledge the worldly government to be set
up by God, we have always paid all public demands for upholding the
same; as town rates, county-rates and all other demands, excepting such
as are for the upholding hireling ministers and false teachers which God
has called us to testify against. Now when the worldly rulers take upon
themselves to make laws relating to God’s worship, and thereby force
men’s consciences, and so turn their sword against God’s children, they
then act beyond their commission and out of their jurisdiction; and are
so far from being God’s ministers that they are fighters against God
and his church; and God is so far from making them a terror to his
church that he gives his church and people faith and boldness to withstand
them to their faces....
... Here I think he (Backus) does the government no honor by
informing the world that they have made laws to debar such as differ
from them in matters of religion the liberty of the king’s highway to
pass to their own meetings, since our lord the king hath granted equal
liberty of conscience to all dissenters to hold their meetings and serve
God according to their consciences.
.pm end_quote
.bn 365.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
FROM ANSWER TO A PAMPHLET BY | COTTON MATHER.
.ce
By John Rogers, 2d.
.pm start_quote
... A travelling ministry are sent from town to town and from city
to city, and from country to country, and over sea, so that they are not
only taken from their own employment, but are also sent upon charges;
their state and condition is like a man that is prest a soldier and sent
away from his own living on charges and therefore maintained at the
king’s charge. And hath not this man power to forbear work? though
he tarry some days at a place, must he therefore maintain himself by
his own labor? is not this the very state of a travelling ministry of the
gospel?...
... I have thus proved by Scripture that a traveling ministry of the
Gospel hath power to forbear work. And secondly that the churches
ought to relieve them: And thirdly have shewed their differing state
from settled elders.
... In the second place, I shall now prove by Scripture that settled
elders are commanded to work with their hands and thereby to support
the weak; by being givers rather than receivers.—We find that the
apostle sends for the elders of the church.—He saith to them, I have
coveted no man’s silver or gold, or apparel; ye yourselves know that
these hands of mine have ministered unto my necessities and to them
that were with me; I have showed you all things, how that so laboring,
ye ought to support the weak, and to remember the words of the Lord
Jesus, how he said, it is more blessed to give than to receive....
... And 3rdly Whereas Christ, upon sending them forth to preach
the gospel, forbids them making any provision for their journey, requiring
them to expect their meat and reward from his hands....
... From hence we may see by Scripture that Christ’s ministers,
whom he calls and sends to preach the Gospel, are so well provided for
by Him that they have no need to be hired by the children of the world;
for in so doing they would reproach their Lord and Master and shew
themselves not only faithless, but wickedly covetous, in practising contrary
.bn 366.png
.pn +1
to this doctrine of Christ, and to come under the condemnation of this
great sin so much condemned in Scripture, “The priests whereof teach
for hire, and the prophets whereof divine for money, yet they will lean
upon the Lord, and say, is not the Lord among us; none evil can come
upon us. Therefore shall Zion for your sakes be plowed as a field, and
Jerusalem shall become heaps, and the mountains of the house as the
high places of the forest ... yea they are greedy dogs, which can
never have enough, they are shepherds that cannot understand; they
all look to their own way, every one for his gain from his quarter.”...
Christ calls them hirelings and ravening wolves.
And though the nameless authors of the said Pamphlet are pleased
to call such (as join with Christ and his shepherds, to testify against
these hirelings) by the name of wolves, yet these hirelings, or at least
their shearers, the collectors, have always taken them for sheep, especially
about shearing time.... Now we that join with Christ and the
true shepherds to testify against these hirelings, we come under the
blessing of Christ ... Blessed are ye when men shall revile you and persecute
you, for so persecuted they the prophets which were before you;
yea this must we suffer all the time that these hireling prophets are under
this curse of Christ. Wo unto you when all men shall speak well
of you, for so did their fathers to the false prophets.
... In page 8, they assert ... “That he be given to hospitality”
and say they, “how is it possible for him to be so, if you be given
to covetousness, and given to dishonesty and cheat him of his maintainance?”
To which I answer If it be the people’s gift, its their hospitality and
not the ministers: the churl may be liberal, if other men’s purses make
him so. But the ministers of the Gospel are given to hospitality of that
which their own hands have ministered to them, and are obedient to their
Master’s words, who hath said unto them, “It is more blessed to give
than to receive.”
... And it is a shame for you to tell of the galling of your hands
with inferior labor for the getting of bread; it is your duty to do so, and
if the people be the cause, as you say, of your laboring with your hands,
they are worthy of praise in causing you to do your duty, and you ought
to have done it without their causing you to do it, and therefore you proclaim
your shame. For you ought to have taken the holy prophets, and
Christ and his apostles for your example, to have labored with your
.bn 367.png
.pn +1
hands, and not the false prophets and false teachers, who sought to live
upon the people,... Christ shews that such stewards as those could
not dig for their living, and to beg they were ashamed....
And the true prophets, and Christ with his apostles have set us better
example.... Here you may see that Elijah was plowing ... here
Elisha went to Jordan with the sons of the prophets and cut down wood.... Amos
was a husbandman and a gatherer of wild figs.... Christ
was a carpenter.... Paul was a tayler or tent-maker and worked at
it tho’ he were a travelling minister of the gospel,—and so did the rest
of the apostles, as is to be seen.... These examples, with that apostolical
command (to the elders of the church) Acts 20, 34, 35, ought to
be attended by Christ’s ministers....
.pm end_quote
.bn 368.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
FROM REPLY TO PETER PRATT.
.ce
John Rogers, 2d.
.pm start_quote
As it has ever been allowed that the defaming of the dead is a mark
of the most unmanly and base spirit of a coward and ought to be abhorred
by all persons who bear the image of man; then how much more abominable
is it of P. P. to sport himself with his own lies over a man in his
grave? And I think no person of common reason will expect any apology
of me on account of this my undertaking, since my silence in this
matter would have rendered me very unmanly....
... If John Roger’s books contain “but few of his principles” then
how comes P. P. to know what his principles are, several years after
his death? except the same spirit which once deceived him in the matter
of longitude has again deceived him concerning J. R.’s principles; and
we have as much reason to question the truth of what he tells us of J.
R.’s principles (since he has no better proof than his own bare word)
as the General Assembly had to question the truth of longitude, which
soon after proved a delusion of Satan....
Now by these foolish and vain pretended reasons, the reader may
plainly see that he only wanted an excuse to evade J. R.’s books, that he
might take his full swing to bely and abuse him at his pleasure; because
he well knew that if he had quoted his books, they would have discovered
his falsehoods....
But I should not have enlarged so much upon this head, were it not
that I am sensible that there are many thousands of grown persons in
this Colony that for want of opportunity to be informed in the principles
of other sects remain so ignorant that they know no difference between
the Church of England and the Papists, nor between the Quakers and
the Baptists, but esteem each couple to be alike. And now is it
possible that such persons should be able to discern the ignorance
of P. P.?...
... Now how marvellous is it that P. P., who knew himself to be a
man so inconstant and changeable, not only in his worldly concerns from
his very childhood, but also in matters of religion since he has arrived
to riper years, should presume to put out a book only on his bare word,
without any proof at all. Surely he might reasonably have thought
that all who knew him would expect better proof from such an inconstant
person than from any other man....
.pm end_quote
.bn 369.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
FROM ANSWER TO MR. BYLES, BY JOHN | AND JOSEPH BOLLES.
.sp 1
Considerable light is thrown upon the “Outbreak” of 1764-66
by a Rogerene pamphlet (of about 1759), which appeared in several
editions, sometimes ascribed on the title-page to John Bolles, sometimes
to his son Joseph, and probably the joint work of father and
son, written out by the latter; thus having a style noticeably different
from that of John Bolles, although equally clear-cut and
forcible. John Bolles, being at the date of this work eighty-two
years of age, may be supposed to have welcomed the aid of his son
Joseph, both as collaborator and amanuensis. The following is
from a copy of this work to be found in the New London Public
Library:—
.pm start_quote
An Answer to A Book entitled The Christian Sabbath, explained and
vindicated in a discourse on Exodus XX. 8.[192] Jan. 14, 1759, upon a particular
occasion, by Mather Byles, pastor of “The First Church of
Christ” (as he saith) in New London, written by Joseph Bolles, in behalf
of the rest which suffer persecution for breaking said pretended
sabbath.
.fn 192
“Remember the Sabbath day, to keep it holy.”
.fn-
In page 5 of Mather Byles sermon, he says: The Christian Sabbath
has of late been publickly attacked; and those who observe it have
been challenged to show any scripture warrant for the practice.
Ans.
We have been imprisoned 23 at a time, 8 of us about 7 months, and
some of the best of our cattle and horses and other goods taken away,
and 3 of us cruelly whipped, near 20 stripes apiece, for doing the business
of our ordinary calling on the 1st day of the week, which he calls the
Sabbath, all within 9 months. And in these persecutions we have continually
desired our persecutors to show any Scripture warrant for their
practice; we have also sent forth advertisements promising ten pounds
.bn 370.png
.pn +1
reward to any person that could show us one word in the Bible that
forbids labor on this pretended Sabbath; which we suppose he calls
“a challenge;” and because he cannot find a word in the Bible that forbids
labor on his pretended Sabbath he has preached a sermon instead
thereof, and though he calls it the Christian Sabbath, it is not called so
in Scripture; by which it is evident it was not the Christian Sabbath
in the apostles time; for if it had been they would have called it so.
Also his text is part of the commandment to labor six days and rest the
seventh; so that his own text that he builds his Sabbath upon requires
labor on his pretended Sabbath. For it says six days shalt thou labor;
and we know that this pretended Sabbath is the first of the six days....
... In page 18 he says, “And lastly to assign a reason why there is
no command for this Sabbath in the New Test.;” and in his next page he
says, “The apostles left it to after discoveries,” which will be answered
in its place. But neither God nor man require us to keep a Sabbath
without a law, “For where no law is, there is no transgression.” Rom.
IV. 15. And sin is not imputed when there is no law: And the “Confession
of Faith” of this Colony requires a command for all the worship
we perform to God, in page 7, and there is no discovery of this pretended
Sabbath in the Bible; for he says, “the apostles left it to after
discoveries,” and the first command that we have discovered for this
pretended Sabbath was more than 300 years after Christ by Constantine
the emperor, recorded in “Fox’s Acts and Monuments,” Vol. I. p. 134,
in these words: “The Sunday he commanded to be kept holy by all
men and free from all judiciary causes, from markets, marts, fairs and
other manual labors, only husbandry excepted.” Here we may observe
no husbandry labor is forbidden, in this “after discovery.”
Also king Inas, who reigned in England, in the year of our Lord 712,
commanded that infants should be baptised within 30 days, and that no
man should labor on Sunday. “Fox’s Acts etc.” Vol. I, P. 1016.
Observe in this after discovery all labour is forbidden; as popish darkness
increased, this Sabbath strengthened and infant baptism was also
“discovered.”
Also king Edgar, who began his reign in England in the year of our
Lord 959, he ordained that Sunday should be kept holy from Saturday
noon till Monday morning, and he ordained and decreed for holy days
and fasting days. “Fox’s Acts,” Vol. I. P. 1017. Observe this “after
discovery” being in midnight popish darkness, this Sabbath was kept
.bn 371.png
.pn +1
more strict and they also discovered half a day more, and holy days and
fasting days to be observed. Also king Canutus, who began to reign
in England in the year 1016, he commanded celebration of the Sabbath
from Saturday noon till Monday morning. This king “discovered” it
by the name of “Sabbath”; but the other three “discovered” it by the
name of “Sunday.”
Also in our Colony there is an ample “after discovery” of it by the
name of Sabbath or Lord’s day, which exceeds the four other “after
discoveries;” with a famous law to torture the bodies of them that
break this pretended Sabbath, by whipping, not exceeding 20 stripes
if they refuse to pay a fine; and doubtless there has been more “after
discoveries” by express commands, for this pretended Sabbath, in Rome,
France and Spain. Therefore if M. B. will preach up this pretended
Sabbath, which he says the apostles left to “after discoveries,” he
ought to have taken his text out of the forementioned “after discoveries,”
where there are express commands to build their Sabbath upon;
but, as he builds it on God’s commandment, which commands labor on
his pretended Sabbath, it has no foundation to stand upon, and therefore
stands upon nothing. No “after discovery,” neither this pretended
Sabbath, infant baptism, nor the mass nor purgatory, ought to
be built on any text in the Bible. But whoever preaches up any of
these “after discoveries” they ought to take a text out of the law book,
where they are instituted and commanded, and not out of the Bible
where they are not “discovered.”
.pm end_quote
How fully Mr. Byles had endeavored to stir up the authorities
to take the offenders strenuously in hand will be inferred from the
following, from the same pamphlet.
.pm start_quote
... He calls us deluded, blind, obstinate, because we suffer persecution
for breaking a Sabbath which he says the apostles left to “after
discoveries.” But it is this sort of ministers that preach to our General
Court to suppress or persecute them that walk by the apostle’s
doctrine, for not observing this Sabbath which he says the apostles left
to “after discoveries.”
.pm end_quote
He further says:
.pm start_quote
“Take away the Sabbath and what will be the consequence?”
Ans. He speaks like the idolaters of old. Judges XVIII. 24. “Ye
.bn 372.png
.pn +1
have taken away my gods which I made, and the priests,—and what
have I more?” Here we may see the idolaters speak all with one voice;
their heart is after their idols and their priests more than after God.
Next he says: “Errors in doctrine and corruption in practice would
break in upon us like a flood, immorality would triumph without
control.”
Ans.
It is such a time now, for there are errors in doctrine, manifest errors
indeed, in this and other sermons; and corruption in practice is already
broken in upon us like a flood, and immorality triumphs almost without
control among the people, who are encouraged to it by the example of
their priests, which live immoral lives in covetousness, pride, fulness of
bread and abundance of idleness.... Also the observers of this pretended
Sabbath do allow that there is more immorality amongst themselves
than there is among us who do not observe it. Immorality triumphs
in a high degree, even in gathering money for the priests of many
poor people to whom there is more need to give, and casting some into
prison to force them against their conscience to pay money to maintain
such priests in idleness,[193] which they know God hath not sent to teach
them.
.pm end_quote
.fn 193
See “Debate Between Mr. Byles and the Cong. Church.”—People. “We
never could conceive nor imagine how you could spend your time. You never
visited any of your parishioners, but very seldom—seldom preached a new sermon;
but old sermons over and over, etc.”
.fn-
.bn 373.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
EXTRACTS FROM “LOOKING GLASS FOR | THE PRESBYTERIANS OF NEW LONDON.”
.ce
John Rogers, 3d.
.pm start_quote
To see their Worship and worshippers Weighed in the balance and
Found Wanting.—With a true account of what the people called
Rogerenes have suffered in that town, from the 10th of June 1764 to the
13th of December 1766. Who suffered for testifying, That it was contrary
to Scripture for ministers of the gospel to teach for hire. That
the first day of the week was no Sabbath by God’s appointment. That
sprinkling infants is no baptism and nothing short of blasphemy, being
contrary to the example set us by Christ and his holy apostles. That
long public prayers in synagogues is forbidden by Christ. Also for reproving
their church and minister for their great pride, vain-glory and
friendship of the world they lived in.—With a brief discourse in favour
of women’s prophesying or teaching in the church.—Written by John
Rogers, New London. Providence N.E. Printed by the author 1767.
June 10, 1764. We went to the meeting house at New London, and
some of our people went into the house and sat down, others tarried without
and sat upon the ground some distance from the house. And when
Mather Byles their priest began to say over his formal, synagogue
prayer, forbidden by Christ, Mat. VI. 5 etc., some of our women began
to knit, others to sew, that it might be made manifest they had no fellowship
with such unfruitful works of darkness. But justice Coit and
the congregation were much offended by this testimony, and fell upon
them in the very time of prayer and pretended divine worship; also they
fell upon all the rest of our people that were sitting quietly in the house,
making no difference between them that transgressed the law and them
that transgressed not; for they drove us all out of the house in a most
furious manner; pushing, kicking, striking etc., so that the meeting
was broken up for some considerable time and the house in great confusion:
Moreover, they fell upon our friends that were sitting abroad,
striking and kicking both men and women, old and young, driving all
of us to prison in a furious and tumultuous manner.
.bn 374.png
.pn +1
... The authority and minister and some of the people were greatly
offended at our opposing their false worship; for they carried on their
worship in such pride, and so contrary to the Holy Scriptures that they
could no ways defend it by the Scriptures and therefore took another way
to defend it never practised by Christ or any of his followers. For justice
Coit did continually fall upon us when we came among them and
drive us to prison, in an angry and furious manner; sometimes twenty
sometimes thirty in a day, striking and kicking both men and women,
pulling off women’s caps and bonnets and tearing them to pieces with
their hands, setting an example to the rest of the people; also he made no
difference between them that spoke at the meeting house against their
worship and those that did not speak; for his constant practice was to
fall upon all our friends that came to the meeting house and all that he
could see in sight of the house and drive them to prison, he and his company,
in a most furious and tumultuous manner, stopping their mouths
when they went to speak, choking them etc. Also he doubled our imprisonments
every time we came among them; but this method he took
added no peace to them, for some of our friends were always coming
out of prison, as well as going in, ... However, this was the method
they took, and after this manner they celebrated their Sabbaths from the
10th of June to the 12th of August.
... February 16. Some of our friends were sitting quietly in the
meeting house, between meetings, and Col. Saltonstall[194] came in and laid
hold of an old man that had the numb palsy, aged 73 years, and with
great violence hauled him out of the seat, setting an example to others,
who fell upon them and drove them out of the house and to the court
house, in a furious manner, and carried them up through a trap door
into a dark garret and locked them in, and at night a company of their
base men got together, among which were ... This base company
went into the court house and shut themselves in and took our friends
out of the attic and offered shameful abuse to our women in the dark....
Now after this shameful abuse to the women, they took two men
and stripped off their clothes and tied them to a post in the court house
and whipped them in a most unmerciful manner, especially one of them,
which they struck unmerciful blows with a staff and with bunches of
rods on his back, till it was like a jelly, also they rubbed tar into their
.bn 375.png
.pn +1
wounds and whipped upon the tar, forcing it into their flesh, also they
rubbed tar in the mouths of the men and women when they went to
speak. When these two men were first tied to the post they sang
praises to God, and in the time of their torment they called upon God
to strengthen them. After this, they laid hold on these two men and
forced them to run down near to the town wharf and threw them into
the water several times; also they took their hats and threw water on
them for some considerable time. Moreover, they threw the women
into the water. And after this the sheriff’s eldest son and another man
with him took a poor weakly woman, forty odd years of age, and forced
her to run through the streets till she dropped down, and then they left
her....
.fn 194
Gurdon, son of Governor Saltonstall.
.fn-
Now the next first day of the week, after Col. Saltonstall shut our
friends up in the court house and set his son Dudley and others to abuse
us, it being the 23d of February, we were coming to the meeting house
again, but as soon as we appeared in sight, Col. Saltonstall run out and
met us, and a great company with him, and fell upon us in a very angry
manner, before we had spoke one word, to drive us to the court house,
as he did the week before, when our friends were sitting quietly in the
house between meetings. But as soon as they fell on us, we spoke and
made a great noise, and refused to go with them, telling them we chose
to be killed publickly before the people, rather than to be murdered
privately in the court house.
Now the tumult grew very great, so that the meeting was broken up
for some considerable time, and they dragged both men and women on the
ground to the court house;[195] some by their hands, some by their legs,
and some by the hair of their heads, striking them with their fists, kicking
them, striking and punching them with staffs and tearing the clothes
from their backs, and they dragged them into the court house and hauled
both men and women up two pair of stairs, and hauled them up through
a trap door into that dark loft that they had shut our friends up in the
week before, and they locked them in. In this tumult an aged woman
was so overcome that she fainted away and they left her lying on the
ground. Now there were present in this riot justice ——, justice
——, justice ——, the high-sheriff and Col. ——, besides constables
and grandjurymen: There was also a deacon among them, which
makes us write as follows.
.fn 195
See likeness to similar scene in Governor Saltonstall’s time, 1721 (#Part II, Chapter X:ch_2_10#).
.fn-
.bn 376.png
.pn +1
.pm start_poem
The deacon and the justices
Were busy in this fray,
Church members and grandjurymen
Forgot their Sabbath day.
.pm end_poem
After the tumult was over, these church members remembered their
Sabbath, and returned to their pretended worship again: But as soon as
that was over, the authority consulted together at the meeting house,
and sent the high-sheriff, who came with a company of men and took
down ten women out of that dark loft that the authority had shut them
up in (two of these women had young children with them and another
was big with child)[196] and committed them to prison, leaving near twenty
small children motherless at their homes. Now as the high-sheriff was
going from the meeting house, to commit these women to prison, some
of the people of the town asked him what they were going to do with
our friends; the sheriff answered that the women were to be committed
to prison, but he said the men were to be delivered up to Satan to be
buffetted. So the authority kept the men locked up in that dark garret
till night, and then they were delivered up to the authority’s children and
a rude company of young men, who came and unlocked the trap door
and abused our friends in the manner following: They took down one
man first out of this dark loft and brought him down into the lower room
of the court-house, and tied his hands round a post, also they tied another
line to his hands and hoisted him up by a tackle, then they brought his
knees round the post and tied them with a line, and stripped his clothes
up over his head and tied them also; then they whipped him in a very
barbarous manner by the light of a candle. And when they had done
torturing him, they let him down and shut him up in one of the court
house chambers. They then brought down another out of the garret,
and tortured him after the same manner as they did the first, and then
shut him up also, pretending they would whip them all over again,
except they would recant and promise not to come among them any
.bn 377.png
.pn +1
more. There were twelve whippers that took turns at the whip, and
commonly three or four to whip one man, one after another. They
pretended to give those men thirty nine stripes each, but they used
several sorts of whips, especially one unmerciful instrument made of
cow-hide, also they whipped them with large rods tied together, some
of which had ten in a bunch, so that they far exceeded thirty nine
stripes, for they struck each person thirty nine times with that cruel
instrument, except one man, which after they had struck him thirty
unmerciful blows, one of the spectators ran and untied him, telling the
whippers he was an old man and they ought to use some discretion
towards him. Nine men were thus used this night, all heads of families,
some of which were elderly men that had great families of children.
.fn 196
Delight Rogers (wife of John Rogers, 3d) was one of the women imprisoned.
Her daughter Anna (mother of John R. Bolles) was born very soon after her release.
The near-sightedness of this daughter was attributed to the fact that her
mother wept so much during her imprisonment. Delight Rogers sat with the rest
in the meeting-house; she did not take any work there. Mr. John R. Bolles in
“Reminiscences of his Life,” published in a New London paper, said that the venerable
Dr. Nathaniel Petting, who knew Delight Rogers, used to say to him: “If
there ever was a good woman, your grandmother Lighty was one.”
.fn-
This whipping was executed in a very barbarous manner, for the
rods were trimmed, and long sharp fangs left on them, to tear the flesh
of the sufferers, also these men that whipped our friends struck them in
such a violent manner with these heavy bunches of rods that they beat
and bruised their flesh till it was like jelly. Moreover some of their wrists
were so cut and their sinews so much hurt with the line they hung by, that
several of their hands were numb for more than two months after. Also
the two men that had been so unmercifully whipped by this company
in the court house the week before, and otherwise abused, were of these
men that suffered that night: And they struck one of these men, he that
had been the most abused the week before, forty three cruel blows on
his old sores, and ten or twelve of these blows were after he had swooned
away. Our persecutors cut these rods upon their Sabbath, and fitted
them at the court house, and Colonel Saltonstall was at the court house
among them when they were preparing the rods.... When their persecutors
heard them praying and calling on Christ for strength, they
would threaten them, and whip them with all their might, endeavoring
to make them promise to renounce their testimony against their worship,
but were not able to make one of them renounce their testimony, or
make any promise at all. But the sufferers told them to this effect,
that what they did against their worship was for no other end but to
please God and keep a good conscience, and that if they should promise
to renounce their testimony God would renounce their souls forever.
Also when some of the men that had suffered this cruel whipping were
shut up in the court house chamber, they prayed earnestly to God to
strengthen their brethren that were to suffer, also they prayed for their
.bn 378.png
.pn +1
persecutors, for God gave them more than a common love to those
that were tormenting them.
So after these nine men had suffered, they were set at liberty. Their
persecutors threatened them to double their whipping every time they
came to the meeting house among them. And no doubt they would
have gone further, had not God prevented them by making a division
among the people; the neighboring towns crying out against such barbarous
and unlawful behavior; also it was a common saying among the
people that they were sorry their rulers had resigned up their authority
to a company of boys and set them to defend their worship....
.pm end_quote
The above is but a small part of such blood-curdling accounts,
filling a good-sized pamphlet. Portions will be found in the “History
of New London,” not quoted here. Near the end is something
less thrilling.
.pm start_quote
Sept. 14, 1766. Some of our people went and sat down some distance
from the priest’s house, and when he came out to go to meeting, they
walked with him and endeavored to have some friendly discourse with
him concerning the things of God; But the priest would not talk with
them about the things of God. However, they walked with him and
talked to him, but before they came to the meeting house, justice Coit
began to kick them in a furious manner, especially the women. Also
one of the townsmen fell upon them, punching both men and women
with a staff in a cruel manner, so they were driven by some of the people
to the upper end of the town.
.tb
The next first day of the week, being the 21st of Sept., as some of
us were setting by the side of a house, between meetings, about four or
five rods from the priest’s house, saying nothing to any person, the
high-sheriff came, with some assistants and took us and sent for justice
Coit, who came and committed eight men of us to prison. And on the
26th day of the same month, justice Coit came to the prison, and we
were taken out and brought before him, and he charged us with disturbing
the minister’s peace. We told him we had no thought of doing the
minister any hurt. Justice Coit answered, that he did not suppose that
we intended to strike him or wrestle with him, nor did he suppose we
intended to hurt a hair of his head, but he supposed that we intended,
.bn 379.png
.pn +1
when the minister came out, to go along by his side and talk with him.
So when justice Coit had confessed that he did not suppose we intended
to hurt a hair of the priest’s head, he fined us five shillings each, and
required bonds of good behavior towards all his majesty’s subjects; but
especially towards the priest. But we refused to give such bonds, looking
upon the judgment to be very absurd, and that justice Coit’s supposing
that we intended to talk with the priest was not breach of the peace
in us, so he committed seven of us to prison again, all heads of families,
one of which men was in his 75th year. Four of these men were kept in
prison till the 13th of December following, and two were set at liberty
about the 28th of November, and one within a few days after we were
committed to prison.
Now after these men were committed to prison, our friends that were
at liberty thought it necessary that some of our people should go on the
first days of the week and set in the priest’s sight and not fear them that
persecute the body. But when the priest saw them sitting in sight, if
it were but a few women, he would not come out of his house to go to
meeting.... Also this behavior of the priest occasioned much trouble
to his poor flock, for sometimes the bell would ring and the people sit
waiting for their priest till it was time for meeting to be half done: And
then justice Coit, or some of the rest of his sheep, were obliged to come
and move the women out of the priest’s sight, and guard their shepherd
to the meeting house, lest these women should speak to him of the
things of God.
It was almost every day of the first days of the week for the whole
time of this imprisonment, which was near three months, that this
shepherd was kept in his house by the sight of our friends, and sometimes
only at the sight of a few women, and he never ventured to come out till
some of his sheep came and drove the women away. But justice Coit
committed no more of our friends to prison under bonds of good behavior
because he supposed they intended to talk with the priest, after
these men above mentioned. But the 23rd of November, one of our
men told the priest, after he was come out of the meeting house, that he
came to put him in mind how they kept God’s children in prison, and
that their worship was upheld by cruelty. The priest answered to this
effect, that they could uphold it in no other way. Then the man replied
it must certainly be of the devil, if there was no other way to uphold
it but by cruelty. But the sheriff struck him twice on the head,
.bn 380.png
.pn +1
and punched him with his staff to prevent his speaking with the priest.
And he and three women were committed to prison, but at night they
were set at liberty.... God said, Jer. 1, 7,—“Thou shalt go to all
that I shall send thee, and whatsoever I command thee thou shalt speak.”
Also the apostle Paul exhorteth us to be followers of him as he was of
Christ, I Cor. XI. 1. And Paul spent much time in going from place
to place, disputing in the synagogues on the Sabbath days, as appears
in the Acts of the Apostles. And no doubt they built their synagogues,
and thought, as our neighbors do, that they had a natural right to worship
in them and that the apostle had no right to oppose them in their worship,
for they were as much offended at the apostle as our neighbors
are at us, for they called him a pestilent fellow, and said he was a mover
of sedition throughout the world, Acts XXIV. 5. Also speaking of
Paul and Silas they said, Acts XVII, “These that have turned the world
upside down, are come hither also.”
.pm end_quote
.bn 381.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
EXTRACTS FROM “A DEBATE BETWEEN | REV. MR. BYLES AND THE CHURCH.”
.sp 1
Minister.
I have no particular objection to this church; but believe it to be a
true church of our Lord etc.—but it is this mysterious call of Providence
etc.—the churches of this and old England are equal to me. I
am called from one to another where I can be of more usefulness, which
is my duty.... And I believe you had better dismiss me, as you may
get one that will do much better. You want one that will visit his
parishioners—preach a lecture once in a while.... I was not made for
a country minister.... I am weak and infirm[197] ... to come up this
tedious hill all weathers—come in all out of breath ... obliged to
preach till all in a sweat ... then go out in the cold, on this bleak place
... run the risk of my health etc.... And then to be treated
as I have been by the Quakers ... disturbed upon the holy Sabbath.
If I have not the Sabbath, what have I? tis the sweetest
enjoyment of my whole life!—Insulted by them almost continually,
surrounding my house. Many a time has the bell tolled for
hours together, and at last one single man condescends to come
down and drive them off. I would not live such a life over again
for no consideration.... I see no prospect of amendment ... our
laws are not put in full execution. (And then he went on to
show wherein the civil authority, in his opinion, were deficient in
duty with regard to the Quakers etc.[198])—My salary is not sufficient[199]
etc.... My friends are in Boston. Etc.
.fn 197
Mr. Byles was at this time thirty years of age.
.fn-
.fn 198
Unfortunately we have merely this in parenthesis concerning the stand taken
by Mr. Byles in regard to the Rogerenes.
.fn-
.fn 199
It will be remembered that Mr. Byle’s salary was a liberal one, and his family
at this date could not have been large.
.fn-
People. These objections are nothing to the purpose, and what you
say about the Quakers is a mere cobweb. As to the call of Providence,
it plainly appears to be money.... Conscience! with what conscience
can you leave this church of Christ? (They then set forth the obligations
.bn 382.png
.pn +1
he was under to walk with this church; the connection between
them was of a sacred nature etc.)
Minister. There are ministers enough to be had.
People. Yes, such as you are—We never could conceive nor imagine
how you could spend your time before now, for you never visited
any of your parishioners, but very seldom—seldom preached a new
sermon; but old sermons over and over, again and again; and behold all
this time you have been studying controversies, about modes and forms,
rites and ceremonies! Is it for this we have been paying you this three
years past, when you should have been about your ministry?... In
regard to the Quakers insulting you etc. Is any man wholly free from
persecution? If that is all you have, you ought to be very thankful
that you have no more than a few poor old women sitting round your
gate.
.bn 383.png
.pn +1
.sp 3
.h3
EXTRACTS FROM “THE BATTLE AXE,”
.ce
By Timothy Watrous, Sr., and Timothy, Jr.
.sp 1
Satan, to all classes of the Ecclesiastical system that profess Christ’s
name and prove traitors to his service.
I now address you as my sworn subjects, under full power of my
authority; feeling much gratified to see my kingdom established on the
ruins of God’s creation. Though I have been wounded by Christ, the
invader of my possessions, yet I hold before you the greatness of my
power and the glory of my kingdom. I am the great and high prince and
god of this world.... I am your god, and I warn you of my great
enemy Christ; that you be not found obedient to any of the requirements
of his contracted plan. My ways are broad and easy. I am high
in heart and teach the same to you. That in all nations you may set my
worship in high places, that it may be adorned with all the splendid
glory which belongs to the prince that offered Christ all the glory of this
world. That your places of worship may appear beautiful to men.
And let my servants, your ministers, be men of the best gifts and talents;
for so were your fathers the false prophets. And be not like Christ’s
apostles, who were ignorant, unlearned men. Even his great apostle,
Paul, (they said) in bodily presence was weak and his speech contemptible.
But let it not be so with you.... For it is my will that you
should have the praise of men; and receive from them titles of honor.
For the ways of Christ, our great enemy, are contrary to all men, and even
to nature itself, as you may see throughout all his precepts; for example
I Cor. I, 26, 27, 28. “For ye see your calling, brethren, how that not
many wise men after the flesh, not many mighty, not many noble are
called; but God hath chosen the foolish things of the world to confound
the wise; and God hath chosen the weak things of the world to confound
the things that are mighty; and base things of the world and things
which are despised hath God chosen.”
This is no description of an accomplished member of society. Faithful
subjects, when you execute the priest’s office in my service, put on
a dress suitable to your ministration; and let your bodily presence be
amiable and your speech affable, and your countenance grave and solemn.
.bn 384.png
.pn +1
Salute the people with a comely behavior, that you may glory in your
own presence. For verily I say unto you, except your outward appearance
of righteousness shall exceed that of Christ’s ministers, you shall
in no case deserve the world....
Agreeably to my counsel, in all cases resent an insult from your fellows
and go forth to war with them; embody yourselves and march to the field
of battle, with religion at your right; and appoint one of my servants,
your ministers, a chaplain to pray for your success. And there encamp,
one against the other; and let my servants, your priests, on both sides,
put up a prayer to the God of heaven that you may gain the victory
over each other; cherishing the belief that all that die gloriously in
battle go immediately to heaven. And when you are coming together
to do the work of human butchery, if a sense of the horrid piece of work
which you are about to perform shall fill your soldiery with terror, benumb
their senses with intoxicating liquor; and put on confusion and distraction,
under the name of courage and valor; and fear not, for I will be
with you and fill your hearts with such vengeance, through the immediate
influence of my spirit, that you shall be able to perform all my will and
pleasure. And, when you have sufficiently soaked the ground with the
blood of your fellow men, and humbled their hearts and have gotten your
wills upon them; then return and let my servant, your minister, lift up
his voice before you, unto the God of heaven, with praise and thanks for
the victory; that you have been able to do such deeds as to bereave
parents of their sons, wives of their husbands and children of their fathers....
And then return home full of the glory of your own shame, and tell
your rulers you have saved their pride, gratified their ambition and saved
a little of the trash of this world; for which you have taken the lives of
your fellow creatures, each one of whom is worth more than all the
treasures of India. For all such things belong to the religion that I
delight in.
Ye fathers, I exhort that you exercise yourselves in laying up treasure
on earth. And ye, young men, that you likewise embrace every opportunity
to get riches, which are an honor to youth; that in the performance
thereof your hearts may be raised higher in pride.
And ye, ministers of the civil law, I counsel that you swerve not from
mutual confederacy with the ecclesiastical system. That, for the sake of
your honor, you strictly attend to your oaths; and put in motion all laws
and modes of punishments which may tend to compel all kinds of people
to submit to our precepts, which are in opposition to the rules of Christ.
.bn 385.png
.pn +1
.ce
A Sermon To the Priests.
It is well known that the Christian religion has been in the world 18
centuries, since she first visited the earth, and also that 300 yrs. of the
first part of the time, altho’ she stood in opposition to the powers of this
world, and under cruel persecutions, yet she mightily grew and flourished
until about the 4th century, at which time, a general revolution took
place through the governing parts of the earth and she was delivered
from her persecution, being a great church and standing on her own foundation.
And from that day down to this the priesthood of this religion
(falsely so called) has been preaching to us a sinful world, though broken
in sect, but under one lineage of ordination. Yet they have not brought
the world, nor the church to a state of perfection; but much to the contrary.
For when they first took the Christian church by the hand to
lead her through the ensuing ages of the world, she then stood on her
own feet, enjoying a well-united system of her own. And what is she
now?... she is now broken all to pieces and become a house divided
against herself. And this unparalleled circumstance has rendered it
necessary that the sinful world unto whom you, the said priests, have
been preaching, should have somewhat to preach unto you....
.bn 386.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
THE SUBSCRIBERS PETITION TO HIS COUNTRYMEN | FOR HIS RIGHTS AND | PRIVILEGES.
.sp 1
Whereas I am once more called to suffer for conscience’s sake, in
defense of the gospel of Christ; on the account of my son, who is under
age, in that it is against my conscience to send him into the train-band.
For which cause, I have sustained the loss of my only cow that gave
milk for my family; through the hands of William Stewart, who came
and took her from me and the same day sold her at the post. Which
circumstance, together with the infirmity of old age, has prevented my
making my usual defence at such occasion. I have therefore thought
proper and now do (for myself and in behalf of all my brethren that
shall stand manfully with me in defense of the gospel of Christ) publish
the following as a petition to my countrymen for my rights and privileges;
and especially to those that have or shall have any hand in causing
me to suffer.
Fellow Countrymen:
.ti +4
You esteem it a great blessing of heaven that you live in a country
of light, where your rights and privileges are not invaded by a tyrannical
Government. And for this great blessing of heaven do you not feel
yourselves under obligation of obedience to heaven’s laws; to do unto
all men as you would that men should do unto you? Or which of you
on whom our Lord hath bestowed ten thousand talents should find his
fellow servant that owed him fifty pence and take him by the throat,
saying, “Pay that thou owest me,” and, on refusal, command his wife
and children to be sold and payment to be made?
Fellow Countrymen, this case between you and me I shall now lay
open before your eyes, seeing it is pending before the judgment seat of
the same Lord. Our Lord and Master hath commanded us not to hate
our enemies, like them of old times under the law of Moses. But hath,
under the dear gospel dispensation, commanded us, saying: “I say
unto you love your enemies, do good to them that hate you and pray for
them that despitefully use you and persecute you, and if any man shall
sue you at the law and take away your coat, forbid him not to take your
.bn 387.png
.pn +1
cloak also.” “If thine enemy hunger, feed him, if he thirst, give him
drink.” And again: “I say unto you that ye resist not evil.”
For these, and many other like commands of our Saviour, Christ, I
have refused to bear arms against any man in defense of my rights and
privileges of this world. For which cause, you have now taken me by
the throat, saying: “Go break the laws of your Lord and Master.”
And because I have refused to obey man rather than God, you have
taken away the principal part of the support of my family and commanded
it to be sold at the post.
And thus you, my fellow-servants (under equal obligation of obedience
to the same laws of our Master) have invaded my rights and privileges
and robbed me of my living, for no other reason but because I will
not bear the sword to defend it. And if a servant shall be thought
worthy of punishment for transgressing his master’s laws, of how much
punishment shall he be thought worthy that shall smite his fellow
servant, because he will not partake with him in his transgression?
But I wist that through ignorance you have done it, as have also your
rulers; and for this cause do I hold the case before you, that you may not
stand in your own light, to stretch out against me the sword of persecution;
but agree with your adversary whilst you are in the way with him.
But if you shall refuse to hear this my righteous cause and shall pursue
your fellow servant that owes you nothing, and who wishes you no evil,
neither would hurt one hair of your head, and although you take away
his goods, yet he asks them not again; but commits his cause to Him
that shall judge righteously; I say if you shall follow hard after him,
as the Egyptians did after Israel, God shall trouble your host and take
off your chariot wheels, so that you shall drive them heavily. For I
know, by experience, that no device shall stand against the counsel of
God; for I am not a stranger in this warfare, neither is it only the loss
of goods that I have suffered heretofore; but extreme torments of body,
while my life lay at stake under the threat of my persecutors, and yet
God, through his mighty power, has never suffered me to flee before my
enemies, but has brought me to the 83d year of my age, though all my
persecutors have been dead these many years.
.ll 68
.rj
Alexander Rogers.
.ll
January 7th, 1810. Waterford, New London County.
.bn 388.png
.pn +1
.sp 2
.h3
ROGERENE WRITINGS.
.sp 1
The following works of John Rogers, Sr., are most of them still
extant, although copies are very rare and command high prices.
The locality of copies known to the author of this history will be
found indicated:—
.pm start_quote
1. “An Epistle to the Church Called Quakers. New York. Printed
by William Bradford, 1705.”
2. “An Epistle to the Seventh Day Baptists,”—date unknown.
3. “Treatise on Divorce.”
Copy of each of the above owned by H. Eugene Bolles of
Boston.
4. “An Epistle Sent from God to the World, Containing the Best
News that ever the World Heard. Transcribed by John Rogers,
a Servant of Jesus Christ.” The first edition must have been
printed in the author’s lifetime. The edition from which this
title was obtained was “printed in New York for Elisha Stanbury,
1757. 8vo. pp. 25.” We know not if this work is still extant.
5. “John Rogers, a Servant of Jesus Christ, to any of the Flock
scattered Throughout New England.”
We know not at what date in the author’s lifetime above work
was published. The edition noted by Sabin (Dictionary of
Books relating to America) was “Printed by James Franklin, at
the Printing Office under the Town School, 1754. 12 mo. pp.
79.” A copy of this work is to be found in Yale College
Library, “3rd edition, Newport, 1754.” A copy of same, owned
by H. Eugene Bolles of Boston, was published in Norwich,
Conn., 1776, and was the 4th edition.
6. “A Midnight Cry from the Temple of God to the Ten Virgins,”
printed by William Bradford, supposedly in 1705 and probably
at New York. A copy of this work is in Yale College Library.
.bn 389.png
.pn +1
A copy is also owned by H. Eugene Bolles,—title-page
lacking.
7. “Concerning the Two Ministrations, by John Rogers, a Servant
of Jesus Christ.” A copy owned by H. Eugene Bolles,—title-page
and date lacking.
8. “Description of the True Shepherd, As Also Concerning
Baptism and the Lord’s Supper, Norwich, 1776, 4th Edition.”
A copy owned by H. Eugene Bolles.
9. “Concerning the Ministration of the Law, and the Gospel,
Concerning Swearing and Concerning God’s Visitation by Sickness.”
Copy owned by H. Eugene Bolles,—date lacking.
10. “Answer to A Book, by Benj. Wadsworth (the latter entitled
‘The Lord’s Day Proved to be the Christian Sabbath’). Printed
for the author, Boston, 1721.”
11. “The Book of the Revelation of Jesus Christ, which God
gave unto Him to show unto his servants things which were to
come to pass; and Jesus Christ sent and signified it by his angels
to his servant John, and now by revelation hath opened the mystery
contained in said book unto his servant John Rogers, who
hath explained the same, for the edification and comfort of his
Church and People, after a long and dark night of apostacy. The
explanation being made so plain that the eye of every spiritual
reader may see how exactly things have come to pass, as were
foretold by the prophesy of this book, and may see by it all
things that are yet to come, not only to the end of this world,
but to the finishing of the world to come.” First printed in Boston,
1720. “Second New London edition, printed by Samuel Green,
for Henry Watrous and Alexander Rogers, 1817. 12 mo. pp. 248.”
The title of this work is liable to give the impression that the
author affects to himself explain the mystery of Revelation; but
a perusal of the book shows that not the slightest such attempt
is made. The entire work consists in expounding scripture by
scripture in the most legitimate and conscientious manner, displaying
not only a profound knowledge of the Old and New Testaments,
but extreme caution not to advance the slightest personal
explanation, supposition or theory. Like every other work
.bn 390.png
.pn +1
of this author, it gives proof of strong, clear and finely balanced
logical powers, combined with a plain and concise mode of expression.
.pm end_quote
The title of the following is from Sabin. We know of no copy
extant:—
.pm start_quote
12. “An Impartial Relation of an Open and Publick Dispute
Agreed Between Gurdon Saltonstall, Minister of the Town of
New London, and John Rogers of the Same Place. With the
Circumstances leading thereto, and the Consequences thereof.
As also a relation of the said Gurton Saltonstall’s securing a
Judgment of Court of Six Hundred Pounds and Cost of Court
against said John Rogers, for saying the said Saltonstall went to
wave, shun or shift the said Dispute agreed upon. The Truth
of which waving, shunning or shifting is here also evidently
demonstrated. By John Rogers. Printed for the Author in
the year 1701. sm. 4to. pp. (6) 15.”
Probably printed at New York by William Bradford, or at
Philadelphia by Reynier Jansen. Title from Hildeburn’s Issues
of the Press in Pennsylvania. (Sabin.)
13. “Treatise on Divorce.” Probably written about 1700. A
copy owned by H. Eugene Bolles.
.pm end_quote
Works of John Rogers, 2d:—
.pm start_quote
1. That the “Book” which John Rogers, 2d, was accused by
the General Court of publishing and selling “up and down the
Colony,” while his father was in prison, was written by himself,
not by his father, is probable. Its title or its contents are alike
unknown to us, not having as yet been discovered in any bibliographic
work, by which we judge that no copy or title is extant.
2. In #Part I., Chapter I.:ch_1_1#, has been seen the account of the
scourging inflicted upon John Rogers, 2d, John Bolles, and their
companions on occasion of the journey to the meeting at Lebanon
in 1725; also the Proclamation which this punishment called forth
from Deputy Governor Jenks of Rhode Island. Mr. J. Backus,
the justice who was instrumental in securing the enactment of
this cruelty, made a reply to Governor Jenks in a pamphlet of
thirty-two pages, in which, in a lame and prevaricating manner,
.bn 391.png
.pn +1
he endeavored to justify this outrage. Upon this, John Rogers,
2d, issued a pamphlet, bound with the pamphlet of J. Backus,
stating the exact circumstances of the case as opposed to the
incorrect statements of the justice, and entitled “A Reply to J.
Backus, Esq. (as he calls himself), 1726.” A copy of a book containing
the Reply of J. Backus to Governor Jenks and the Reply of
J. Bolles to this Reply of J. Backus is owned by H. Eugene Bolles.
3. “Answer To A Book lately written by Peter Pratt, entitled
‘The Prey taken from the Strong,’ Wherein by Mocks and Scoffs,
together with a great number of positive Falsehoods, the Author
has greatly abused John Rogers, late of New London, deceased,
since his death. By John Rogers. Printed in New York for
the Author, 1726, and sold at his house in New London. 8 vo.
pp. (2) XXII.” Probably printed by William Bradford. A copy
owned by Connecticut Historical Society in their Library at
Hartford. A copy also owned by H. Eugene Bolles.
4. “An Answer to a Pamphlet (by Cotton Mather) entitled
‘A Monitory Letter about the Maintenance of An Able and Faithful
Ministry.’ By John Rogers. New York. 1726.” (Printed
by William Bradford, supposedly). A copy of this book is in
Yale College Library.
.pm end_quote
Works by John Bolles still extant:—
.pm start_quote
A copy of each of the following books, with exception of the
eighth, is owned by H. Eugene Bolles of Boston.
1. “Application to the General Court holden in New Haven—1728.”
A portion of the ending sentence in above pamphlet
is as follows:—
“But we, on our parts, have had the witness of a good conscience
towards God in all our sufferings and loss of all these
things” (having recounted their persecutions) “and do make it
our care to live inoffensively towards all men, except in the case
of Daniel, Chap. 6, verse 5.”
2. “Good News from a Far Country.” This is an argument
to prove that the Civil Government “have no authority from
God to judge in cases of Conscience.”
.bn 392.png
.pn +1
3. “Answer to An Election Sermon preached by Nathaniel Eels.”
The last two published in one volume at Newport, 1749.
4. “To Worship God in Spirit and In Truth.”
An Answer to same was published by Jacob Johnson (pastor
of a church in Groton, Conn.).
5. “Reply to Jacob Johnson, by John Bolles.”
All three in Boston Library, bound together.
6. “A Message to the General Court in Boston, 1754.”
Copy in Boston Library.
7. A tract entitled, “True Liberty of Conscience is in Bondage
to no Flesh.”
8. “Persecutions in Boston and Connecticut Governments. Taken
out of Authors. Whereby it may be seen that a people may
be deceived under the highest conceit of religion, and thinking
they are worshipping God, when indeed they are worshipping
the dragon and persecuting the children of God that worship Him
in spirit and in truth. By John Bolles, New London. Printed
for the author, 1758.” A copy of this tract is owned by Mrs.
Reed Watson of East Windsor, Conn.
9. “Answer to A Book entitled ‘The Christian Sabbath,’ by
Mather Byles, 1759.”
A copy of above work in Boston Library names John Bolles as
author. A copy of the same work in the New London Library
is (in its Introduction) distinctly ascribed to Joseph Bolles, son
of John Bolles. It was probably a joint work of father and son.
“Bolles (J.) and Waterhouse (John) Concerning the Christian
Sabbath, also some Remarks upon a book written by Ebenezer
Frothingham. Printed for Joseph Bolles, 1757.” Title from
Brinley Catalogue. Know not if extant.
“A Looking Glass for the Presbyterians of New London.”
By John Rogers, 3d. Providence, 1767. 8vo. See quotations
in Appendix. The style of this work is bright, vigorous and
concise, comparing well with the other Rogerene writings, not
one of which is of an inferior order.
.pm end_quote
.bn 393.png
.pn +1
.sp 4
.h2
INDEX.
.sp 2
The numbers against the names refer to the pages where the names
occur. A name has but a single reference to the page on which it appears,
though it may be repeated there; care should therefore be taken to look for
such repetition.
.ix
Adams, Eliphalet, #30#, #48#, #49#, #214#, #229#, #247#, #248#, #257#, #276#, #283#, #328#
Allyn, Lyman, #213#
Angell, George T., #317#
Ashurst, Henry (Sir), #30#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Backus, Joseph, #34#, #58#, #251#, #260#, #261#, #329#, #330#, #363#, #390#, #391#
Bancroft, George B., #106#
Barber (Hist. Collections), #19#, #63#, #330#, #339#
Beckwith, Elizabeth, #169#, #205#, #206#
Matthew, #169#, #205#, #206#, #210#
Beebe, Elizabeth, #157#, #167#, #170#-172, #212#, #216#, #221#, #230#
Samuel, #25#, #82#, #157#, #158#, #162#, #163#, #167#, #170#, #172#, #188#, #205#, #212#, #216#, #218#, #220#-224, #229#, #230#, #232#
Beecher, Lyman, #96#
Benedict (Hist. of the Baptists), #15#
Benham, Henry, #281#
Ida W., #314#
Bickly, ——, #78#
Bishop, Charles, #103#
George, #86#
Gilbert, #103#
Henry, #103#
John, #103#
Blake (History N. L. first church), #162#, #268#, #331#, #332#, #340#
Blinman, Rev. Mr., #125#
Bolles, Anna, #376#
Augustus, #94#
David, #90#, #92#-94, #105#
Delight R., #113#
Ebenezer, #104#, #274#, #282#, #288#
Edwin C., #108#
Enoch, #333#
Frank, #106#
Frederick D., #94#-97, #111#, #112#
H. Eugene, #107#, #109#, #388#-391
James A., #108#
John, #32#, #34#, #84#, #86#, #88#, #90#, #91#-93, #104#, #105#, #107#-112, #114#, #116#, #213#-215, #233#, #234#, #236#, #237#, #242#, #244#-248, #250#, #252#-255, #258#, #259#, #262#, #263#, #265#, #267#, #269#, #270#, #272#, #274#-277, #281#-283, #285#, #286#, #289#, #290#, #296#, #299#-301, #301#, #305#, #306#, #309#, #314#, #324#, #325#, #332#, #337#, #363#, #369#, #390#-392
John A., #94#, #105#, #335#-337
John R., #11#, #13#-17, #116#, #247#, #288# 321, #376#
John W., #111#
Joseph, #34#, #104#, #213#, #255#, #258#, #259#, #267#, #285#, #287#, #293#, #296#, #297#, #308#, #332#, #333#, #335#, #337#, #338#, #369#, #392#
Joshua, #105#, #110#-112, #114#, #247#
Joshua A., #112#
Lucius, #92#, #108#
Matthew, #92#, #105#, #111
Patience, #104#
Sarah, #242#, #244#-246, #248#-250, #255#, #257#, #267#
Stephen, #114#
Susannah, #94#
Thomas, #88#, #93#, #213#
William, #104#, #105#, #107#, #111#, #306#
William P. (Dr.), #108#
Zipporah, #88#
Bowles, Samuel, #93#, #96#
Bownas, Samuel, #15#, #181#, #206#-210, #309#, #320#, #362#
Bradford, William, #209#, #388#, #390#, #391#
Bradstreet, Simon, #136#, #137#, #147#, #148#, #164#
Branch, Anna H., #112#
Mary L. B., #18#, #112#, #115#
Brandagee, Augustus, #103#, #107#
Frank, #107#
John, #108#
Britton, Nathaniel, #111#
Bruen, Obadiah, #124#, #130#
Burdick, Naomi, #148#
Burnham (widow), #91#
Burroughs (Rev.), #25#
Bushnell (Rev.), #93#
Byles, Mather (Rev.), #16#, #48#, #49#, #86#, #284#-286, #289#, #291#-297, #308#, #369#, #371#-373, #381#, #392#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Calvert [J. C.], #213#
Camp, Elizabeth, #207#
William, #207#
.bn 394.png
.pn +1
Case and Banks, #61#-63
Caulkins, Frances M. (Historian), #11#, #15#, #16#, #21#, #22#, #23#, #26#, #27#, #31#, #40#, #41#, #56#, #72#, #82#, #84#, #88#, #100#, #102#, #109#, #162#, #164#, #165#, #168#, #175#, #186#, #196#, #202#, #204#, #205#, #215#, #220#, #232#, #269#, #271#, #295#, #325#, #330#, #338#
Pamela, #102#
Chamberlain, Peter, #150#
Chapman, Nathan, #313#
Samuel, #313#, #334#
Chappell, Alfred, #104#
Frank, #103#
Chew family, #102#
Christophers, Christopher, #177#, #223#, #293#
John, #177#, #183#
Richard, #245#
Clarke, John, #22#
Coit, Horace, #102#
Coit (Justice), #373#, #374#, #378#, #379#
Cole, Sarah 68, #241#
Comstock Stephen, #281#
Congdon, Joseph B., #103#
Cotton, John, #20#
Coulter, John M., #110#
Crandall, Amos, #107#
John, #131#, #327#
Crouch, John, #334#
Julia, #314#
William, #300#
Crump Richard, #107#
William C., #102#
Culver, Esther, #247#, #248#, #254#, #299#
John, #242#, #247#-249, #254#, #263#-265, #270#, #272#, #273#, #299#
Sarah, #34#, #242#, #248#, #250#
Cushman, Clarissa, #333#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Darrow, Zadoc, #107#
Davenport John, #86#
Davis, Andrew, #34#, #247#, #248#, #267#, #275#, #302#
Denison, George, #75#
Deshon, ——, #108#
Henry, #103#
John, #103#
Dodge, Augustus C., #103#
Henry, #103#
Israel, #103#
Nehemiah, #102#, #103#
Donham, ——, #159#
Douglass, Ann, #253#
Robert, #253#
Dow, Lorenzo, #29#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Edgecomb, John, #213#
Edmundson, Edmund, #209# (see #note, p. 396:note396#).
William, #15#, #134#, #135#
Eels, Nathaniel, #392#
Ely, William, #28#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Field, Thomas P., #81#-83, #97#, #100#, #331#, #336#, #337#
Fitch, Thomas, #103#
Fitzgerald, ——, #281#
Fox, Bathsheba, #173#, #185#, #187#, #194#, #200#, #230#, #231#
Samuel, #173#, #179#, #194#, #231#, #232#, #241#
Franklin, James, #388#
Frink [Adam], #110#
Frothingham, Ebenezer, #392#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Gallup, John, #121#
Gardner, Stephen, #277#
Garrison, William L., #317#
Garritt, Joshua, #110#
Joshua B., #110#
Gates, Josiah, #257#, #258#, #265#
Gibson, ——, #149#, #153#
William, #154#
Gilbert, Samuel, #64#
Goddard, Calvin, #94#
Green and Greene
Benjamin, #262#, #277#
Delight, #277#
Samuel, #389#
William, #277#
Griswold, Elizabeth, #54#, #55#, #141#, #142#, #145#, #146#, #156#, #160#, #164#, #169#, #198#, #206#, #209#, #216#, #264#, #266#, #340#
Griswold, Matthew, #54#, #55#, #62#, #72#, #98#, #123#-129, #132#, #133#, #144#-146, #156#, #160#, #164#, #167#, #169#, #205#, #340#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Hager, ——, #219#, #220#
Hall, Francis, #122#
Hamilton, Jonas, #265#
Hancox, Thomas, #64#, #190#
Harris, J. N., #102#
Joseph, #277#
Mary, #104#
Peter, #272#
Hastings, H. L., #317#
John, #91#
Haven, Henry P., #102#
Urbane (Mrs.), #111#
Hempstead, Joshua (Diary), #15#, #122#, #196#, #217#, #232#, #239#, #241#, #243#, #247#, #255#, #256#, #269#, #271#, #272#, #274#-276, #280#, #283#, #322#, #332#, #335#
Mary, #253#
Robert, #170#, #253#
Hiscox, Thomas, #127#, #132#, #139#, #140#, #146#, #147#, #149#
Hollister (Hist. of Conn.), #22#
Horton, Joseph, #142#
Howard, Roland B., #317#
Howe, Julia Ward, #316#, #317#
Hubbard Clarke, #132#
Samuel, #15#, #127#, #131#, #132#, #139#, #146#-149, #154#, #159#, #160#
Hunter (Governor), #78#
Hutchinson family, #317#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Jackson, Joan, #171#, #172#, #220#-225, #230#
John, #32#, #220#, #223#, #225#
Jansen, Reynier, #390#
Japhet (Indian), #130#, #132#, #139#
Jenks, Joseph, #35#, #36#, #390#, #391#
Johnson, Charles, #113#
Jacob, #392#
Jones, Mary, #241#
Jones, Robert, #68#, #241#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Keeney, John, #230#, #232#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Laborell, ——, #77#
Lamb, ——, #273#
Law, Jonathan, #77#
Richard, #102#
Lay, Edward, #121#
Lee, Jason, #107#
.bn 395.png
.pn +1
Leete (Governor), #150#, #151#
Lewis, Martha, #335#
Lillie, Marion H., #112#
Livermore, Mary A., #317#
Livingston, John, #224#, #232#
Lockwood, Belva, #317#
Loomis, Elias, #102#
F. B., #102#
Lord (Dr.), #326#
Lynde, Nathaniel, #28#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Man, Elisha, #58#
Richard, #58#
Mann, ——, #273#
Mary, #35#
Manwaring, Christopher, #102#
Robert, #102#
Robert A., #102#
Marvin (Mrs.), #104#
Mather, Cotton, #365#, #391#
Matthews, ——, #186#, #187#
McEwen, Abel M., #29#, #30#, #33#, #48#, #49#, #51#, #56#, #98#-102, #109#, #114#, #253#, #336#
McGinley, John, #112#
Middleton, John, #108#
Mumford, Stephen, #127#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Neal Dan’l. (Hist. of N.E.), #87#
Newcomb family, #104#
Niles, John M., #94#-97
Norton, Humphrey, #86#
Noyes, James, #140#
Moses, #184#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Owaneco [Chief], #124#, #166#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Paine, Robert T., #317#
Palmer, Christopher, #107#
Elisha, #104#
Frank, #104#
George S., #104#
Reuben, #104#
Tyler, #104#
Parker, Thomas, #121#
Parnell, Delia S., #317#
Pattison, Edward, #121#
Peck, Charles H., #108#
Ellen P., #108#
Perkins, Anna, #102#
Nathaniel, #103#, #376#
Perry, Amos, #112#
Phillips, Andrew W., #110#
Picket, John, #68#
Plumb, Hannah, #272#
John, #272#
Peter, #272#
Powell, Aaron M., #317#
Pratt, Elizabeth, #54#, #164#
Peter, #15#, #37#, #38#, #52#-54, #57#, #59#, #61#, #63#-72, #136#, #137#, #145#, #156#, #160#, #164#, #201#, #209#, #210#, #216#, #241#, #243#, #248#, #257#, #278#, #321#-327, #368#, #391#
Prentice, Edward, #110#
Elizabeth, #265#
Prentis, John, #77#, #79#
Stephen, #164#
Pynchon, John (Col.), #21#, #299#
John, #299#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Ransford, Mary, #66#, #67#, #196#-205, #207#, #210#, #214#, #241#, #323#, #324#, #326#, #332#, #336#, #338#
Ray (Justice), #68#
Richards, Jane, #103#
Rogers, Adam, #217#
Alexander, #293#, #300#, #304#, #387#, #389#
Anne, #300#
Bathsheba, #22#, #103#, #112#, #125#, #140#, #171#, #172#, #249#, #264#, #265#
Daniel, #109#
Delight, #277#, #376#
Elizabeth, #23#, #102#, #111#, #125#, #129#, #131#, #132#, #136#, #142#, #144#, #160#, #164#, #194#, #300#
George, #104#
Gershom, #265#
Gilbert, #281#
James,[A]
Joanna, #241#
John,[A]
Jonathan, #22#, #23#, #82#, #131#-133, #139#, #142#, #143#, #148#, #149#, #153#, #163#, #166#, #172#, #174#, #175#, #188#-190, #193#, #215#, #216#, #230#
Joseph, #124#, #130#, #142#,144, #146#, #154#, #155#, #163#, #167#, #174#-176, #189#, #207#, #215#, #240#
Lucy, #102#
Mary, #23#, #143#, #144#, #241#, #249#, #265#, #274#
Naomi, #149#, #154#
Nathaniel, #293#
Peter, #107#, #108#
President, #104#
Samuel, #121#, #124#, #147#, #153#, #166#, #187#, #207#, #232#, #240#, #272#, #277#, #281#, #293#, #333#
Sarah 190, #241#, #242#,247, #248#
William, #300#
William A., #110#
W. F. M., #107#
.ix-
.fm rend=th
.fn A lz=here
This name occurs too often to make indexing of any value.
.fn-
.fm rend=th
.ix
Rowland, Elizabeth, #121#
Samuel, #121#, #124#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Sabin (Dictionary of Books), #388#, #390#
Sachse, Julius F., #16#, #275#, #288#
Saltonstall, Dudley, #271#
Gurdon, #26#, #28#-31, #37#, #41#, #48#, #49#, #56#, #57#, #59#, #60#, #73#, #76#, #77#, #79#, #81#, #82#, #86#, #164#, #165#, #167#, #168#, #173#, #174#, #176#-178, #180#-187, #191#, #193#, #194#, #202#, #207#, #214#, #215#, #222#, #224#, #225#, #228#, #234#, #236#-238, #243#, #257#, #268#, #271#, #276#, #283#, #326#, #331#, #336#-339, #374#, #375#, #377#, #390#
Nathaniel, #271#
Richard, #164#
Rosewell, #271#
Saulsbury (Family Histories), #55#
Savol, John, #277#
Selwyn (Digest), #29#
Smith, Anson, #110#
Smith, Bathsheba, #23#,25, #103#, #125#, #139#, #142#-144, #146#, #154#, #155#, #163#, #167#, #170#, #173#, #180#, #207#
Clayton B., #107#
Ely, #207#
Hamilton, #110#
James, #103#, #167#, #207#, #231#, #233#, #237#
John, #167#, #231#
Parker, #103#
Richard, #125#, #142#, #154#, #155#, #231#
.bn 396.png
.pn +1
Smith, Robert, #103#
Samuel, #293#
Stanbury, Elisha, #388#
Stanton, Thomas, #124#
Steer, Richard, #82#, #188#
Stewart, William, #386#
Stow, Samuel, #184#
Strickland, Peter, #105#
Strong (Rev. Dr.), #93#
Stubbins, Daniel, #62#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Taber, Job, #104#
Tanner, Abel, #107#
Tarbox, Increase N., #121#
Thrall, Charles U., #111#
Thurston, B. B., #103#, #111#
Benjamin, #107#
Trumbull (History of Conn.), #19#, #20#, #52#, #54#, #56#, #59#, #60#, #63#, #326#
J. H., #121#
Tubbs, Mary, #62#, #63#
Turnbull (Memorials), #91#
Turner, David, #111#
David S., #111#
Isabel, #104#
Jennie, #112#
Mary, #104#
Patience, #104#
Peter C., #104#
Thomas, #104#, #333#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Uncas [Chief], #166#
Underhill, John, #121#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Wadsworth, Benjamin, #260#, #352#, #389#
Waller, T. M., #103#
Tracy, #107#
Waterhouse, Waterus and Watrous
Amos, #334#
Clarissa, #334#
Content, #333#
Esther, #254#, #299#, #312#
Henry, #389#
Jabez, #334#
Jacob, #253#
John, #104#, #251#-255, #258#, #259#, #263#-266, #269#, #270#, #275#, #283#, #286#, #290#, #299#, #300#, #302#, #304#, #312#, #313#, #333#, #392#
Mary, #104#
Rachel, #334#
Timothy, #293#, #300#, #302#-304, #313#, #332#, #333#, #383#
Walter, #269#
William, #333#, #334#
Zacharia, #303#, #304#
Zephania, #302#, #305#, #308#, #309#, #312#, #334#
Watson, ——, #96#
Amelia M., #111#
Caleb, #184#
Edith S., #111#
Reed (Mrs.), #392#
Way, Joanna, #25#, #157#, #158#
Weair, Abraham, #273#
Weaver, family, #104#
West, Ebenezer, #58#
Wetherell, ——, #23#, #143#
Daniel, #28#, #177#, #183#
Whaley (Mrs.), #319#
Whipple, Anne, #300#
Whipple, Content, #300#, #333#
Daniel, #300#
Elizabeth, #300#
Enoch, #319#
Hope, #300#
Ira, #307#
Jonathan, #313#-315, #317#-319
Noah, #300#
Samuel, #299#, #300#
Silas, #300#
Zacharia, #300#
Zephania, #300#
Zerah C., #314#-316
Whitney, Isabel, #104#
Williams, Anna B., #112#
Winthrop (Governor), #21#, #66#, #113#, #122#, #123#, #199#, #213#
Wolcott, [Alexander], (Dr.), #110#
Henry, #98#, #125#, #129#
Simon, #102#, #129#
Wood, John, #121#
Woodbridge (Rev.), #332#
Ephraim, #295#
Timothy, #184#
Woodward, John, #58#
Wright (Justice), #241#
William, #180#, #181#, #185#-187, #190#, #192#, #193#, #196#, #219#, #220#
.ix-
.sp 1
.ix
Young, John, #177#
Thomas, #174#, #177#, #183#, #194#, #222#
.ix-
Note.—The Edmund Edmundson, referred to on page #209#, should be William Edmundson;
also spelled Edmonson.
.pb
.if h
.sp 4
.h2
Footnotes
.fm lz=h
.if-
.pb
.dv class='tnote'
.ce
Transcriber’s Note
On p. #102#, two references to a James Rogers are followed by superscripted
‘4’ and ‘2’, which would seem to each denote a separate James, presumably by generation.
On p. #333#, the single footnote (numbered here as 190) had no anchor in the
text. It has been arbitrarily added near the top of the page, after the
first mention of the three variants of the name ‘Waterhouse’ described in the
note.
Other errors deemed most likely to be the printer’s have been corrected, and
are noted here. The references are to the page and line in the original.
The following issues should be noted, along with the resolutions.
.ta l:8 l:46 l:12 w=90%
| the purpose for which the question was asked[.]| Added.
| if she con[t]inue her refusal | Inserted.
| a good Christian [exaplary] in his Living | sic: exemplary?
| with an instrument of [prim] | obs. for privet, a shrub
.ta-
.dv-